148 98 59MB
English Pages [790] Year 1962
/
nARIN COUNTY FREE LIBRARY
Christopher Fvfe OXFORD
:
AT THE
CLARENDON
PRESS
69 oiS The
Leone peninsula was in 1787 by settlers of African origin. After 1807 it became the centre to which slaves from all over West Africa, captured Sierra
colonized from Britain
by the British navy
In transit
across
vO
=
3 O O
(
I
the Atlantic, were brought to be freed, to start a
new
life
familiar conditions. This tal
under un-
monumen-
history of Sierra Leone, the first
to be published on such a scale.
= n
J
Is
written with particular emphasis on
the liberated Africans and their descendants, the Sierra Leone Creoles,
and on their contribution to the history of
West
Africa.
M O.U.P.
105/
RETURN TO CENTRAL DATE DUE
96
A history of Sierra Leone Oxford Univ. Press [cl962] maps. 773p«,
[London]
Bibliography: p. 621-639.
1.
Sierra Leone
GS 2/68
Hist.
I. Title
Digitized by the Internet Archive in
2010
http://www.archive.org/details/historyofsierralOOfyfe
A HISTORY OF SIERRA LEONE
A HISTORY OF
SIERRA LEONE BY
CHRISTOPHER FYFE
/Warm County h^e Horary wvsc Cenier _
Aomu^mm
^"
«^afael.
BuMml
California
OXFORD UNIVERSITY PRESS
Oxford University
Press, Ely House,
London W.
i
GLASGOW NEW YORK TORONTO MELBOURNE WELLINGTON
TOWN
CAPE
IBADAN NAIROBI
SALISBURY
LUSAKA ADDIS ABABA
BOMBAY CALCUTTA MADRAS KARACHI LAHORE DACCA KUALA LUMPUR HONG KONG TOKYO
OXFORD UNIVERSITY
PHESS Iy62
69 51
FIRST PUBLISHED IN I962
AND PRINTED BY HAZEL L, WATSON & VINEY AYLESBURY AND SLOUGH
LTD.
REPRINTED LITHOGRAPHICALLY AT THE UNIVERSITY PRESS, OXFORD FROM CORRECTED SHEETS OF THE FIRST EDITION 1963, iy6
PRINTED
IN
8
GREAT BRITAIN
PREFACE
THIS book was
I was temporary Government was written after I had left government service, and appears on my own responsibility, iinsponsored by the present independent government of Sierra Leone or by the
planned while
Archivist in Sierra Leone.
late colonial
It
government.
who have helped me write it I must thank my and brother-in-law Margaret and Cyril Mabey. Had they not brought me to Sierra Leone it would never have been written. I must also thank my parents whose roof sheltered me while I was writing. I am particularly indebted to those who have generously put family papers at my disposal Miss Lloyd Baker and Colonel A. B. Lloyd Baker (Granville Sharp papers), the late Mr T. C. Macaulay and Mrs Errington (Macaulay papers), Mr C. E. Wrangham (Wilberforce papers), and Mr and Mrs C. F. C. Letts (Bonner papers). I am also grateful to Miss Ruth Young, Mr Marcus Macaulay, Mr C. TobokuMetzger, Mr and Miss Daly, the Rev. Charles Leopold and the late Mrs Casely-Hayford for family reminiscences. Mr Charles Rhodoway Morrison and Sir Charles Gwynn have given me valuable personal reminiscences; Madam Isa Blyden and Miss Edith Holden have supplied information about Dr Blyden, Mr R. M. Hague about Sir John Jeffcott. I am also grateful to Mr B. Touch of the Countess of Huntingdon's Comiexion, to Monsieur Yves Person, Mr C. R. A. Cole, Mr Stiv Jakobsson, Miss Burton, Dr H. Marwick, Mr H. J. Channon and Mr Edward Hall who provided me witli, or gave Before
I
recall those
sister
—
me I
access to, material
must
also
I
could not have discovered alone.
thank the Committees of the Church Missionary Society
Rosemary Keen and Miss Belcher of the archive department), Methodist Missionary Society, and of the Society for the Propa-
(and Miss
of the
gation of the Gospel for permission to use their archives; the authorities at
Howard
University, Washington, d.c, at the Huntington Library,
San Marino, California,
at
Colonial Williamsburg, and
Library, University of Virginia, for letting their care
me
at the
Alderman
have manuscripts in
microfilmed; the librarian of Hull University for access to the
Thompson
papers; the librarians at the Royal Geographical Society
Rhodes House; Mr B. Cheeseman of the Colonial Office Mr Donald Simpson and the staff of the Royal Commonwealth Society library (and Mrs Simpson who typed out my manuscript); the staffs of the British Museum Manuscript, State Paper, and Reading Rooms and above all the successive members of the staff in the round room at the Public Record Office whose unwearied kindness and efficiency have so sweetened my labours. I owe a special debt to Dr M. C. F. Easmon whose help and encouragement inspired me to conceive the book in its present scope; to Averil Mackenzie-Grieve, John S. Woods, and the late Mr G. R. Mellor for helping me trace elusive documents; to Kenneth Dike whose Trade and and
at
library;
;
Politics in the
Niger Delta
made me
see
my work in a new light;
Peterson for checking some references for
me—but
stimulating conversation and criticism; and to has
let
me
far
more
to
John
for his
John Hargreaves who
use material he has collected in the French national archives,
and has been unfailingly ready with advice and assistance. Anyone who publishes their first book must realize how many there are whose indirect influence' he ought to acknowledge. I recall here particularly Dr Kurt Hahn. C.
F.
NOTE TO SECOND IMPRESSION About twenty small misprints and errors have been corrected for this impression. Once again I am grateful to Professor John Hargreaves, who pointed many of them out to me.
NOTE TO THIRD IMPRESSION Some more I
am
small corrections have been
made
for the third printing.
indebted for them to the published works or personal comments
of Professor Phihp Curtin,
Dr. David Dalby,
Dr. Paul Hair,
Dr.
Marwan Hanna, Mr. Adeleye Ijagbemi, the Reverend Matei Markwei, Monsieur Yves Person, and Mrs. Gail Stewart.
VI
CONTENTS page
Introduction
Chapter
I
I
13
II
38
m
59
IV
88
V
105
VI
127
vn
152
via
180
DC
207
X
239
XI
266
XII
292
xm
317
XIV
343
XV
367
XVI
394
XVII
427
xvm
457
XTK
478
XX
501
XXI
522
xxn
558
xxm
600
Guide to Sources
621
References
640
Index
725
vu
INTRODUCTION
THE
Sierra
Leone peninsula, a small mountainous lump forming of a wide estuary, protrudes abruptly from the
the south shore
The surrounding country is flat, swampy near the sea, for fifty to eighty miles inland. Then it rises, forming here and there mountains higher than those on the peninsula. From them flow roughly parallel rivers, which divide rather than open the West African
coast.
country, in that until twenty or thirty miles of the Atlantic, rocks and rapids obstruct
any but the shallowest
craft.
In the fifteenth century peoples speaking similar languages inhabited
On
and round the peninsula as far south as the Sherbro estuary were Bulom. Inland, and at the Scarcies mouth and northwards were Temne, migrants originally, it is said, from the north-east. Beyond them, up the Scarcies were Limba. In the mountainous country northwards were Susu and Fula (as the the coast.
name
been customarily rendered in Sierra
Fulani, Fulbe, or Peul, has
two peoples whose customs were similar but speech dissimilar. South of the Small Scarcies were Loko, like the Susu of Mande speech. Each seems to have been politically independent. The coastal peoples had similar religions. None were Muslim. Leone),
Portuguese peninsula
voyagers
Serra
in
mid-fifteenth
the
Lyoa from
century
wild-looking,
its
leonine
named
the
mountains
(other explanations have also been fancifully given). Corrupted through
the centuries into
many
without the
— Serra Lyonne, Sierra Leona, — the form Sierra Leone, pronounced
variants
Serre-Lions, Sierraleon, Serillioon
as
final e, has eventually prevailed.
Portuguese traders brought the factures: in return they
Bulom and Temne European manu-
gave slaves and ivory. The Susu,
regularly with the coastal peoples, bartering for
by the
Fula,
and iron worked from the
salt,
who
cloths
traded
woven
ferriferous rocks in their
also supplied a little gold. The Portuguese government claimed a trading monopoly, built a fort on the north shore of
coimtry,
the estuary, but abandoned it. Individual Portuguese defied the monopoly and settled down, trading and intermarrying with the inhabitants.
By
the early sixteenth century
some were
living in a
Bulom town on
— the south shore,
where
down from the mountains. Bulom who carved in ivory.
stream flowed
a
There were fine craftsmen among the The Portuguese commissioned them to make cellars
ornate spoons and
with European designs which they copied in
their
of African and European art. European ships were attracted to this watering-place,
own
salt-
style
a rare blend
anchorage on a largely surf-bound
coast.
Once
a sheltered
past the treacherous
rocks at the estuary mouth, they kept close to the southern shore avoiding the shoals in the middle, along the sandy bays below the mountains. It
became
a trading-centre.
Portuguese acting
Towards
as
The
chief in control was assured of trade, the
intermediaries between
him and
ship's-captains.
the mid-sixteenth century the coastal peoples
Portuguese called
(^apijis
(whom
the
or Sapes) were invaded by an inland people
whom the Portuguese called Manes. Having conquered the country round Cape Mount (about 150 miles south of the peninsula), they set off in war canoes up the Atlantic coast. Ferocious fighters. known also as *Sumbas' (which meant cannibals), they devastated Sherbro Island and the watering-place. As they went, Portuguese ships followed to enslave refugees: the Bulom king gave himself up as a slave rather than fall into their hands. Having conquered Bulom, Terrnie and Loko, they were defeated by the Susu and Fula. The Susu thenceforth took their trade to the Rio Nunez, about 200 miles to the north. The Manes were too few to people their conquered lands. Their king, Flansire (as the Dutch later recorded his name) returned to his kingdom of Quoja at Cape Mount, leaving sub-kings to rule. Europeans of many nationalities put in at Sierra Leone. Sir John Hawkins made three visits in the 1560s, taking away slaves to the West Indies. Drake called to water on his voyage round the world, and carved his name on a rock. In 1582 Edward Fenton put up an armorial plate in Elizabeth Ts name. But neither she nor any other European ruler exercised sovereignty there beyond granting their subjects trading rights. Portuguese traders settled up the nearby rivers, some in the Scarcies, some among the Loko, where they were given a monopoly. Their trading centre Os Alagoas became known as Port Logo, or Port Loko. They traded peaceably, but some ship's-captains, like Hawkins, seized slaves
without paying.
place took to
To protect themselves,
making European
the chiefs at the watering-
ships send hostages
on shore before
trading with them. In 1605 an elderly Portuguese Jesuit, Balthasar Barrcira, settled in Sierra Leone, ministering to the Portuguese, preaching to the Africans.
He
baptized several kings, and went up the Scarcies to the Bena coun-
try.
His
efforts to
convert the Susu king,
who had
were
invited him,
Muslim from the north. A Mani still ruled the Loko kingdom (known as Mitombo) at this time, and another the upper part of the south shore. The memory of his allegiance to the King of Quoja may survive in the name Quia or Koya the land adjoining the peninsula on the east. But the north shore was under a Bulom king. The watering-place too was held by a non-Mani, known after baptism as Dom Philip de Leon (though he may have been subordinate to his Mani neighbour). The Bulom tradition of ivory carving seems by this time to have been lost. forestalled
by an
itinerant
—
By
mid-seventeenth century
it
was
established that ships calling at
was known, must pay regular customs for water and firewood to the king of the south shore, the king of Bureh, whose town Bagos was up the river on the point between Rokel and Port Loko Creek. By then Temne, not Bulom, was spoken on the south shore. Whether or not the king still claimed to be a Mani, his people were Temne, who had displaced Bulom: Tura, ruling in 1690, had the Temne style Bai Tura. Temne also supthe watering-place in ^Frenchman's Bay', as
planted the
Loko
in
it
Mitombo.
Thus they cut off the Bulom on the north, or Bulom Shore from on the Atlantic coast of the peninsula and in the Sherbro estuary.
those
The name Sherbro (sometimes
confusingly written Sherbro')
ably derived from a chief's name. tants
who, though they
call
It
was
also
is
prob-
given to the inhabi-
themselves Bulom, are usually called
Sherbro.
No
king ruled very
power was
restricted
far.
by
from the
mysteries remain hidden
geographer, described trader
who
In the Sherbro-Cape
it,
Mount
a secret society, the Poro. uninitiated. Olfert
Its
probably from information given by
the country quiet, enforced obedience to
its
and the uninitiated
He
to witness
its rites.
society, social rather than political,
where
orders,
and forbade
his
Dutch it
kept
women
women's
were circumcized and
womanhood.
In Barreira's time, the king of the south shore customarily
of
a
—how
also described a
girls
its
Dapper, the Dutch
lived there in the early seventeenth century
prepared for
area, royal
origins like
absence. In the Sherbro
Seniora Maria, a
whom
left
one
were Bulom) to rule his towns in his seem to have also ruled on their own. Bulom, had her own town near Cape Sierra Leone
wives (some of
women
in the early eighteenth century.
Rice was their chief food. In the Sherbro, and the Gallinas estuary first on swampy ground, then on dry. It was also grown on the steep wooded slopes of the peninsula, where patches were roughly cleared and burnt. After the harvest they were left fallow and adjoining patches cultivated.
south of it, successive crops were sown,
English traders, licensed by the
Crown, visited Sierra Leone in the camwood, a hard timber, used to
early seventeenth century, buying
make
red dye, which could then be cut accessibly.
was an English 'factory' (as where camwood and ivory were
By at least
1628 there
trading posts were called) in the Sherbro,
Sherbro Island): a London firm.
plentiful (there
Wood &
were
still
elephants
on
Co., was well established
King Towa, who ruled the river and its nearby tributaries, granted them a trading monopoly. Camwood, cut up the Kittam and Bum (where they had a factory at Bamani), was brought down in
there
by
then.
shallow craft and loaded onto ships anchored off the north shore of
Sherbro Island. In 1663 Charles
ing into Africa the Sierra
II
chartered the Royal Adventurers of England Trad-
who
Leone
built forts in the
Sherbro and on Tasso Island in
estuary. Tasso fell in 1664 to
De
Ruyter, the Dutch
name at the watering-place), so the Royal Adventurers, or the Gambia Adventurers to whom they sub-let part of their trade, moved to the adjoining, more easily defenadmiral (who, like Drake, carved his
sible,
Bence
Island. It
may have been called
after Squire
Bence
who was
connected with both companies.
The Royal Adventurers were reconstituted in 1672 as the Royal African Company, and took over the Gambia Adventurers* trade when the lease expired. The Sherbro factory was moved in 1688 from the mainland at Shebar Straits to York Island, off the north-east corner of Sherbro Island, a central depot with sub-factories in the rivers. A stone fort was built with twenty cannon. Bcncc Island was fortified too. But neither resisted two French warships which plundered and destroyed them in 1704. Bence Island was abandoned till 171 3 then it was revived as a sub-factory under the Chief Agent at Sherbro. But York Island, low-lying and swampy, proved unhealthy, so in 1719 Bence Island ;
became
the headquarters.
The Company
paid 'Cole' (which included rent, tribute and the
right to trade) to the
King of Sherbro
the rivers for sub-factories.
When
for
York
Island,
and
the king died, if there
to kings in
was
a
long
interregnum, every chief might begin demanding Cole.
Some impor-
tant Sherbro chiefs also received regular payments, as did the kings at
Cape Mount when the Company traded there. Cole Bence Island was paid to the king at Bagos the king of the Scarcies and other rulers received Cole when the Company traded in their countries. Regular payments were also made on the Bulom Shore. Special charges were exacted at an agent's death, sometimes at his
the Gallinas and for
;
arrival or departure: a
king not invited to the York Island agent's
to seize some of the Company's made to stimulate or extend trade, as in open trade with the Limba country.
'Cry' (or wake) in 1714
felt entitled
goods. Payments were also
1679 to
Capuchins continued the mission. But it was small and hampered by growing English predominance. By the eighteenth century it had ceased, though priests occasionally paid visits, and some Africans and Afro-Portuguese went on professing Christianity. Afro-Portuguese acted as middlemen for Bence Island; they were advanced goods, usually repaid in ivory. But neither forts nor charters could prevent private traders encroaching on the Company. EnglishAfter Barreira
men
left in
1610, Jesuits and, later in the century.
settled near the watering-place to trade
were former
pirates
who welcomed
with passing
ships.
their old colleagues. In
Some
1719 and
1720 pirates captured and plundered Bence Island. Warships were then sent to put a
famous
them down.
pirate,
In 1726 the
'Pirates
Bay' where Bartholemew Roberts,
sank a merchant ship,
Company,
still
commemorates them.
increasingly doubtful whether to
go on
maintaining forts so easily taken, sent a surveyor, William Smith, to
of Bence Island fort, which mounted fifty cannon, shows a triple-bastioned stone wall facing the anchorage, protecting the houses where the Company's employees lived and the slaves' quarters; outside were villages for free labourers, or 'grumettas'. Smith was accompanied by an energetic governor who determined to
inspect. His plan
suppress
all
trading rivals, including the Afro-Portuguese. Intending to
divide them, diplomatically, in uniting
from
their African relatives,
he succeeded
both against him. hi October 1728 Lopez, an Afro-Portu-
guese, surprised the fort, drove liim out
and burnt
it.
The Company
then abandoned Sierra Leone.
During the seventeenth century Muslim Fula from the Upper Niger and Senegal began scttlmg in Futa Jalon, the mountainous country
where the
rivers
north of Sierra Leone
rise,
among
the
non-Mushm
and Yalunka. About 1725 they began a Holy War to convert and subdue their neighbours. By the end of the eighteenth century Futa Jalon had become an Islamic state. Fula, Susu
The war pushed many
Susu, converted or unconverted, south and
west. Small groups settled
among
conquering them, or driving them
the Limba, at east.
Others
first
peaceably, then
moved
to the coast to
Temne and Bulom north of the Scarcies. Susu immigrants whom Temne chiefs allowed to build a town opposite dominate the Baga,
Loko at Sendugu gradually wrested power from them; eventually Sanko family, MusHms of Serakule origin, supplanted them alto-
Port the
gether.
The Sulima Yalunka
at first
powerful they renounced Jalon.
They founded
it,
their
new
the source of the Rokel. Others the
accepted Islam.
Then
as the
Fula
grew
fought them, and were driven from Futa capital Falaba in the
went further
mountains near
into the mountains
among
Koranko, Kisi and Limba.
Muslim adventurers
—Fula,
—
Mandinka and Susu dispersed too (though they are perhaps more exactly classified by family than by national names). The Loko invited a Mandinka from Kankan to be their chief A Fula styled Fula Mansa (or king) became ruler of the Yoni country south of the Rokel. Some of his Temne subjects, afraid he would sell them, fled, and settled ultimately near the Jong, where they became known as the Banta or Mabanta people. Non-Limba chiefs ruled the Limba. Thus throughout the coastal area peoples were ruled by aliens. Muslim Mandinka traders also spread through the country, singly or in groups, from the interior. Interested primarily in trading, they also spread the knowledge of Islam. Europeans tended to describe any Muslim trader as a *Mandingo'. Meanwhile in the Sherbro hinterland the Mende, a people of Mande speech, untouched by Islam, were moving towards the sea. At the end of the eighteenth century they were still an inland people, though coming to the coast to trade woven cloths for salt. They displaced, or replaced, a people
By
who
carved soapstone figures, 'Nomoli'.
the eighteenth century the Vai, a people of
from
Mande
speech,
of their immediate neighbours, were settled at the Gallinas estuary. By tradition they migrated from the Mani country inland. An oflshoot of their migration, the Kono, stopped off in the mountainous interior. It may be that they arc the 'Manes', confined differing
that
where they
to the place its
first
reached the coast,
known by
the
name of
original inhabitants, the Vai.
The Royal African Company was wound up vested in the
Company of Merchants Trading
in 1752.
Its forts
were
into Africa, a holding
a government grant. The abandoned Bence had already been bought by a London firm Grant, Oswald and Sargent. The buildings were restored: a drawing of 1745 shows it fortified again. For a while it was called George Island, but the old name persisted, corrupted into *Bance Island'. Thus it was known until the later nineteenth century when (perhaps through confusion with the Bunce River opposite) it became 'Bunce Island*. French rivals, trading from ships, cut out much of its trade; in 1772 a French trader settled on Gambia Island, at the mouth of the Bunce River. Bunce Island was well fortified and though its defences were ill-maintained it was reckoned the best English fort on the Coast. Its amenities included a two-hole golf course. But when the French attacked in 1779, during the American War, it fell, as before, almost undefended, and was destroyed. It was rebuilt, but its trade declined. In 1785 after Richard Oswald's death it passed to his nephews John and
company supported by Island fort
Alexander Anderson.
The Temne chief at Robana granted a French officer land for a on Gambia Island in 1785. Rough defences were built and a garrison installed. But it was unhealthy, without water, surrounded by swamps, and after a few years most of the troops were withfactory
drawn.
An
English firm had a factory in Whiteman's Bay, west of the
murdered the agent. Such murders were rare in a country where European traders and the goods they brought were so prized it was a capital offence even to watering-place. Early in the 1770s the people
No
European dared settle there until 1785 when John Matthews, an unemployed naval officer, went out for the firm, made peace with the chief, and rebuilt the factory. strike one.
In
1785 the British government considered relieving the over-
crowded prisons by transporting convicts to West Africa. Sierra Leone was among the possible stations. But Burke denounced in ParHament the cruelty of sending convicts to certain death in a fatal climate, a naval officer sent to report advised against healthier site
was chosen
at
Botany Bay.
West
Africa,
and
a
The hope of making
a fortune in the slave trade attracted
many
European adventurers to Sierra Leone and its vicinity. Some settled on the Banana Islands (where an armorial tombstone commemorates a Liverpool ship 's-cap tain
who
south-east, the Rev.
Islands,
died there in 1712).
John Newton,
On
writer, in his unregenerate days as a slave trader, passed a
persecuted by his English master's the
Bulom
the Plantain
and hymnyear of misery,
abolitionist
mistress.
Others settled along
many river banks.
The trader would get permission to trade from the chief whose town he settled in, giving presents, or 'dashes' in return. Sometimes superior kings exacted duties too. The chief would then agree, in return for regular payments, like 'Cole', or perhaps a commission on sales, to become his 'landlord', responsible for his safety. If he were involved in a dispute the landlord settled
it.
A
landlord was not only
responsible for upholding his 'stranger's' interests, but accountable for
Thus the
his misdeeds.
chiefs
could go on settling disputes themselves
without interference.
The
trader
would wait v^th
of goods
his stock
until slaves
and
produce were brought for sale, or advance goods to those who would go and fetch them. The landlord assumed responsibility for collecting debts so credit could be safely given. If a customer defaulted, the landlord seized his relatives, or other inhabitants
them pay or
sold them. So the trader's
of
life
his village,
and
either
made
was peaceful and sedentary,
waiting for agents or customers to bring goods, and for ships to
sell
them to. Those living where no ships came had to sell at the factories. Along the coast south of Cape Mount ship 's-cap tains often took slaves by force, kidnapping (called 'panyaring') unsuspecting Africans who came aboard to trade. The victim's countrymen would retaliate by attacking the next European crew who came their way from the same port (following
A
own
their
principle
of
collective
responsibility).
Lancaster captain became so notorious for kidnapping in the 1780s
had to send their ships from Liverpool for fear of captain making his last voyage might kidnap indiscrimin-
that Lancaster firms reprisals.
ately
all
A
along the Coast, leaving the consequences to others. Settled
Gold Coast traders, European dignity), deplored such irresponsible violence wliich undermined the mutual trust their business rested on, and threatened their own safety. Many slaves were brought from inland, passing usually through
traders,
dependent on
entrenched
several
in
their landlords (to a degree
castles,
thought
middlemen's hands. Only
degrading
in the
to
Rio Nunez-Rio Pongas area
did Fula caravans bring
them
wars activated by the
Mushm
direct.
Some were
captives, taken in the
conquest of Futa Jalon; the Sulima
Yalunka, for example, sold their defeated Limba or Kisi opponents to
Susu middlemen.
war were usually criminals: in coastal areas, at anyone to be sold without being charged with a crime. Theft, adultery, debt and witchcraft were all grounds for sale. As it was generally believed that no one died or fell ill suddenly without having been bewitched, charges of witchcraft were frequent. Slaves not taken in
least, it
was
rare for
Suspects were usually tried
by
ordeal, like drinking 'red water'
which
they had to vomit to prove their innocence. Only in Mushm areas, where adulterers were flogged, and charges of witchcraft less frequent, were slaves regularly obtained by kidnapping. Europeans paid for slaves in manufactured goods, otherwise unobtainable. Though 'country cloths', narrow cotton strips sewn together and dyed, were woven, imported textiles were in great demand. More textiles were imported than any other commodity; by the end of the eighteenth century Manchester cottons were supplanting East India. Guns were specially manufactured in Birmingham for the West African market. Imported tobacco was preferred to the inferior kind grown on the Coast, rum and brandy to palm wine. Payments were made in 'bars'. Originally a bar of iron given in barter, the bar became by mid-seventeenth century a conventional medium of exchange so many pieces of calico or baft, so many guns or barrels of rum, were valued at so many bars. As the prices of goods bought in Europe fluctuated more than the rate of bars fixed on the Coast, the trader could usually make a profit by combining the goods making up his bars so that what he had bought cheap predominated. So for a slave valued fifty bars one trader might ofler a consignment chiefly of tobacco, another of copper basins, as he could make most :
profit.
Customers, in return, learnt to
of high-valued
bars.
They
insist
on taking
a certain
proportion
not with the
also learnt to sell their slaves in lots,
individually, so forcing the purchaser to take the sickly
healthy.
They would refuse to do business without As they grew experienced in trade slave
free drinks.
were bought
at
Bence Island
for forty to sixty in 1725. in
Sierra
Leone was over
first
being given
men
prices rose:
for eighteen to twenty-four bars in 1678,
By
1787 the price of
five times
what
it
a
slave in sterling
had been
a
century
earlier. 821613
o
B
Thus from
the fifteenth century the coastal peoples
Europeans.
When York
lation least
Island
was
a
were habituated
of the Sherbro was larger than for another two
centuries.
one brought a European wife. Most had African wives. When
children
grew
up, the
to
headquarters the European popu-
Company employed
them.
At
their
Two sons of Zachary
Rogers, chief Sherbro agent 1677-81, went to trade in the Gallinas early
They
in the eighteenth century.
of Massaquoi to found
into the ruling family
powerful
the
as
or their descendants a
may have
dynasty almost
(though tradition declares
chief's
Englishman, Charles Rogers,
Henry Tucker, perhaps
who came
a descendant
married
its
as
founder an
straight out to the Gallinas).
of another of the Company's
early employees (though tradition also traces the Tuckers back to an
independent English trader), was established on the mainland by the
Shebar
Straits
silver plate.
by
the mid-eighteenth century, a rich trader, eating off
His wealth
won him Newton's In 1684
set
him above
the Sherbro chiefs; his honesty
praise.
Thomas Corker came out from London
to the Sherbro in
Company's service. He was employed for a couple of years in the became chief agent York Island, was transferred thence to the Gambia, and died in England in 1700. He had sons, Stephen and Robin, by a lady known to the English as Seniora Doll, Duchess of Sherbro: Bulom tradition knows her as a member of the Ya Kumba family who ruled on the shore of Yawry Bay, between the Sierra Leone peninsula the
rivers,
and the Sherbro
estuary.
She died
in 1722.
Their descendants, keeping
the paternal surname, inherited the maternal claim to the cliiefdom,
which they extended to include the Plantain and Banana Islands. A Corker chief's daughter married William Cleveland (or Clevland)
who is said to have belonged to a respectable Devonshire and been brother to the Secretary of the Admiralty. He settled on the Banana Islands, died in 1758 and was buried in the Bance Island graveyard. Their son James turned against the Corkers. Educated in a slave-trader,
family,
Liverpool, he increased his loca]
power by joining
the Poro. In April
1785 he sent a force to the Plantains, surprised chief Charles Corker,
and cut off his head.
There were no large towns or kingdoms in Sierra Leone in the eighteenth century. Some rulers were called kings, and had ascendancy over others but their powers were hmitcd. They lived by trade, receiving customary presents from their people, and regular revenue from their
^strangers'.
They
of European
also enforced laws
salt,
to protect their
of trade,
own
like forbidding the
import
But those who European manu-
salt-makers.
prospered could not build up capital. Their riches, factures, were unproductive consumer goods, soon worn out, drunk, or given
away
who
to their subjects,
looked to them for maintenance.
dominant power in the Sherbro. Newton declared it an excellent institution which secured its members a high degree of political freedom. By the early nineteenth century it had spread to the Temne country. The Temne also had their own men's society, Ragbenle, and a woman's society, Bundu. The Susu too had
The Poro was
Poro and
woman's
a
the
still
society.
Following European example,
men took to wearing coats and trousers.
Chiefs bought gorgeous footman's liveries, resplendant with gold lace,
and
sat
on
chairs. Friendly ship's-cap tains
would send
England. Settled traders
sometimes took them to
their children
by
visit
their African
wives to school there, and encourage chiefs to do the same, employing them as agents on their return. There were said to be about fifty, boys
and
girls, in
Liverpool in 1789, others in
London and
of Sierra Leone sent one son to Lancaster in 1769
Bristol.
A
King
to learn Christianity,
another to Futa Jalon to learn Islam.
means to outwit European business apart from outward elegancies, the edu-
Education was chiefly prized rivals.
Once back
in Africa,
as a
cated tended to assimilate themselves to their children their mothers'
—
people again.
Where
own
—or
if traders'
the slave trade provided
was no incentive for them to introduce the industries, or improved farming, they might have seen in England. Some European traders grumbled that the people showed no moral improvement, and only ridiculed attempts to convert them to Christianity. But there was httle to attract them to a religion professed by men who only came to cheat and sell them. As Bishop Thomas Wilson
so easy a livelihood, there
observed in
his Essay towards an Instruction for the Indians,
published in
1740, the intelligent heathen were bound to be repelled by discrepancies between Christian precept and practice.
Newton, in retrospect, felt that if the Bulom benefited materially by contact with Europe, morally they were worse ofl'. Indeed some traders dropped even the pretence of moral superiority most continued to feel, gave up European ways and adopted African, so that after a few years residence little but their colour distinguished them. It was estimated in 1789 that about 74,000 slaves were exported annually from West Africa, about 38,000 by British firms. Matthews II
in his
^
Voyage
to the
River Sierra Leone published in 1788, an apologia y
for the slave trade, which includes information about local customs, trading methods and natural products, estimated about 3,000 bought between Rio Nunez and Sherbro. About ^^ 500,000 worth of British manufactures were imported annually, chiefly for slaves. Thus the slave trade gave a livelihood to a large British business interest
— to
manufacturers producing trade goods, trading middlemen, shippers
and
market where they could the price of one another's bodies.
investors, as well as giving Africans a
easily obtain
European goods
at
12
.
I
MANY
Africans lived in England in the eighteenth century.
Most were imported
for domestic service
from Africa or the
transatlantic colonies; a few, freed in the colonies, safer
home. After
1772,
when Lord
case that a master could not reclaim a free.
found
it
a
Mansfield declared in Somerset's
former slave in England,
all
were
African in origin, even those born in Africa were cut off from
homeland; those born in colonial slavery knew it only by hearsay. Yet in their new land of adoption they were strangers. their
Two
Ottobah Cugoano in Thoughts Olaudah Equiano (or Gustavus Vassa, the name he went by) in his Interesting Narrative published in 1789. Kidnapped from West Africa (Cugoano was a Fanti, Equiano an Ibo), sold to the West Indies, the former was brought to England as a servant, the latter made his way after many adventures. Both learnt to read and write, and became Christians. Vassa wanted to return to Africa as a missionary. Theirs were not the first books by wrote accounts of
and Sentiments on
the Evil
their lives,
of Slavery published in 1787,
Africans published in England: Ignatius Sancho's Letters, for example,
appeared in 1782. They
holograph
name John
letter
may
well have been helped to write them: a
of Cugoano's
Stuart)
is
that survives (written
styhstically
under
his
English
very different from the high flown
periods of his book.
But, helped or not, each pointed out what England could do for Africa, Africa for England.
Cugoano
called
on
the
government to send twenty years his
a fleet to suppress the slave trade; within just over
proposal was being adopted. Both insisted that English industry
would
benefit if the slave trade ceased. Vassa in his book, and in a letter to the
Secretary of State, suggested that treating Africans as customers, not
merchandise,
would bring manufacturers
Supposing', he wrote, *the Africans, collectively and individually, to expend Five
Pounds
Head
vast profits.
*
Raiment and Furniture yearly, when civilized etc. of a Continent Ten Thousand Miles in Circumference, and immensely rich in Productions of every denomination, .' would make an interesting Return indeed for our Manufactories a
in
.
.
the Cloathing etc.
.
13
.
end of the War of American Independence some of the former left Republican or Loyalist masters in response to proclamations offering them freedom if they served against the rebels, found their way to London. Sailors stranded at the end of a voyage also
At
the
slaves
who had
swelled the African population. Unlike those in service they lacked
employers to protect them. Friendless, often
destitute,
they wandered
the streets, distressing the kind-hearted, alarming the timorous and propertied. In January 1786 a committee, chiefly City business
men,
published an appeal in the newspapers for contributions to relieve the
Hanway, champion of chimney sweeps, fallen women and other outcasts, eventually became chairman. Behind it, though with characteristic modesty not a member, was *Black Poor'. Jonas
who had
brought James Somerset before the courts and given the 'Black Poor' their charter of freedom. A man of unGranville Sharp
shakeable principle,
who
resigned his post under the Board of Ordnance
making arms to fight the Americans like Hanway, championed the
rather than be connected with
whom
he sympathized with, he,
neglected and oppressed, devoting himself single-mindedly to the causes he adopted with that unselfconscious eccentricity
sometimes
The
which
is
allied to saintliness.
appeal raised
buted food daily
at
X^^^
^^ ^
^^^ months. The Committee
public houses in Paddington and Mile
distri-
End Green,
opened a hospital, and found berths for those who wanted to go back to sea. But the number of those seeking relief increased steadily. Most were Africans, a few Indians, chiefly lascars. As those who had served in the American War had some claim to official recompense, and all swelled the number of vagrants, the Committee decided to approach the government. It was suggested they be shipped to a country where they could fmd work, like Nova Scotia, where thousands of refugee Loyalists were settled on the land and labour was scarce.
An
ingenious amateur botanist
Islands in
Henry Smeathman
1771 to gather specimens
Banana London. His Swedish pupil of Linvisited the
for collectors in
knowledge was slight; for a wliile a naeus, Anders Berlin, helped him. The 'Flycatcher' as he called himself (and was remembered by the people on the Bananas) left after three years for the West bidies, and eventually London, where he read the Royal Society a paper on termites. He also lived in Paris, occupying himself chiefly with air balloons. But he dreamed of returning to botanical
14
colonize and cultivate the unexplored riches of Africa neglected
by
slave traders.
Hard pressed by creditors, he wrote to the Committee for the Black Poor in February 1786, offering to take their charges, for -^4 a head, to found a settlement near the Sierra Leone River. A year before, he had told the Committee investigating a possible convict station in
West
Africa
hundred
a
(p.
7) .that convicts
month.
Now
would
he painted
a
die there at the rate
land of immense
fertility,
of a per-
who lived temperately, where the soil need only be scratched with a hoe to yield grain in abundance, where livefectly healthy for those
stock propagated themselves with a rapidity
unknown
in a
cold
where a hut provided adequate shelter at all seasons. He stressed the commercial advantages of a settlement which would repay initial outlay by opening new channels of trade. The Committee were impressed and recommended his plan to the Treasury. The Treasury agreed and accepted fmancial responsibility for the 'Black Poor', leaving the Committee to make arrangements for their departure. climate,
Only former
the prospective emigrants suspected a plan to send them, chiefly slaves, to a centre
angued them and
of the
won them
slave trade.
Hanway went and
har-
round.
Like Cugoano and Vassa, Smeathman held out the double lure of
and philanthropy. When the Committee examined his motives closely they found the former predominated. Agreeing to abominate the sale of human beings, he had no objection to buying them; the *true principles of commerce' his plan was based on, provided for plantations worked by slaves purchased on the Coast. He was backed by two business
London merchants anxious
to invest in large-scale cotton-growing,
uninterested in the settlers. So that his
when he
died in July
it
may
be assumed
connexion with the Committee was only severed prematurely.
Conscience-stricken,
Hanway
felt
Smeathman had
tried to lure the
emigrants into a trap. For though the Treasury was paying to send
them away, settled.
was no provision for protecting them once they were So the Committee went back to considering settlement across there
the Atlantic.
Smeathman's plan had attracted African domestic servants, stirred by the vision of returning to their ancestral home, as well as destitute Loyalists and sailors. Now they were determined to go nowhere else. In vain they were warned of the danger. The fifteen corporals, or headmen, chosen to represent them told the Committee that a native of Sierra Leone then in London had assured them the people there would
69 515
them joyfully. They asked that Smeathman's friend Joseph Irwin him in charge. They went in groups to see Sharp, who was in friendlier touch with them than any of the Committee, to get his sympathy. Even the lascars preferred Africa. So insistent were they, the Committee had to agree to their going to Sierra Leone after all. The Treasury, only anxious to get them out of England, made no objection. receive
succeed
more than a receptacle unwanted vagrants. In Somerset's case he had provided them with a charter: in Sierra Leone he looked to provide a country and a constitution. His version of current constitutional theories antedated the American the settlers had already spent a week in Sierra Leone when the constituent convention met in Philadelphia. His Short Sketch of Temporary Regulations {until better shall be proposed) was a constitution bound by a social contract rooted in history, in the institutions of the Anglo-Saxon monarchy, and of Israel under the judges. Its bond was the old English system of Frankpledge ('strictly enjoined', he once Granville Sharp intended the settlement to be
for
:
,
wrote,
'in
Magna
would form sible for
Carta
a tithing,
as a
fundamental law'). Every ten householders
every ten tithings
a
hundred, collectively respon-
preserving order and keeping watch against outside enemies,
each householder with a voice in a
Headmen were
Common
Council.
already chosen, to prepare
them
for the responsi-
of self-government. Every prospective settler had to sign a which included a clause where each 'binds and obliges himself or herself to the other settlers for the Protection and Preservation of
bilities
contract
their
common
Freedom'.
As they insisted on documentary proof of their being free, to protect them against slave traders, they were given parchment certificates bearing the Royal Arms, granting them the status of free citizens of *the Colony of Sierra Leone or the Land of Freedom'. But they were not real passports. They were only signed by the Clerk of the Acts of the Navy. For, though they swore allegiance to the king, once established, they became free settlers in the Land, or as Sharp usually called
it.
Province of Freedom, their
own
country, ruling themselves
without reference to higher authority.
Towards
the end of October the
BelisariuSy
and Vernon,
to
Navy Board
Dcptford to take the i6
sent transports, Atlantic,
settlers.
When it came
to
embarking, their enthusiasm waned. hostile reports in the press. tiser
that they
were
frightened
away by
really being sent to a penal colony, misrepresenting
Sharp's regulations to military rule.
Some were
Correspondents wrote to the Public Adver-
Some
make
it
appear they would be under
feared the expedition being fitted out for
strict
Botany
Bay might take them off to the Antipodes. Some suspected government might abandon them to slave traders. So though nearly 700 signed the agreement, by the end of November only 259 were on board. The Committee got the City authorities to round up any still begging in the streets, yet by January 1787 only two ships were filled. While the transports waited in the Thames, about seventy London prostitutes, outcasts too,
but not for their colour, embarked. According
some of them
were made drunk, brought aboard, and married to settlers. Some have seen in this episode (which most writers of even the most cursory account of Sierra Leone usually include) a sinister plot, have assumed that the government put the women on board, even that Sharp connived at it. Nothing is less likely than that Sharp, rabidly puritanical, would have agreed to what he must have conceived the contamination of a settlement he intended to be founded on strict Christian principles. The Treasury, Admiralty and Navy Board papers dealing with the embarkation do not mention the women. The hostile press has nothing of a story ready-made to discredit the expedition. Lack of evidence to the to the story
told four years later, they
contrary supports the conclusion that the for
themselves, anxious
settlers
more female company, took on board whatever
forty-one
women
of
their
own
offered.
Only
colour embarked, and though a few
had European wives, even with the prostitutes added, most had none. It is also doubtful whether under the then law such 'marriages' could have bound the women. Had they really wanted to return on shore they had ample time and opportunity.
At
least a
dozen plainly
consented to go, for they signed the agreement. So even if brought forcibly aboard, they must have agreed to stay, lured by visions of a rosy future with their
Sharp wanted the
new partners
in the Province
renounce the
of Freedom.
of a monetary economy. based on individual labour, with a special tax on those too proud or idle to work. He was ready to take in any industrious European (if Protestant), particularly those who could teach a craft. So the sailing lists included about twenty artisans, settlers to
evils
He proposed instead a medium of exchange
17
some with and
a
town-major to build
families, a
fortifications, five doctors
sexton. Sharp persuaded the Archbishop
of Canterbury who wanted
Patrick Frazer (or Fraser), a Scottish Presbyterian
to let
to
go
be ordained into the Church of England; the Society for the Propagation of the Gospel allowed him -^50 a year and books. Irwin succeeded Smeathman as Agent Conductor. He had charge of as chaplain,
were on board, and on arrival was and built, paid with one lot in ten.
the settlers while they
town
No
laid
out in
lots
to
have the
expense was spared fitting out the expedition on a scale far
exceeding Smeathman's estimate. The Treasury gave the
Navy Board much as
a free hand, merely requesting that the public be spared as
Over ^10,000 worth of stores and provisions were supplied: came to over -^15,000. The Comptroller of the Navy, Sir Charles Middleton (later Lord Barham) an active opponent of the slave
possible.
the final
bill
trade, ready to befriend Africans, appointed Gustavus Vassa
mended
to Sharp
Commissary
by General Oglethorpe,
(recom-
the founder of Georgia)
to the expedition.
and Belisarius left the Thames for Portsmouth where Captain T. Boulden Thompson was waiting for them with a Navy ship, the Nautilus sloop. There fever broke out, so the Vernon, still unfilled, was sent to take some of the passengers and relieve congestion. The epidemic ceased, and on February the 23 rd the convoy sailed. In the Channel a storm sprang up. The Vernon lost her fore top-mast and was carried with the Nautilus to Torbay; the other two made for Plymouth. There they reassembled to wait another In the middle ofJanuary the Atlantic
month while
the Vernon
At Plymouth ties
who
repaired.
the passengers
wandered
ashore, alarming the authori-
feared they might stay behind. Vassa began accusing Irwin to
Navy Board of cheating in settlers. He wrote Cugoano, who
Thompson and ill-treating the letter
was
the
which appeared
in the
ordering stores, and stayed in London, a
newspapers calling Irwin, Frazer and the
was accused of stirring up mutiny against the Europeans. The people began refusing to attend Frazer's services. Thompson wrote in alarm to the Admiralty about the growsenior surgeon, villains. He, in turn,
ing turbulence, wliich he had no authority to check.
was
deliberately fomenting
it,
He
believed Vassa
but also reported Irwin unfit for his
Middleton was inclined to support Vassa. Irwin hurried to London to sec Samuel Hoare, a Quaker banker who had succeeded Hanway (who died in September 1786) as Chairman of the Committee; at his representations the Treasury agreed Vassa be
post, neglectful
of his
duties.
18
dismissed and the purser of the Nautilus be given charge of the stores.
Vassa and twenty-three associates were put on shore. Eventually the
Treasury gave him -£$0 compensation. On April the 8th they set out again. When the transports there
had been 456 passengers. Vassa recorded them
41 black cliildren;
women,
11 black children, 70
white
as
left
London
290 black men, and 6 white
women
the remaining 38 were officials or craftsmen with their
and i private passenger. Over 50 died on board; 24 were landed Plymouth; 23 ran away. But more were sent to replace them.
families at
Finally 411 sailed.
Leone normally took three or four weeks. The return passage, when ships had to sail out to midAtlantic for a wind to carry them north might take much longer. The convoy put in at Teneriffe, stayed nearly a week, and entered the Sierra
The
passage
from England
Leone River on
May
to Sierra
the loth, anchoring in Frenchman's
Bay
at the
historic watering-place.
were to take the settlers to Sierra Leone, from the chiefs, land the stores, and stay in the river to help them as long as provisions and crew's health allowed. If the chiefs refused, he was to go on down the coast till he found some more accommodating. The following day he saluted King Tom, the chief at the watering-place (part of whose realm, the adjoining peninsula, still bears that name), and went ashore to negotiate. Tom was a sub-chief under Naimbana who lived up the river at Robana and Robaga (on or near the site of the former Bagos) (p. 3) and had ruled the Koya Temne since 1775. Styled king, he was a regent (and may perhaps have been of part Mandinka origin); he seems also to have been overlord of the Bulom Shore. It was he who ceded the French Gambia Island in 1785 (p. 7). *King Annamboyna' (as the Nautilus log called him) came down after a fortnight, spent a night on board, but left without making any agreement. When a treaty was made on June the nth, only King Tom and his sub-chiefs Pa Bongce and Queen Yamacouba put their marks to it. Some write the titles King and Queen these rulers bore in inverted commas. Certainly their kingdoms were small: Tom's was only a few villages. But they were subject to no European. Naimbana spoke, as of an equal, of liis friend George in. So the historian may adopt the style their own European contemporaries readily addressed them by.
Thompson's
instructions
acquire a settlement
19
In return for
^59
is
5^ worth of trade goods
—muskets, gunpowder,
shot, swords, laced hats, cotton goods, beads, iron bars, tobacco
rum
and gave up the shore from the watering-place to Gambia stretch of nine or ten miles, to a depth of twenty miles.
— they
Island, a
On May the
15 th the people
disembarked and cut their
way through
the bush to the top of the hill overlooking the watering-place (the
present Government House site), where they planted the British flag. There at Thompson's suggestion they started their settlement. The hill was named St George's Hill, Frenchman's Bay St George's Bay, the
Town,
after Granville Sharp. Then, that Sharp be name, the settlers elected their officers, choosing Richard Weaver (one of the first to embark at Deptford) Chief in Command, or Governor, of the Province of Freedom. Tents were put up for temporary shelter, town lots laid out and allotted.
settlement Granville
honoured
in
The long year.
deed
as in
delays in sailing brought
Four days
after
them
prelude to the rainy season, which usually or June, reaches
its
to land at the worst time
of
anchoring there was a heavy thunderstorm, the starts in Sierra
Leone
peak with almost daily downpours
in
in July
May and
August, and slackens in September and October. Even on the voyage
many,
cooped up on board, fell ill fourteen died before they Now fever and dysentery broke out while rain, heavier that year than for many years, beat down their tents. Within three months about a third were dead. Irwin had no disciplinary powers over them. When they refused to do what he wanted he washed his hands of them, went back to the Vernon, took ill and died. They declined to build Frazer a church so he had to hold his services under a large tree. Sick and discouraged, he went off to Bance Island. Thompson, without legal powers over them, did what he could to maintain order: the Nautilus log shows he had so long
:
reached Teneriffe.
two the
settlers
less
flogged for insolence and misbehaviour.
disheartened to build a store-house, and plant
of August the
He
stores
He encouraged rice. By the end
were unloaded and the transports
sent
stayed until September the i6th when, after landing the
home. settlers'
arms and ammunition, and sending King Tom a present, he sailed away. While the settlers were dying daily only one man died on board the Nautilus and that through liis own carelessness. Otherwise the crew remained healthy. They had strict orders not to sleep, or do unnecessary manual work, on shore. Canary wine, wliich Thompson found health-giving in the tropics, was specially shipped at Tencntie, 20
This record of health contrasted so strikingly with mortality on shore that the sponsors of the settlement climate for salt
misfortunes. Sharp
its
food, and drinking the daily
felt
they could not blame the
blamed the
rum
settlers for
embarked. Thompson blamed the choice of
over-eating
them
ration allowed
since they
declaring
settlers,
them
drunken and lawless, imfit to colonize. was assumed that an agricultural community would arise on the soil Smeathman had declared so fertile: Sharp, dreaming of the primitive simplicity of pastoral life, imagined he was planting a breed of sturdy farmers. When the rains lessened, the survivors began cultivating. But the gardener sent with them had been one of the first to die. So did the seeds brought from England. Nothing would grow on the hill where Thompson put them, so they moved lower down to damper soil. They had to barter their stores, even their muskets and clothes, with the Temne for rice. Later they were reproached with having sold improvidently what the government had provided for their subsistence and protection, but being without crops, livestock or proper trade goods, they had no other alternative to starving. James Reid, a literate settler, who was elected to succeed Weaver as Governor, wrote asking Sharp whether some business agent could not come out to supply them with goods and credit, till their crops were vicious, It
established.
Unable to gain
a livelihood, they
began drifting away to work on
passing ships or for neighbouring slave-traders.
When
Frazer returned
England in March 1788 he reported that on his last visit to the settlement only 130 were left. Sharp determined to send out another ship with more settlers, well supphed with livestock. to
He had already paid out nearly loans he
was unlikely
;/^500 in gifts to the
to recover to individuals.
Treasury (which had spent over (p.
another
18) to give
;;/^200
community or
He
-^15,000 on the
in
persuaded the
first
expedition)
towards livestock; a friend, probably
Samuel Whitbrcad, the brewer, gave 100 guineas. Otherv^dse the cost of the new venture fell on him. By the end of 1788 he reckoned he had spent altogether ^i,73S iSs Sd
on
the Province of Freedom.
Captain John Taylor, owner and master of the Myro brig, was engaged to take out the
new
Remembering
the mortality
emigrants and buy stock
at the Cape Verde Islands. on the first transports Sharp arranged for only fifty passengers, though the ship held seventy. In the end only thirty-nine embarked, some of them, including two doctors, Europeans. Spruce beer was substituted for rum, Whitbread adding a
21
present of porter. Sharp suggested (for he
was
careful never to order,
always to treat the 'worthy passengers', the 'worthy inhabitants',
as
equals) they levy a fme on any found drunk. Despite precautions,
twelve died on the voyage, four stayed
at the islands. Taylor, instead of took out trade goods, bought with the money Sharp provided, and gave them to the settlers instead. By disobeying Sharp
buying
cattle,
he did the
vaUd on
The
settlers a
good
turn, supplying
them with
the only currency
the coast.
huts were unprotected
from
town-major sent to build a fort had been one of the first to die. Thus they were at the mercy of Temne neighbours who sent, as they wrote to Sharp, 'repeated challenges to our senit\ When two of them annoyed King settlers'
Tom he
sold
them
to a passing French ship.
In June 1788 five settlers store. settler
attack: the
went up
to
Bance
Island
and robbed the
Captain Bowie, Messrs Andersons' agent, threatened to
every
seize
he saw unless the culprits were produced, so the Governor
gave them up. They were found guilty (seven traders or
'banishment',
and
ship's-captains
which meant
them
selling
Bance
at
Island
by
a
jury
and sentenced to French ship. Alexander
five settlers)
to a
Anderson subsequently admitted to a Parhamentary Committee that was illegal to sell British subjects, but that they might be sold in case of necessity if natives of Africa. King Tom died about this time. Naimbana who, never having it
agreed to the treaty, disclaimed
them warning who had left
to quit.
all
But when
responsibility for the settlers,
the
Myro
the settlement returned with
arrived in August,
new
gave
many
hopes. Naimbana,
revived, agreed to let them stay if Taylor would make a new of purchase with him. Taylor was not authorized to make treaties. He was not in government service, and though the treaty he made described the Myro as His Britannic Majesty's brig, she was in fact his own. But he seized a chance of getting rid of a consignment of pistols, cheeses, satin coats and waistcoats, bottles of port, barrels of seeing
it
treaty
mock diamond ring, which he handed over on the settlers' behalf as the price of the new grant. On his return he claimed ^85 15 yd from government as the value
pork and
a
of the treaty goods, adding
a
claim for -^50 los spent entertaining
and forty followers for a fortnight. The Treasury reimbursed brought government's expenditure for the Black Poor to ^15,679 135 ^d, the Tenmes' price
chiefs
him
for the treaty, not the entertainment. This
for their land to ^^ 144 35 in trade goods.
22
Taylor's treaty, signed August the 22nd 1788,
beginning of the Colony Thompson's, which :
it
is
deemed
the legal
expressly repudiated,
Naimbana and James Dowder put their marks, Pa Bongee and Dick Robbin their signatures James Dowder may be King Tom's successor, more usually known as King Jimmy, or Jemmy; Dick Robbin later took the name Prince Tom. Taylor, Richard Weaver, Thomas Peall (a doctor who came out in the Myro, then, repenting his boldness, returned in her) and Benjamin Elliott, a settler who came out in the Belisarius, signed is
not included
in the official collection
of
treaties.
;
for the settlers.
Governors succeeded one another briskly in the Province of Freethe first, fell ill in September 1787 and James Reid was
dom. Weaver,
elected to succeed him. stores
and was
Weaver
recovered, accused Reid of stealing the
June 1788 John Lucas, as Governor, and Chief Justice, handed the five settlers over to
reinstated. In
Charles Studdard,
as
Bowie; in August Weaver signed the treaty, but Lucas is described as Governor in an additional article, repudiating the earlier treaty. The treaty was witnessed by Abram Elliott Griffith, one of the headmen in London, a valet by trade, whose schooling Sharp paid for. Naimbana asked him to Robana, made him his secretary, and gave him his daughter Clara to marry (on the Belisarius he had been attached to one of the prostitutes). As Naimbana spoke httle Enghsh he normally acted as interpreter.
Even with those who returned when the Myro arrived, the total population was not more than 200. They still lived in temporary huts; the planned church, court house and prison were unbuilt. Several Europeans from the Myro, including the doctor, went off to the slave trade. What distressed Sharp most was hearing that some settlers did the same, particularly that Henry Demane, whom he had rescued from slavery in 1786 by sending a writ of Habeas Corpus on board a ship already under sail from Portsmouth, had crossed to the Bulom Shore to trade in slaves. His remonstrances, if they reached Demane, seem not to have moved him; a dozen years later he was still slave-trading to the north.
But Sharp was quick to note that the surrender of the Bance Island proved quite as much that they were a law-abiding community as that some of them were thieves. Even Captain Bowie admitted that once they started trading their behaviour improved. They wrote asking culprits
23
sharp to send them a small sloop to bring produce from the rivers. Unable to finance it himself, he began persuading City friends to start a
trading company, the St. George's
The western boundary
lay
Bay Company,
between the streams
River and Sanders Brook, where Captain
to help them.
now called
Alligator
Thompson marked on liis map
no-mans-land between them and the Temne. Thus the watering-place (now King Jimmy Brook) lay witliin the settlea strip
of 'Savannah',
a
ment. Taylor's treaty guaranteed Naimbana the immemorial right to customs from ships putting in to water. The
settlers were allowed an from ships duty anchoring additional in the bay and so acquired a
small public revenue.
Captains of slave-ships resented their claim to be recognized
A
independent community.
Liverpool captain
who
as
an
during a dispute
with them seized a settler and kept him in irons for three days, was himself seized and kept on shore till he paid a fme. They pursued another captain fifty miles, to the for stealing
Isles
goods from a trader
second unwarrantable,
as
Robana
slave-traders. Fearing to attack
ment they began An American
He
de Los, and brought him back to
inciting
at
lay
trial,
Robana. Such aggressions, the
beyond
their boundaries,
enraged
openly a settlement planted by govern-
King Jimmy
ship's-captain
against
it.
kidnapped several of King Jimmy's
way by seizing a boat from another rowing up to Bance Island, killing three men, impounding the cargo and selling the boat to the French. Soon after, in November 1789, Capt. Henry Savage, H.M.S. Pomona, anchored in the bay. The settlers complained to him of Bowie and of King Jimmy. Bowie was sent for, persuaded him their complaints were groundless, then complained himself about the murder of the Americans. Savage asked King Jimmy to come aboard. When he declined he sent a party of marines, with Bowie, to fetch him. Some settlers accompanied them as guides. Later they said they were compelled to. After a while Savage heard firing and saw a Temne town in flames. A lieutenant went on shore with reinforcements and sent word all was well. But as they were getting back into their boats to return to the Pomona the Temne fired from the bush and killed the lieutenant, the sergeant of marines and a settler, and wounded another settler. The boat party returned fire as they rowed off, but once they were safely back on board Savage decided not to send any more of liis crew to risk their lives in a private quarrel imsanctioned by the Admiralty. He contented himself with having liis ninc-poundcr gun fired at any people.
American
retaliated in the usual
ship
24
Temne who
appeared on the beach. Next day he went ashore under
cover of the guns, to see the dead properly buried; a
wooden monument
was put over the heutenant's grave. But he took no further action against King Jimmy, sending instead for Naimbana, who had promised in the treaty (as landlord) to protect the settlers, to come and make peace. A few days later some of King Jimmy's people shot a settler dead at the watering-place. The settlers begged Savage to take them away in the Pomona lest they all be massacred. Unable to comply, he told them to wait for Naimbana and sailed off on December the 3rd. Once he was gone. King Jimmy gave the settlers three days warning to quit the settlement. Then, in revenge for the burning of his own town, he burnt
down. So perished the
it
first
Granville
Town,
capital
of the Province of Freedom.
May
few weeks after the first settlers sailed, Thomas Clarkgraduate who had determined to devote Cambridge son, a young himself to opposing the slave trade, formed a committee, which included Sharp and Samuel Hoare, to work for its abolition. Wilberforce, Pitt's intimate friend, became their spokesman in Parliament. Their agitation stirred a wide public all over England. Like Vassa (p. 13),
In
1787, a
Clarkson supplemented philanthropic arguments with economic. When he went round the sea-ports getting information about the slave trade, he was careful to collect and display samples of African produce, holding out the bait of
only available
when
new
Thus those genuinely Passage found alhes those
who made
sources
of raw
new
materials,
markets,
the slave trade ceased. horrified
by
the cruelties of the
among manufacturing
the trade goods used to
pour in to Parliament.
A
buy
Committee of
capitalists,
Middle
even among
slaves. Petitions
the Privy Council
began to
was ap-
pointed in February 1788 to hear evidence about the slave trade. In
May abolition was raised in the House parliamentary campaign
it
was
Sharp's proposed St George's interested capitalism.
of Commons, the beginning of a
to take nineteen years to win.
Bay Company was no
Though he pointed out
published anonymously. Free English Territory
bait to self-
in the prospectus
in Africa, that
the
he
West
African barter trade provided a profitable market for cheap English
manufactures, he settlers'
request,
made and
it
clear that the
subscribers. 821613
Company was formed
for their benefit, not to
25
make
at the
profits for the
Twenty-two attended
the first meeting, in February 1790, to subof kindness rather than as an investment. They included Wilberforce and Henry Thornton, a rich banker, who had been on the Black Poor Committee. Through Wilberforce they bought a thirtyscribe as an act
four-ton cutter, the Lapwing, seized by the customs for smuggling, to
send the
settlers.
In April Sharp heard the settlement had been destroyed. Pitt for help, for a naval ship to settlers, for a
Sierra
take
it;
letters
further grant
Leone was
go out with marines
of ;£300.
He
He begged
to restore the
how
pointed out
valuable
to England, that, once abandoned, the French
he justified
as best
he could the
between April and August, but
settlers'
Pitt
conduct.
made no
would
He wrote
reply.
A
four
letter to
no more than formal acknowledgement.
the Treasury got
Denied government's help Sharp had to turn to private sources. But if he had found it easy to induce a few rich friends to advance, and perhaps
lose, a little
money
to help an established settlement, to raise
enough to re-establish, he had to solicit subscriptions from those who would demand some security for their investment. Though the Treasury had poured out public money in 1786 without inquiring how the settlers would spend it, private investors inevitably demanded some control. Control of expenditure implied control of government, and the end of the self-governing Province of Freedom Sharp had envisioned.
Thirty-eight shareholders petitioned for incorporation by Act of
Parhament settlers,
fort
as a
Company, with
possession of the land granted the
exclusive trading rights for thirty-one years, a grant towards a
and
soldiers,
and powers to make laws
capable of making their own. Their seeking a hostility
of
all
until the settlers
were
monopoly roused
the
connected with the African trade, freed from restraint
Royal African Company was wound up (p. 7). Slavetraders, in any case hostile to a body Sharp and Wilberforce sponsored, were enabled to oppose the petition on grounds of pubhc as well as since the
private interest; the Attorney-General advised against
it.
Undeterred, the promoters sought wider support, until in February 79 1, numbering about 100, they petitioned Parliament for incorporation. Realizing with Vassa and Clarkson that philantliropy may be 1
made more
by the inducement of eartlily rewards, they stressed their commercial rather than attractive
as
well as heavenly
their pliilanthropic
intentions (though admitting privately that the cliances of profit small). Their project offered tlioso
were
who supported abolition on humaiiiz6
tarian principles a practical
African trade.
Thus they
way of
encouraging alternative forms of
sympathy of
attracted the
abolitionists all
when shares were eventually offered to the public many were taken up in the provinces as in London. In April a Bill to incorporate the Company was introduced into the House of Commons. Petitions came in from London, Liverpool and over England: almost
as
Lancaster, slave-trading centres, against re-introducing
protested against the
monopoly Company's
and from the African Committee, (while the
Company's
bill
bill,
Thornton, the sponsor,
British sliips free trade, except in slaves, within the
territories.
opposed the already,
all
Committee their own, by
India
possibly infringing
planting sugar). Rather than risk losing the
agreed to allow
West
on
Lord
Sheffield, a
champion of the slave trade, were enough colonies
the grounds that there
new one would only cause expense, perhaps war. J. C. who had been shipwrecked at Sierra Leone two years before,
and a
Hippislcy
settlers' unhappy fate. The thought of expanding trade with Africa silenced such objections; the bill passed by eighty-seven votes to nine and became law on June the 6th 1791.
returning from India, recalled the
The petition to Parliament sought to incorporate 'The St George's Bay Company' this name also appeared on the draft bill. But it was ;
read in committee, in March, as the 'Sierra Leona Settlement' petition,
and the proposed company left nameless. 'The Sierra Leona Settlement' bill was debated; the Act (31 Geo. iii cap. 55) incorporated the 'Sierra Leone Company', the name, and spelling, henceforth adopted.
Company
from the Crown the on the peninsula (the southern boundary of which was wrongly given as the Kamaranka River). But what Parliament enacted, the government was slow to implement. The Attorney-General objected to the proposed form of Crown Grant. Repeated applications were fruitless: eventually the Company had to begin work without a Charter of
The Act empowered
the
to hold
land originally granted, and any other land they might acquire
incorporation.
The Act
vested
management
in thirteen directors, elected amiually
by the shareholders, and allowed the Company to make its own laws for those concerned in its affairs. Thus a colony governed by absentees in England replaced the self-governing Province of Freedom. Sharp had to submit, realizing the alternative was abandoning the settlers altogether. Chosen a director, he found it repulsive to direct those he had intended should direct themselves. Vainly he besought Pitt to 27
protect the settlers against the
Company. His
fellow directors, putting
business before philanthropy, elected Thornton, not him, chairman;
henceforth his influence counted for
little.
Henry Thornton who, more than anyone, was to direct the Company, was Wilberforce's intimate friend. They worked together to suppress the slave trade, and
were neighbours at Clapham, the nucleus of the so'Clapham Sect' a pious, benevolent. Evangelical group with which Sharp, though he lived at Fulham, is often associated. A rich
called
who
banker
felt it his
duty to devote
a
large part
Thornton weighted generosity with sound
charity,
of
his
income
to
business caution.
His wealth kept pace with his liberahty. Introspective, ever brooding
on
his
duty towards
God and man,
he lacked the easy manner Wilber-
force cloaked his conscious virtues with, or Sharp's charming simplicity.
He remained Olympian,
Stephen,
*laid aside the ermine'),
never entering
whom
judge-like ('he never', wrote Sir James
as
ready to help, to accept rebuke, but
Sharp had into personal relations with the
he treated more
as
settlers,
employees, cooperating to advance the
Company's good, than as equals in need of assistance. The Lapwing was ready to sail in April 1790. Sharp delayed her departure, hoping for government aid, until September when, realizing Pitt would do nothing, he wrote to tell the settlers she was coming out. But he no longer decided such matters. The Lapwing only left Gravesend in December, and arrived in January 1791, over a year after the burning of Granville Town. Nor did she bring relief: until the Company was incorporated the subscribers would not risk money in anything that did not bring immediate return. Her cargo was chiefly penknives and other ironmongery, suitable for established settlers to trade with, small comfort to the dispossessed and homeless. Nor was the captain allowed to give them anything unless they paid him with
produce or labour.
The
delay in sending relief was explained to the public by blaming
who were accused of intercepting the settlers' letters and preventing the news of the destruction of Granville Town being known in England until late in 1790. In fact Sharp's first news of the disaster was from Messrs Anderson whose letter reached him in April; shortly after, it was confirmed in a letter from Abraham Ashmore, the last Governor of the Province of Freedom, actually written from Bance the slave-traders
Island.
28
Driven from Granville Tov^oi, the with Bowie
who
found employment on back to England.
settlers
found temporary
shelter
Some Some made their way by Namina Modu, the Sanko
put them on Bobs Island, near Bance Island. or at the factory.
ships,
Some were
taken in
by Pa Boson, a nearby chief, who and hold regular church services. have a them let A few weeks after the Lapwing sailed, the directors sent an agent, chief of Port Loko, and about fifty
Alexander Falconbridge, to
relieve, if possible resettle,
them. Formerly
employed in the slave trade, Falconbridge had turned against it with the uncompromising violence of a religious conversion and helped Clarkson collect evidence. The directors judged liim chiefly by his opinions, overlooking his lack of self-control and addiction to a ship's surgeon
drink.
With him
who had just
sailed his
wife
Anna Maria,
married him against her
Englishwoman
to visit Sierra
Leone
a
young lady from
relatives' wishes.
she
(p. lo),
was the
her experiences in print. Dispassionate she was not her :
Not first
Bristol
the
first
to record
book ends
in a
of invective. But she was ready to make light of difficulties and judge what she saw fairly, with a spontaneous, unprejudiced interest, which raises her Narrative of Two Voyages high above those many tirade
books about the tropics which merely deride or deplore the unfamiliar amusement of complacent readers at home.
for the
The
directors
had to send Falconbridge
in
one of the Anderson's
bound for Bance Island. There he quarrelled with the agents and made his wife sleep on board a tiny, stinking cutter anchored off the island rather than accept slave-traders' hospitality. Settlers came to beg him to take them back to the settlement. Like the directors, they seemed to have lost faith in self-government J. W. Ramsay, a headman in London, wrote to Sharp that they must have someone to command them, and would obey Falconbridge. Falconbridge went to persuade Naimbana to let them return, making it clear the land had been twice paid for, and any further payment could only be compensation for Savage's aggression. Naimbana, influenced by his secretary Ehiott Griffith, was inclined to be friendly. Seven times Falconbridge went to Robana, twice with his wife, for ships,
:
protracted palavers, until the assembled chiefs consented, in return for
about -^30 worth of tobacco, rum, iron bars and gold-laced
hats.
About fifty men and women gathered under Falconbridge's care. They include seven of the prostitute wives, so black with dirt, so covered with ulcers, Mrs Falconbridge, seeing them almost naked and 29
unashamed, was amazed to discover they were Europeans. Granville Town was overgrown with bush so, having agreed to keep quite
away from King Jimmy, Falconbridge took his party eastwards to of what is now Cline Bay (then Fora Bay). They settled by
east side
the the
shore (north of where Kissy village was later built) in a village aban-
doned
for being
haunted by
evil spirits,
which they gave the old name,
Granville Tov^oi. Li a few weeks they built huts and a store, and planted cassava for
coming
the
cannon
sent
—
They had arms to defend themselves though six them lacked carriages and were useless. A militia was
year.
organized to keep guard.
them
By mid-June
to report to the directors.
The
Falconbridge could safely leave
captain of the Lapwing
was dead.
who came with them had turned slaveSo Theodore Kalingee, a Greek who came
Falconbridge's brother William
and was dead
trader
out
as Falconbridge's servant,
After his
too.
was
Naimbana ceded Gambia
left in
charge.
Island to the French he gave
was being brought up
Henry
Granville),
a
Muslim.
A third, John Frederic (later christened
he sent to England with the Falconbridges.
voyage Mrs Falconbridge taught him
to read,
intelligent pupil (unlike his sister Clara Elliott
friendly advances). Sharp called
*as
and Thornton
On
the
fmding him a quick, who had resisted her
sent the Black Prince, as they certified by two was hoped, would Peter were in their respec-
him, to be tutored by a country clergyman
bishops as respectable
be
them
son Pedro, or Bartholemew, to be educated in France; another son
enough
to instruct
useful in Africa, as Alfred
and the
one who, first
it
tive countries.'
Having heard Falconbridge's
report,
Thornton
called a shareholders'
meeting to consider policy. They decided on generous
capital outlay
as the only way to secure an adequate return. Instead of ^{^42,000 capital, originally proposed, it was resolved to raise -^100,000. Eventually ^235,280 was subscribed. -((^30,000 was estimated for initial expen-
diture in the
of it for
first
salaries.
year; recurrent annual expenditure ^7,000,
^2,000
Prospective settlers were to have free passages, rations
months, half-rations for another three, and grants of land, proportionate to the size of family. Land was to be subject to 25 an for three
acre quit-rent for
two
years, then to
an annual
tax.
The Company
would market goods and produce, taking 10 per cent on sales, 2^ per cent on purchases. These charges, with the profit from land reserved
for the
would,
Company it
to plant or
let,
and an extensive trade to the
was hoped, yield the shareholders
a
interior,
return for their invest-
ment.
The Company was not intended to make vast profits, but tors hoped it would prosper commercially. Its arms (never at the
the direcregistered
College of Heralds) depict their intentions grapliically a rigged :
sailing-ship surmounted by a crowned lion has as supporters a European in tailcoat and breeches with a heap of parcels, and an African in a loincloth with an elephant's tusk, emblems of peaceful trade. But if the employees were instructed that their main object was commercial, they were also reminded that their trade was subserving a nobler purpose, 'the Honourable Office of introducing to a Vast Country long detained in Barbarism the Blessmgs of Industry and Civilization.' The directors drew up a declaration to be explained to the neighbouring peoples that the Company renounced the slave trade, and
—
would keep
of goods to exchange for other commodities. Those who came to live within their jurisdiction were promised government by English law without respect to colour, those who sent a large stock
their children, free education at the
Company's
schools.
During the War of American Independence many slaves, preferring liberty under the flag of empire to slavery under the flag of liberty, joined the British forces. Organized into Corps of Guides and Pioneers, they did useful service. At the end of the war some were brought away with their families by the defeated army in defiance of a clause in the peace-treaty stipulating property taken in the war must be returned. A few found their way to England, thence to the Province of Freedom. Most were planted in the cold forests of Nova Scotia and New Brunswick. Having served under the Crown they were- entitled, as disbanded soldiers, to grants of land. But there were thousands of Loyalist immigrants in Nova Scotia with claims on government; some had abandoned large properties. When land was allotted, these humbler refugees who had left behind nothing but their chains tended to be overlooked. Some were told to wait; others were granted tracts of remote, impenetrable bush. Many had been baptized as Christians but in their new refuge lacked
When Whiteficld, the Methodist leader, visited America before the Revolution his converts included a young free Afro-American, Jolm arrant, who was impressed into the British
organized churches.
M
31
navy during the war and discharged in England. Hearing that his brethren in Nova Scotia wanted a minister he got in touch with the Countess of Huntingdon who had him ordained in 1785 a minister of the Countess of Huntingdon's Connexion, an independent Church which had seceded from the Church of England. In Nova Scotia he started a Huntingdonian congregation at Birch Town, on the Atlantic coast near Shelburne, among the people of his colour. He then returned to England and died in Islington in 179 1. There was also a Methodist congregation at Birch Town, ministered to by Moses Wilkinson, a fervent, emotional preacher who, though blind and lame, had managed to escape from his master in Nansemond, Virginia, during the war. A Baptist preached there too, David George, converted by Baptists when a slave in Georgia. He prospered as a free man in Nova Scotia and accumulated some property. Driven from Shelburne for baptizing a white woman, he went round preaching in the vicinity, and in New Brunswick. Most of these people had grown up in Virginia or South Carolina and were unused to the severe winter. Without land, they had to work as labourers for masters accustomed to slave-owning, who had few scruples about exploiting them. Slavery was legal in Nova Scotia. Those forced by fear of hunger to work for a share of their employer's crop foresaw a dependence little better than their former state. Among them was Thomas Peters, a millwright, aged about fifty, who had escaped from his master in Wilmington, North Carolina, in 1776, served as a sergeant in the Guides and Pioneers, and settled at Annapolis,
Nova
Scotia in 1784. After waiting vainly six years for his
land, he determined to
Barely
go
literate, liable as a
to
England
deputy to seek
redress.
him
American port, risking from the Nova Scotian government which would resent such
unscrupulous ship's-captain take reprisals
as their
freed British slave to be sold again should an to an
unauthorized criticism, he courageously crossed the Atlantic.
By
March 1791 he was in touch with Sharp. He may have met him through Cugoano, who seems to have been a kind of headman for Africans London, and even planned to go himself to Nova Scotia to recruit When the Sierra Leone Company directors heard his story they offered his people asylum in Sierra Leone. The Secretary of State took immediate action on Petcrs's petition, backed by the directors, and instructed the Governors of Nova Scotia and New Brunswick to give those who wanted to stay the land due to them, those who did not, the choice of enlisting as soldiers or going to
in
settlers.
32
Sierra Leone.
The Treasury undertook
Company
the
(as
in
the expenses
of shipping while
1787 the Black Poor Committee)
made
the
arrangements.
Thomas Clarkson was a director of the Company. He and
his
brother
John, a twenty-eight-year-old naval lieutenant, were interested in Sharp's plans. John, who possibly once considered settling in the Province
of Freedom, offered in August and fetch the emigrants.
to
go
to
Nova
Scotia for the
Company
had been heard. Governor and officials, outClarkson reached Hahfax in October. wardly civil, were secretly hostile to a scheme that showed them up for having neglected their duty, and might deprive them of their cheap labour supply. Clarkson believed that the Under-Secretary of State (to whom Wilberforce had recommended him specially) had written privately against it. Rumours were circulated among the prospective emigrants that Sierra Leone had a deadly climate, and that they would have to pay heavy rent for land there. The directors stipulated they be first certified of good character, but Clarkson was unwilling to let their going depend on testimonials from masters who wanted them to stay. Two or three hundred were expected: the news stirred far more. As they flocked in, he felt bound to point out the dangers of venturing into an unknown land, and to urge those who had prospered in Nova Scotia not to abandon their new home. Few would be dissuaded. They mistrusted the Nova Scotian government. They feared their former masters might be allowed to come and claim them. When Clarkson said he would see that those who stayed got their land they replied, 'Massa Governor no mind King, he no mind You*. Peters went to spread the news in New Brunswick; Clarkson went round the bleak Nova Scotia villages. At Birch Town the people assembled to hear him in Moses Wilkinson's church. Beneath his matter-of-fact naval efficiency (he had been at sea from the age of eleven) Clarkson was deeply emotional, easily stirred (like liis brother) by injustice and misery. Sympathy for the sufferings of these his helpPeters returned
less
first
to tell the people their prayer
children, as he felt them, turned to a passionate, possessive protec-
which he was never to and devotion.
tiveness trust
In the pulpit at Birch
They asked
if it
were
Town
true, as
lose,
and they repaid with
a child's
he expounded the Company's terms.
was being rumoured, that they would He swore that as Government had
have to pay rent for their land.
33
promised them land free in Nova Scotia, so the Company promised it free in Africa, and that any charges they had to pay on it would not be rent but Neither
rates to
now
directors' offer.
maintain the sick or poor, or for schools.
nor
later did
They looked
Clarkson admit he misrepresented the
for quit-rents as an important and, as they
Company's income. The terms he brought stated explicitly that land was offered subject to charges, not,
conceived, reasonable part of the
as
he
said, for local rates,
perity.
What
he promised, and
directly contrary to the
Towards
almost
was
policy.
November
emigrants began assembling in
them from Shelburne and Annapohs. exodus from Birch Town; David George brought
went
a general
all his
his hearers joyfully believed,
Company's
the end of
Halifax. Ships
There was
but towards the Company's general pros-
to fetch
Baptist flock. Peters returned with his wife Sally and their
from New Brunswick. Four men, led by Richard Crankapone, whom the New Brunswick authorities maliciously prevented sailing, came on foot, over 300 miles from St John to Halifax through the thick wintry forests. At Halifax they were lodged at government expense in companies, each with its own headman, or captain. As the British Treasury was paying, local contractors could
children and emigrants
afford to be lavish: their lodging, with clothing and provisions for the
voyage, came to over ^6,000. For a further ^9,592 fifteen ships were chartered to take
A
away the
1,190 emigrants.
but Clarkson, assisted by man, supervised everything. Laurence Hartshorne, a Halifax businesis His good-natured frankness disarmed hostile officials (who would only have been further antagonized by an enthusiast like his brother or Falconbridge). He saw the ships fitted up, had vent holes cut to air those he considered stuffy, fires lighted to dry out the damp. He acted as banker for liis charges, helped them sell their property, quieted their fears that irreligious sailors would disturb their prayers, and exhorted them, in return, not to interfere with the sailors who, religious or irreligious, would give as good as they got. He warned the ship'scaptains that if they did not treat the emigrants with the consideration they would show fare-paying passengers he would, on arrival, refuse to sign the certificates to entitle the owners to recover expenses from
government agent chartered the
the Treasury.
The people
ships,
referred every
trifle
to his paternal decision.
Harrassed by their ceaseless plaints he was yet determined to sacrifice his
comfort for
them
crossly,
theirs,
reproaching himself bitterly if he answered
making himself ill by
his
34
arduous exertions.
They embarked in
their
keeping order. Those
companies, their
who
^captains',
two
to each ship,
by a jury of were aboard he
misbehaved were to be
tried
and the verdict reported to Clarkson. When all went round the fleet mustering, exhorting and giving each a certificate entitling him to his grant of land in Sierra Leone, and on January the
five,
15 th 1792 the expedition sailed.
Army
officer, Henry wanted to return Dalrymple who, having served to foimd a colony. He insisted on grandiose preparations which alarmed them, a garrison of 150 soldiers (they thought fourteen enough). Finally he left them, taking some of the proposed settlers with him, to start a colony of his own at Bulama, an island about 300 miles north of
The
chose as Governor a former
directors
on the West
Coast,
commercial enterprise for European settlement. Warned high-handed pretensions, they decided to divide and rule. In-
Sierra Leone, a
by
his
new Governor
stead of a
the
title
they appointed a Council of Eight, one with
Superintendent and a casting vote, but no power to
make
decisions without the majority approving.
When in
Nova
Thornton heard Scotia,
European
how many
volunteers Clarkson was raising
he realized they would make
colonists.
Only
much
destitute or eccentric
better settlers than
Europeans were likely
who could neither work in the sun, nor pay them. He decided to send from England only
to offer, people
others to
work
qualified
for
craftsmen or traders, to exclude decayed gentlefolk and adventurers,
and above
all
to
demand good moral
character, lest the
Company's
noble aspirations be corrupted, and the future happiness of miUions of Africans jeopardized.
He was determined the Council enforce, and set an
example of, the strictest morality, as befitted their high task, punishing,
if
need be expelling, the profane, the immoral and Sabbath-breakers. In February 1792 over 100 Europeans, only ten colonists, the rest the
and
Company's employees and tliirty
or forty
women
their famihes, including sixteen soldiers,
and children, arrived
in the
Company's
Harpy and the Lapwing. Falconbridgc who returned with his wife as Commercial Agent (though he knew notliing of trade) supposed he was to be Superintendent. But Thornton and Wilberforce were so impressed by the accounts from Nova Scotia they sent despatches asking Clarkson to stay on for a while and superintend, a decision justified by their hearing Falconbridge had been seen publicly drunk at Tenerifie on the voyage out. ships the
Amy,
the
35
:
So
Colony had no need
large a
disembarking
were, they started afresh tions,
at the first,
on
King Jimmy.
Town, where
renamed,
Freetown. Naimbana, presented with
moved him site
to fear
second Granville
at the
Instead
of
the original settlers
at the directors' instruc-
his son's portrait,
which
made no objection to their returning to the best ceded shore. The rising ground made it easy to drain; St
the
to tears,
George's Hill (renamed Thornton Hill) provided a
site
for a fort;
the watering-place not only supplied water but attracted passing ships; in front lay a
fme harbour. Only one
serious disadvantage impressed
Mrs Falconbridge
then, and future governments later, that the landing were rocky and shallow. The Council's immediate task was preparing for the Nova Scotians,
places
own dignity. Splendid in cockaded hats, epauletted and swords, with the title 'Honourable', they asserted their preeminence even on board ship, until Captain Wilson of the Harpy knocked one of them down on the quarter deck. The Surgeon, Dr Bell, their chief care their
coats
than his brother Councillors, spent much of his time in a drunken stupor. The Surveyor, James Cocks, preferred his military
less officious
commanding the sixteen soldiers to the heavier work bush. The Council met in state to reprimand a soldier for
duties as Captain
of clearing the
rudeness to him, then to determine the exact military status of each
When
from Halifax only two patches of ground were cleared, a hut and a few tents put up. The Councillors were still living on board the ships where they held their meetings and quarrelled with the captains. Storms separated the transports. The first arrived on February the Councillor.
28th.
The on
arrived
rest
the transports began to arrive
followed
at intervals until
March
the 9th. Clarkson
the 7th. Sailors and passengers lived in amity
only one passenger,
a
woman who
Clarkson for misbehaviour. The
'captains'
who had
the voyage
kept good order, some with
the added moral authority of religious leaders, like
Cato Perkins
on
threatened another, was reported to
William Ash and
ministered to the Huntingdonian congregation
Birch Town. If Moses Wilkinson was too infirm, Luke Jordan, one of his preachers, once a slave on a neighbouring Virginian plantation, was captain of a company. So was David George, who (with Peters) acted as a general intermediary between the people and Clarkson, at
who
loved and admired liim. So when the people first landed,
a
hymn
of praise,
their pastors led
them ashore, singing where
to a cotton tree standing, tradition says, near
St George's Cathedral later stood.
36
There
like the Cliildrcn
of
Israel
— which were come again out of the captivity they rejoiced before the who had brought them from bondage to the land of their forefathers. When all had arrived, the whole colony assembled in worship, to proclaim to the dark continent whence they or their forebears had Lord,
been carried in chains *The day of Jubilee is come; Return ye ransomed sinners home/
37
II had broken out on FEVER board, victims perhaps also
the
the transports: sixty-seven died
to
Dr
Taylor, the surgeon sent out
on by
Company, who administered only emetics. Thirty-eight died weeks on shore. Clarkson, already ill with excitement and
in the first
fatigue in Halifax, caught
it
and arrived an enfeebled convalescent,
anxious to hand his charges over to Governor Dalrymple and go
marry
to
Susanna Lee.
his fiancee
No
home
Governor appeared, only
him come
a
quarrelling Council, and the directors' letters asking
to stay as
Superintendent. Unwilling to abandon those he had
to feel his
children to so quarrelsome and incompetent a body, he agreed.
The Nova
(as the new settlers were henceforth called inbegan clearing the bush and unloading the trans-
Scotians
Sierra Leone) at once
which were sent off empty on March the i8th. Rough tents of and sails were put up for temporary houses and churches. Baptist, Huntingdonian and Methodist. The directors sent out Anglican
ports,
spars
clergymen, the Rev. Nathaniel Gilbert and,
Home, as Nova Scotians
Melvill
chaplains.
later in the year, the
Rev.
As both sympathised with Methodism,
as holding their own. from England, was fitted up as church, Council chamber. Councillors' quarters and many other uses, except what Mrs Falconbridge maintained it had been sent for, a house for her. She and the other European wives stayed on board the ships, quarrelling, gossipping and setting their husbands against one
the
A
attended their services as well
large prefabricated canvas house, sent
another.
Naimbana paid Clarkson
a
ceremonial
visit
dressed in full state with
wearing a pendant lamb and cross set in brilliants. His accompanied him. They demanded the Colony compensate
a judge's wig,
chiefs
King Jimmy
for the towns the Pomona burnt. Clarkson, unfamiliar with the customs of the country, declined responsibility for another's misbehaviour; he also laughed off attempts to make the Colony buy
them tlie treaty already signed. Naimbana King Jimmy remained imconvmced: ultimately, to sweeten him, Clarkson paid him lOO bars for the damage. the land again, showing agreed, but
38
A week after Clarkson arrived death released Dr Bell from his drunken The
stupor.
pomp.
Councillors
demanded
a state funeral
with
all
possible
In vain Clarkson objected the bad example to those they were
bidden to edify, the affront to the religious principles the Company-
was trying to embody. They had a majority, so their will prevailed. In solemn procession they committed their sodden colleague to the earth, while minute guns fired from the ships. A gunner had his arm shot off as he was loading, and died soon after. Clarkson, too ill to join in the loathsome obsequies,
convulsed by alternate
fits
down when he heard of the accident,
broke
of fainting and
His nominal superintendency gave
who
did as they chose.
The
hysteria.
him no
control over his colleagues
of the goods on board the
invoices
ships
The Councillors would look them over, one another, order on shore what they wanted. Thus consignments of similar goods might be landed from separate
lay out
on
the Council table.
then, without telling
The
happy
to annoy, put the goods on shore whether there was anyone to receive them or not. Crates landed at low tide might be soaked, or washed away, before they were noticed. ships.
The
ship's-captains,
soldiers
put on guard usually pilfered from them. Indeed what
stealing stores, and from one another, with drunkenness, mutiny and attempted desertion, the soldiers contributed only disorder; eventually they were sent home.
with
Clarkson tried to enforce a systematic check on ordering from the But no sooner had he induced his colleagues to agree than he
ships.
found the Surveyor had without asking sent for an expensive machine for grubbing up tree-roots, broken it on work it was not meant for, and abandoned it.
The Company's terms promised
the
Nova Scotians equal rights with word ^African' be substituted
Europeans. Wilberforce suggested the in the
Colony
Clarkson did
for *Negro' or *Black',
with
their pejorative undertones.
he could to keep the Company's promise. In April three European sailors on the Lapwing whom he observed particularly all
offensive to the
Nova
Scotians exposed themselves to further punish-
ment by disobeying orders. He summoned the whole Colony and had Simon Proof, a Nova Scotian ex-serviceman, flog them pubhcly, making it clear in a long speech beforehand that they were punished as
much
for misbehaviour to the
Nova
Scotians as for disobedience.
But when his fellow-Councillors abused or threatened them, undermining the happy relationship he had estabhshed, he had no power to do more tlian remonstrate vainly. Licessantly thwarted in carrying out 39
his
Nova Scotians, he succumbed to physical debihty Thomas who, frustrated in his efforts to abohsh the
mission to the
(hke his brother slave trade,
fell ill
and
and exhaustion enfeebled him; poured out agonized complaints in an ulti-
retired). Hysteria
memory went. He matum to Thornton, threatening to return to England unless given full powers. He bought a fast schooner to take the letter, sending the chaphis
lain
with
it
But
to explain anything omitted.
an answer came he had
till
to submit to his colleagues' vagaries.
He
also
Company was
complained to Thornton that the
being
cheated or misled over almost every cargo sent out. Bricks were sent
but no trowels. Space in the
ships'
holds that provisions or building
have filled, was taken up with and dressing cotton, though neither had yet
materials, the first necessaries, should utensils for boiling sugar
been planted, let alone harvested. Molasses came in leaking casks, flour not in casks but sacks. The store-house stank of rancid butter and rotting cheese. Insects
storekeepers
By
swarmed on
fell ill,
one
the molasses-drenched flour- sacks.
after another,
and died.
the end of March the waterfront
twelve
streets laid out,
Clarkson suspended
was cleared 200 yards deep and
running inland, to be named
all
public works to
let
proper houses before the rains began, but felled
The
they had to go further afield for
it
the
as the
and
after the directors.
Nova
Scotians build
nearby timber was
for grass for thatch, so
progress was slow. Tornados, prelude to the rains, began early in April.
Fever and dysentry broke out.
By May the rains had set in,
ushering the
when Mrs Falconbridge wrote, 'It is quite customary of ask "how many died last night?" words that long served
terrible period
a
morning
to
',
motto for Sierra Leone. of sending out dozens of Europeans, some of them idle, for the plantations they were to oversee were not yet cleared, now became apparent. Many had wives and children; few had experience of the tropics or were prepared for hardship. In the middle of May with
the English public as a
The
folly
people dying daily, and the rough provisions, unsuited for invahds,
running short, a storekeeper arrived from England with a wife, mother-in-law and six children. Those with families saw them sicken without might die themselves, alone and unnoticed. fell ill. Contemporary remedies were in
and
die, those
The
doctors went home, or
any case of little avail: quinine (or 'bark') might be given, but accompanied with purges, emetics or bloodletting. Of 119 Europeans sent out in 1792, fifty-seven died.
the rains
was
liigher,
Among
the
Nova
Scotians, mortality during
though proportionately lower, nmety-eight. 40
As the Nova
Scotians' reason for leaving
Canada was
their
not having
received the promised grants of land, Clarkson v^as determined they
should get their lands in Sierra Leone puffed up
when he from the
left, ill,
scratch.
Nova
as
Cocks,
no surveying:
Clarkson wrote, only constart
almost
unsheltered, their land unallotted, not even surveyed,
weak with
their deliverer,
Company. Only
the voice
and exhaustion, exhorting
fever
to patience, restrained their violence.
Clarkson assumed
Once
pied.
as possible.
Richard Pepys, had to
his successor,
Scotians began to turn against the
of Clarkson,
them
Ill,
having caused,
in July
and expense,
fusion
soon
as
with his Councillor's status, did almost
their leader, their
his influence after his
announcing
the position Peters originally occu-
deputy in England, Peters gradually lost He had no official
triumphant return to Halifax.
Company, nor
post under the State
among them
—though he wrote to the Secretary of —under the British government. He
their arrival
ignored the Councillors' pretentions contemptuously, but could not
two of them them up to make
ignore his people's devotion to his rival. Early in April
warned Clarkson privately that he was trying to stir him Governor. Clarkson had the bell rung, then standing under amidst the assembled people, threatened Peters
tree
harangued them passionately on the the dangers
A
of discord, and
as usual
sacrifices
as a
a big
He
mutineer.
he had made for them,
convinced them.
was accused of embezzling money belonging to two orphans. As the colonists were allowed the rights of English law he was tried by a jury of Nova Scotians who found him guilty; he was made to give up the money and rebuked severely. After this few weeks
later Peters
humiliation he started attending the nightly prayer-meetings and,
though not
a preacher,
did, suspecting
spoke regularly. Clarkson, informed of
him of plotting, attended
rule alone in the
prevented from
Nova
Scotians' hearts, as in the
fulfilling
what he
felt his
all
he
too. Ruthlessly determined to
Colony,
lest
he be
sacred mission towards them,
he steadily undermined Peters's influence and
won round his supporters.
When
them choose between no one stir towards him.
Peters
summoned
the people and bade
him and Clarkson he was mortified
to find
ill with the prevailing and in the night of the 25th-26th of June he died. Legend has prolonged Peters's life into distinguished old age, built
Isolated, threatened, sick at heart, Peters fell
fever,
him
a stone house in
town, has
first
African
Water
Street, created
murmured, history-books have 821613
him
member of Legislative printed.
41
first
Headman of Free-
Council, and what legend
But
if his career turns
out
to be less than
it
has appeared,
its
importance should not be denied.
Without his courage and faith in coming to England, no Nova Scotian would have come to Sierra Leone; without the Nova Scotians the Colony would have failed.
Emmanuel Swedenborg,
the mystic founder of the
New
Church,
somewhere between the Nile and Lake Chad lay hidden a pure African Church, founded by special revelation, whose members apprehended unmediated truth in a way unattainable by Europeans. declared that
Some of
Swedish followers, anxious to
approached Three set out for Africa in 1787, reached Goree, but returned to England after some disagreement with the French government. One of them, C. B. Wadstrom, then helped found the Swedenborgian Church in his
Sharp while he was sending out the
investigate,
first settlers.
London, met Clarkson and gave evidence for him about the slave trade, and interested himself in the Sierra Leone Company*s affairs, which were described in detail in his Essay on Colonization published in 1794.
Wadstrom never saw Sierra Leone: a picture of it he drew and published is a work of imagination. Dr William Dickson, a fellow Abolitionist,
even claimed to have composed the Essay, to have supplied
material and style, while
Wadstrom wove
fantastic
theories,
then
departed for France leaving his collaborator unpaid. Several Swedenborgian compatriots pursued the quest cally.
James Strand,
whom
more
practi-
the directors appointed Secretary to the
Council, came out in 1792 and assisted Clarkson loyally and efficiently. Nervous, apprehensive of illness, he dosed himself regularly with
opium which may have
accelerated rather than delayed his death in
October 1794. Augustus Nordenskiold, appointed the Company's mineralogist, had been alchemist to Gustavus iii though his dream was not to
—
make
the king rich, but gold plentiful, that poverty be abolished.
In Sierra Leone he sought not the Philosopher's Stone but the fabled
wealth of Africa and the purer riches of the hidden church. in
May, eager
to set off at once
could not persuade him to wait
from
travelling east
through the
later
through Port Loko by exorbitant
which he had invested
all his capital.
42
arrived
Clarkson
than September. Then, prevented
north by boat to the Susu country, taking in
He
torrential rain:
a large
prices,
he went
stock of trade goods
At Wonkafong (Wadstrom
in
his
account mistakenly says Port Loko) he
goods and returned to the Colony to
Adam
Afzelius, the third
fell ill,
was plundered of his
die.
Swedenborgian Swede in the Company's
of Linnaeus's, recommended to the directors by Sir His was the first systematic botanical work on West Banks. Joseph African flora Smeathman and Berlin he regarded only as collectors of curiosities. He arrived in May, with a beautiful young Milanese assistant service,
was
a pupil
:
Francesco Borone. His
first
months were
necessarily idle,
cooped up in
cramped quarters with quarrelsome companions, while the rain poured down outside. But when it ceased, Clarkson had a garden of experiment prepared for collecting
He
him
and
near his
own
house on the waterfront, and he began
planting.
too visited the interior where,
skiold,
he met three persons of great
more
fortunate than
spiritual beauty,
A
Norden-
but sought their
Swedenborgian wrote sadly, 'Any exterior communication with the African church I think very improbable in the present state of the Christian world, and until the life of heaven is more internally found, I do not see what use it would be of. church in vain. Here the quest ended.
Thornton (p. 17).
a
later
banker, did not share Sharp's disapproval of
money
Feeling that 'bar' currency encouraged fraud, and prevented
small accumulations of capital, he had silver and copper coinage in
and cents (but including pennies) struck for the Company at Soho Mint, Birmingham, the first issue dated 1791. The obverse bore a lion, with the words 'Sierra Leone Company, Africa', the reverse clasped black and white hands, symbol of racial amity. The first consignment was ordered out in 1792: until it arrived Clarkson, having run through what cash they had, issued paper notes based on bills of exchange on the directors. The Company's currency was readily accepted by Temne or Bulom bringing produce for sale. dollars
the
The Granville
Town
soon tired of supporting Falconbridge's Greek governor, who ate and drank for two, sold their gunpowder to the Tcmnc and told Falconbridgc on his return they were all thieves. Falconbridge, once their father, turned cruel stepfather, ignored their complaints, arrested ex-Governor Ashmore for slavc-dcahng, and locked liim up on board ship five days, then settlers
servant Theodore, their
43
releasing
him
for lack
of evidence. Clarkson, having heard only
When
Signior
Domingo,
evil oi
lest
they corrupt the
Nova
the chief at
Royema, round
the point
them, kept them out of Freetov^n
Scotians.
from
Granville Tov^oi, wrote complaining of them, he replied that they v^ere
not
his subjects
and that Domingo could do
Ostensibly a
Roman
as
he liked w^ith them.
Catholic, able to read Portuguese, Signior
Domingo may have been
descended from the Afro-Portuguese earlier Temne, respecting his v^isdom, deemed him a him Pa *Potoo' (a w^ord meaning originally *Portu-
so prominent: the stranger, calling
of selling the
guese', applied in time to all Europeans), histead as
he might
safely
settlers,
have done, he talked over the dispute amicably.
Clarkson was mortified to get a reproachful ing Domingo's Christian charity with his
letter
own
from them
contrast-
unchristian harshness.
friendlier and allowed them into Freetown. employed by the Company as interpreter as well as being Naimbana's secretary, was allowed to live there on his agreeing to obey the laws. Even before Clarkson's ultimatum arrived, the directors sent him discretionary powers to overrule his colleagues. They then disbanded the Council and made him Governor. Two full-time Councillors, advisors whose views he could overrule, were to be sent out later. Thus he was able to enforce his views on the squabbling officials who, with their wives, he lamented, seemed unable to make the smallest concession to one another to compose their selfish interests. Rid of Peters he no longer feared a Nova Scotian rival. Henry Beverout, captain of a company and Methodist preacher, born free in St Croix Island, whom he suspected of having been under Peters's influence, he won round by making him Church Clerk. Griffith, whom he also mis-
Put to shame, he became Elliott Griffith,
trusted,
remained submissive.
Pepys began clearing the bush
east
of Freetown for the Nova
Scotians' farmlands, cutting a straight road as base-line (the present
Kissy Road) to Granville it,
Town, and running out
blocks of land across
eight of which
survive as the parallel
divided by avenues (the
first
still
between Hagan Road and Ross Road). As Granville Town lay amid the 15th and i6th blocks Clarkson decided to incorporate it in the Colony. Six Nova Scotians went to negotiate with the inhabitants who, streets
Company's rules, but remaining in their own town. Clarkson, cheered at last by a positive achievement, wrote in his diary that he looked on that day as the
on August
the 4th, agreed to join, accepting the
foundation of the Colony. 44
A
Dalrymple with about 150 of his Bulama colonists on their way back to England, and hostile neighbours. Clarkson, with hardship frightened away by barely enough for his own people, could provide little but civilities, or such unexpected services as going aboard to christen a baby and church its mother. The passengers wandered ashore and made trouble with King Jimmy's people. Clarkson feared their influence on the Nova
few days
later
arrived in the harbour, sick and starving,
Scotians
who
and resented of them.
As
the
sold
them provisions they could ill spare, at high prices, them. It was a month before he was rid
his trying to stop
rains
lessened
the
Colony grew
healthier
and tempers
Dr Thomas Winterbottom, who came out in July, tended the sick conscientiously. To restore inward as well as outward health, Clarkson had a mess-room built for the Company's officers to work and dine in together, calling it Harmony Hall, that pubhc association overcome private feuds. The Company sent out more supplies, frames improved.
and prefabricated houses of canvas covered with oilcloth (which did not, however, long survive heat and damp). A store-ship, the York, was sent to anchor permanently in the harbour to provide better shelter than leaky store-houses. A framed hospital building was brought on the ship Duke of Savoy, and Clarkson had Savoy Point' (later, Mabella Point) east of the town, cleared for it. Later another hospital building (used as living quarters) was put up beside Falconbridge's house, at the north-east corner of Freetown (still known as Falconbridge Point). Clarkson's house, the main storehouse, and the church were west of it, along the shore above the main wharf. Another store-house was built south of Falconbridge's house in Susan's Bay (which Clarkson named after his fiancee), with a wharf for housebuilding,
*
below.
Much of the in
building was supervised by Isaac
June to plant cotton and take charge of the
DuBois who came out
soldiers,
but undertook
more important tasks. A dispossessed Loyalist from Wilmington, North Carolina, he had in childhood known (his family may even have owned) some of the Nova Scotians Thomas Peters came from ;
Wilmington. Practical and
versatile,
he turned doctor during the
rains,
then builder.
Nova Scotians drew rations from the Company two days work a week in
Until farms were allotted, the
Company's
store,
giving the
repayment. They were also given credit. larly, the
heads of each department
Many were employed
regu-
—surveying, building, carpcntermg
45
—tempting them away from one by
the
another by higher wages,
Company. Clarkson supphed
fishing boats.
Within
few months
a
all
paid
with materials to build dozen had boats and were
several a
trading with passing ships or at the slave-factories, using their wages,
or their surplus rations,
as capital.
Anxiously paternal, he feared their
buy more rum than the
trading outside the Colony, where they could
would
Company's
store
had no land
to farm.
sell,
but realized
Endlessly patient with them, he
inevitable while they
it
was ready
to sacrifice the
still
Company's
He promised them part of the reserved Company would get more profit from their
policy to their peace of mind. waterfront, feeling the
being contented and loyal than from the use of the land. short of the high standard he set for
them he tended
When they fell
to detect the cor-
ruption of European example. Sometimes he prayed every European
but himself might be turned out of the Colony the directors
demanding more European
—then wrote angrily to
teachers
and
artisans.
violent, inconsistent reproaches, often dashed off in a state
exhaustion, distressed Thornton, and drove
him
Plis
of nervous
to long, moralizing,
self-justifying, replies.
As a banker, Thornton knew little of trade. Subordinates regularly imposed on the directors, ordering cargoes to suit their, or their conpockets.
tractors'
One
ship arrived laden with garden water-pots.
Clarkson reckoned mismanagement cost the in the first year.
ployees
who
on board
He
Company
thought the directors too
cloaked dishonesty under a show of piety.
the York (whose captain the directors
about ^40,000
by em-
easily taken in
When he went
recommended
particu-
whether urgently needed stores were his hand, and he had to stay for morning prayers; yet the sailors swore, stole, even mutinied. The soil round Freetown proving less suitable for large plantations than the directors had been led to suppose, Clarkson crossed to the Bulom Shore and leased from the chiefs a square mile of what it was larly for religious zeal) to see
being unloaded, a
hymn book was pressed into
ground. James Watt, a member of the original Council, once a planter in Dominica, was put in charge of
hoped would be more
fertile
*Clarkson's Plantation', as rice
it
was
called, to plant sugar-cane,
with hired Bulom labourers,
hoped would
free labour
cotton and
whose produce
it
was
undersell that of West Indian slaves.
Falconbridge talked of going
down
The Company's trade goods rotted in
the coast to trade but did not.
the store. Eventually the directors
dismissed him. Thornton wrote and published in 1794 a report
46
making
!
him
blamed him
a scapegoat,
for the
Company's
misfortunes, without
Commercial Agent a hatred of the slave trade.
accepting responsibihty for having appointed as
doctor whose only recommendation was his
His successor was chosen on the opposite principle, an unrepentant old slaver
who knew
sank from
few months. do
really
DuBois
the tricks of the Coast. Falconbridge, dismissed,
will not be guilty
*I
to tell a falsehood
*as I
all
intermittent to permanent intoxication, and died within a
on
To prove
not.'
of such meanness,' wrote his wife, by saying I regret his death, no
this occasion, it,
within a fortnight she married Isaac
name
in her book), celebrating the
joyous
When the Temne sold the shore,
they did not realize the Colony
would
extend inland. They took fright
when
(she suppresses his
event with a grand dinner.
through
their
they saw Pepys cutting avenues
farms and villages. In September Clarkson invited
Naimbana and his chiefs to settle the Colony's boundaries fmally. The land having been twice granted and paid for, the Company's right to clear and allot it was not contested, but as the chiefs had not understood what they were selling, it was agreed to indemnify any
who
lost their crops,
Maquoit
Will to the adjoining
did
all
were
east,
ownership of it,
and not to disturb
villages along the shore.
Pa
Domingo and Pa King Jimmy was also assured
west of Granville Town, Signior
to the
all
and
left in possession.
land west of the watering-place, some sacred bush his right to collect
customs for watering. Clarkson
he could to make ships pay, indeed ingratiated himself with the
chiefs as successfully as
These concessions
grasslands to the west, the
could not
fulfill
Nova Scotians. Nova Scotians to Temne. Shut out of the waterside villages to the east, the Company
with the
sacrificed
the promise to give each twenty acres with a farther
ten for his wife, five for each child. Clarkson nevertheless persuaded
the mistrustful people, cheated of their land in a fifth
Nova
Scotia, to accept
of what they had been promised, on the understanding they get
the rest later.
Before returning to England for the leave his health demanded, he began giving out the reduced allotments, preaching patience to those who had to wait, reasoning with the dissatisfied. Once allotting began, he reduced the rations they had
come
them the Company was not obliged them wage-labour, and begged them 47
to rely on. Firmly he convinced to
compensate them by giving
to take
up
as
farmers the indc-
.
pendence they had longed for in
Nova
Scotia, rather than
depend on
wages.
On November the
day the land was first allotted, Clarkson climbed what he named Directors' Hill (today Mount Aureol), whence he could look down upon his work and see that it was good. It was a day of rejoicing. Salutes were fired, toasts
and
13 th, the
a great multitude
were drunk. He resolved
The
ships'
to build a house there
companies tended to
on
his return.
on
stick together
shore, building
adjacent houses, representing grievances through their captains. In
December
the captains' authority was regularized. The community was divided, on Sharp's model, into tythings and hundreds. Every ten freeholders were to elect a Tythingman, every ten Tythingmen a Hundredor, to settle small disputes, keep order, and represent their constituents' views. Legislative power was reserved to the Company's Governor and Council (whose laws were subject to the directors' disapproval), but they could propose laws to be enacted.
John Cuthbert,
a Baptist elder,
and captain of a company, and James
Reid, once Governor of the Province of
Hundredor s, were Granville In the
Town,
to
also
made
summon juries and
weeks before
his departure
people to patience, sobriety and
them
in a
Freedom
(p. 21, 23), elected
Marshals, one for Freetown, the other
enforce writs.
Clarkson constantly exhorted the
self-reliance.
He
took public leave of
long prayer where. Saviour-like, he implored
his sacrifice for their shortcomings, to bruise iniquities, that the sacred task
December
him,
God
to accept
if need be, for their
he had begun be not frustrated. Then on
the 30th 1792 he sailed, reading his history as
Governor
in
eyes restored to health and brighmess, tearful only at his departure, in a ship laden with fruit
and vegetables, fowls and eggs, collected
in
ones and twos from almost every family.
Thornton could not let Clarkson rule alone if only because if he fell ill was no substitute. William Dawes arrived in September to act with him in Council and as Governor when he left. A second Member of Council, Zachary Macaulay, arrived in January 1793. Dawes, a Marine officer, something of an astronomer and mathematician (he taught Mathematics for a year at Christs Hospital) had gone out with the first shipload of convicts to Botany Bay, where he quarrelled with the Governor and returned to take service in a Colony founded on more there
liberal principles.
His detractors suggested he tried to import convict 48
methods:
it
might be
he brought the rigidity of a just but he left, laboured in vain to make
fairer to say
distant schoolmaster. Clarkson, before
the
Nova
Scotians like him.
Macaulay, even more aloof and
man
inflexible,
is
much
the
most famous
have governed Sierra Leone. His long devoted labours towards
to
abolishing
first
employment
the slave trade, then slavery, began w^hen, disgusted
on
by
Jamaican slave plantation, he turned in revulsion to a Colony w^here slaves had become free. His stern, intelas overseer
a
lectual passion for righteousness raised against
tion
which pursued him
all his life:
him malice and
execra-
the forbidding grimness of his bust
Westminster Abbey perhaps helps explain why. Thornton warned
in
Clarkson that his repelling appearance belied
his
deeper feelings.
The parting Clarkson told the people, Pepys consenting, their land would all be allotted within a fortnight. But Pepys and Dawes turned and the final allotments were delayed. Many who land had no time to plant it before the rains. Others could
to planning a fort
got their
never plant, for the parallel blocklines, so neat on the plan, were drawn up the steep, rocky slopes east of Freetown.
The
huts built during the rains were only emergency structures
on Soon after Clarkson left, Pepys began allotting new town sites for permanent building, reserving the waterfront for the Company. Along the shore by Susan's Bay (where Little East Street now runs) a group of Birch Town people under Luke Jordan, the Methodist preacher, (p. 36), captain of the passengers in the Brothers transport, had built a row of huts in what they called Brothers Street. They refused to move, alleging that Clarkson had said they might temporary
stay.
sites.
Pepys, a disgruntled survivor of the original Council, replied that
Clarkson's promises were often thoughtless and irresponsible. Such an
answer alarmed them, and divided the Europeans into pro- or anti-Clarkson.
London
new
factions,
Governor who had, Yet neither were in real sympathy. Clarkson was impatient with their business caution which he thought cold-blooded parsimony, and abused them violently for meanness and incompetence. They, in return, mistrusted him, feared In
the directors received cordially the
as
Thornton
his
unauthorized promises, and suspected
declared, saved the Colony.
him of withholding informaThornton had not mentioned the mortality during which they had had to discover from strangers. They were
tion: his letters to
the rains,
49
frightened at the vast expense of shareholders'
money
—while
he
demanded more liberal salaries. When Dawes and Macaulay wrote
letters praising one another's government by firmness with the disadvantages of persuasion and promise, a way was pointed out of their difficulties, hi April, just as Clarkson was going to Norfolk to be married, they informed him his services were no longer needed. Overwhelmed by the shock of sudden dismissal, Clarkson nevertheless made no public protest, lest he provide a weapon for the Colony's enemies. He wrote privately to friends in bitter outcry at such ingratitude, but in his letters to the Nova Scotians urged obedience to Dawes, even hinted his marriage had prevented his return. Rejected by the directors (as Peters by the Nova Scotians), disgusted with public service, disappointed of promotion in the Navy, he settled down as a banker abilities,
contrasting the advantages of
in East Anglia until his death in 1828, only letting his benevolent his wish for quiet domestic obscurity by helping found the Society for the Promotion of Universal Peace.
emotions overcome to
Rid of Clarkson, the directors removed several of his adherents, including DuBois who led the pro-Clarkson party. Clarkson maintained he
worked harder than
all his
colleagues put together, but, a
strong partisan, he was no longer acceptable. Thornton, in his published report, accused
him of stirring up
ment. Returned to England, vainly for
money
she claimed
the people against the govern-
his indignant still
wife beseiged Thornton
due to Falconbridge.
When
verbal
on the defended her and directors' meanness and hypocrisy. Wadstrom, too, Clarkson with veiled asperity. Thus, apart from the Company's published reports, the first accounts of the Colony to appear in book form presented its promotors in unattractive guise.
entreaties failed she turned to print, venting her witty fury
Cheated once of property and independence, the Nova Scotians feared that were Clarkson's promises forgotten they would again be reduced to servitude. Even before they heard he was dismissed they determined to put their grievances to the directors themselves. A petition was
drawn
up, apparently
by DuBois,
Dawes, the new Governor, the
rum
detailing their complaints against
his raising prices at the store,
liis
watering
(on philanthropic principles), grievances they necessarily
50
felt
were dependent on the Company. They chose two it to London, Cato Perkins, the Huntingdonian preacher, and Isaac Anderson, and subscribed money to support them. Anderson, a man of violent emotions, lived in Brothers Street (known to Europeans as 'Discontented Row') and bitterly resented the attempts to move him. Born free, he had been a carpenter in Charleston before the American War. so long as they
deputies to take
The up by
directors suspected the petition to be a party
Clarkson's supporters;
explaining
away
at the Sierra office.
the grievances. So the deputies aroused
Leone House, Birchin Lane, Cornhill,
letters
sympathy Company's
little
the
After about six months in England (from which Perkins at least
benefited sent
manoeuvre got
Dawes and Macaulay wrote
home
from
the attentions of
members of his
church), they were
again, their grievances unredressed.
In 1793 began the long wars with France. Shipping was dislocated,
insurance
rates
rose,
goods became dearer and
scarcer.
Already
Company had to raise prices without wages. The Nova Scotians, obliged to shop
threatened with trading losses, the
being able to afford to
Company's
raise
saw in the rise a kind of indirect taxation, another burden imposed on them which they had no hope of removing. Some threatened Dawes with the fate of Louis XVI, the news of which had just reached them. By September the community was so divided that Macaulay could write in the journal he sent home regularly to Thornton of the 'white Party'. When, in November, the York, filled with valuable produce and cargo, caught fire in the harbour, no Nova Scotian would go to help extinguish it, for fear there was gunpowder aboard, though they were assured there was none. All was lost; neither ship nor cargo were insured; the loss was estimated -^15,000. Yet some instead of mourning a common disaster, rejoiced at a judgement on their oppressors. As Clarkson foresaw, failing to conciliate them by concessions at small immediate loss risked antagonizing them and wrecking the whole at the
store,
enterprise.
At the end of the eighteenth century English evangelical Christians were increasingly fired to spread their gospel abroad. Home shared this enthusiasm. He yearned to be more than a chaplain, to preach to the Temne, to convert the milhons of Africa. One day he went to Signior Domingo's town and preached a long sermon through an 51
interpreter
natives
He
:
it
was
la ter
printed as the only sermon ever preached to the
of West Africa (though
was
it
Evangelical stronghold.
He
published his views on missions
moving round
—that
Freetown but in African villages, on the Wesleyan model. He also
missionaries should not live in
preferably
a circuit
urged privately (perhaps recalling be
not).
returned to England in 1793 and became vicar of Olney, an
his late colleagues' wives) that
they
single.
Once
was cleared and rainproof houses built, the people throve. Year after year Dr Winterbottom and his successors reported only minor ailments among them; Europeans still caught fever regularly but few died of it. To the end of his days Zachary Macaulay maintained Sierra Leone was healthy. Many, having learnt building and carpentering in America, could replace the wattled huts put up in the first days with timber structures, cut and framed themselves. To keep out the damp they usually built on a foundation, rising above ground, of laterite stone, easily quarried and plentiful, with roofs of narrow wooden shingles which (unless slates were imported) provided for the next fifty or sixty years the normal roofing for a Freetown house. Bricks to build chimneys had to be imported, so most houses had none. Cooking was done in outside kitchens, detached from the house. The town lots were big enough to give each house a garden. Property was normally sold in lots or half lots, so inner Freetov^oi was long spared congested building. When gardens grew up round the well-spaced houses, the town appeared to rise from a shrubbery. Along the waterfront the Company put up about two dozen buildings, quarters, store-houses and workshops, wdth the church in the middle. The Governor's house was at the north-west corner of the town, above the mouth of King Jimmy Brook. A garden was laid out near it for Afzelius; he had another above Susan's Bay. His first botanical report was appended to the Company's printed report in 1794.
To
the bush
encourage farming the
cleared and built houses
on
Company
their lots
by
offered prizes to those
who
certain dates, or raised specified
amounts of produce.
land of their birth. Several
Nova
home-coming to the were Koranko, carried from their homes to
For some the voyage from
Scotia
52
was
a
:
Bance hhnd and sold. One found her mother, a slave to a Tenine chief. Another met the Mandinka who had sold him, and gave him a present for having unwittingly been the means of his conversion to Christianity. A servant of Macaulay's, engaged in England through Sharp, insisted on returning to his home near Cape Palmas. Frank Peters returned from exile in South Carolina and Nova Scotia to his own village, and resumed his former way of life with its attendant risks only his connexion with the Colony saved him from being sold a second time.
By Act of employees or
Parliament the colonists,
but
ungranted, the extent of
its
Company
make laws
could
for
its
Charter of incorporation was
as a
jurisdiction
was
uncertain. Clarkson
still
was
on passing ships. While his pendant was hoisted over the transports from Halifax, he could command the authority of a naval officer; once they were gone his power was purely moral. Sailors would escape from brutal captains on slave-ships and several times asked to settle disputes
hide in Freetown. Unwilling to shelter them, and arouse their captains'
enmity, he had no authority to force them back on board.
He wanted a
naval ship permanently stationed in the river to keep order, but the
Admiralty refused. Early in 1793 three European sailors from a ship chartered by the
Company
killed a
them with
a
duck belonging
Nova
Scotian jury
to a
Nova
Scotian.
who found them
Macaulay
guilty.
tried
One was
fmed and imprisoned. Their captain complained to the captain of a passing naval ship who, having read through the Act of Parliament, produced for his inspection, denied publicly flogged,
the others
it gave the Company any power to constitute law courts, and made Macaulay release them. Nor was it clear whether the Company could legally free slaves.
that
directors laid down a general rule that runaways ought not to be given up to their masters, but agreed that prudence and local circum-
The
stances determine
valid in Sierra slaves
became
how
Leone
strictly it
it
be enforced. Yet
if
English law was
followed (and Clarkson maintained), that
all
free automatically. In July 1793 five slaves escaped there
from the Isles de Los. Their owner, Horrocks, an English slave-trader, demanded their return or compensation. Macaulay warned the Nova Scotians against sheltering fugitives until there to free
them: uncertain whether the
was some
legal
power
Company would
be upheld in the English courts against slave-traders, he feared to risk open hostility.
But they would not give them up, so he agreed 53
to their staying
and
refused Horrocks compensation. Later he found (what had been care-
from him) that the custom of the country provided that a slave v^ho ran av^ay became the property of the master he ran to. In general the Colony maintained friendly relations with neighbouring slave-traders. Aspinall, at Robat on the Great Scarcies, over twenty years in the country, and Cleveland of the Bananas, who had plantations on the mainland, supplied rice. The directors, who sometimes sent consignments in ships bound for Bance Island, acknowledged publicly how civil factory proprietors in England were. Messrs Anderson, forseeing the end of the slave trade, offered to sell them Bance Island, then, having changed their minds, began planting cotton, an alternative commodity, on the adjoining Tasso Island. But many traders disliked the Company and tried to prejudice the chiefs against it. fully concealed
Naimbana
declared readily against the slave trade: several of his
people had been kidnapped and sold to the published an account of their reporting
them
fate.
living at St Croix,
Some one
West
hidies.
Wadstrom
years later Sharp got a letter
a blacksmith,
one
a tailor, better
off now 'than as a Prince selling Bananas in a Canoe'.
Naimbana died in February 1793. It was nearly a year before a King of the Koya Temne was elected, with the style Bai Farama. Meanwhile in England John Henry Naimbana was finishing his education, based on an intensive study of the Bible, including some Hebrew.
His virtues and diligence were Prince,
He
where he
is
depicted
commemorated
in a tract.
The African
on the cover spurning an improper book.
returned to Africa in June,- dreaming of preaching the Gospel to his
On the voyage, he began to feel increasingly the contrast between Christian precept and practice: he noted in liis pocket-book how the sailors swore. As the ship neared Africa he brooded on the task before him and the difficulties obstructing it. He became delirious and at Freetown was carried ashore dying. liis French-educated (p. 30) brother Bartholemew put it about that he had been poisoned. Only after a long palaver was the family persuaded that the ship Vcap tain had not murdered him. Even so, it was repeated for generations in the Temne country that he had been killed, lest he reveal the white men's secrets. Despite his fate, other chiefs sent their sons to England. Signior Domingo had already sent his son Antony; when Dawes went on leave in March 1794 he took Henry Kokclly, a Temne chief's son, and John Wilson from Yongru, on the Bullom Shore. Many sent their children to school at 'the Camp', as they called Freetown (a name that survives in Bulom, and Tcnme). countrymen.
54
Scotian teacher, was engaged by the Company from the other children who, ahcady knowing Enghsh, were at a different level. Another teacher, Boston King, was sent to the Bulom Shore, a missionary of African descent to Africans. The few schoolmasters could not cope with the demand for schooling within the Colony, where grov^oi-ups as well as children sought education. Almost everyone literate enough was employed to teach. The Governor examined the schoolchildren. Teachers were enjoined to enforce personal cleanliness and morahty, and take their pupils to church twice on Sunday. Home, who as chaplain had general oversight, said he thought them equal to English children of the same class and advantages. Denied citizen's rights in Nova Scotia, the people cherished the forms of law that guaranteed them in Sierra Leone. The lawcourts, where the Governor or another European official sat as judges with Nova Scotian juries, were kept busy. So many frivolous suits were brought that a rule was made to fme the losing party five shillings. Where English law fell short of their requirements it was modified. At their general request, 'cursing', calling bad names, was made punishable. At the August Quarter Sessions, 1794, Macaulay sentenced a woman found guilty of adultery to be flogged, and fined her lover -^5, sentences unheard of in England, but approved of in Freetown. Jurors
Mingo Jordan,
a
Nova
to instruct them, apart
took
their duties seriously, debating
long over even
trifling cases.
The
were no barristers. attachment to the law lay their love of
parties pleaded themselves as there
Deeper than their religion. wrote Mrs Falconbridge, 'met with, heard, or read of, any set of people observing the same appearance of godliness; for I do not remember, since they first landed here, my ever awaking (and I have
1
never',
awoke at every hour of the night), without hearing preachings from some quarter or another.' They observed Sunday scrupulously, turning out in their best clothes for church, the men in gingham coats and nankeen breeches, the women in muslin dresses and turbans, or beaver hats (worn by both sexes). Religion coloured their speech: the letters they sent Clarkson complaining of Macaulay's government abounded in biblical phrases. Anderson sent him a barrel of rice grown on his ov^oi farm with the words, *it is said Thou shalt not mushel the ox that Treadet out the corn and If so estened
how much More Your Hond ought to be
More them an ox.'
They planned George went
their
own
missions to the surrounding peoples. David
to preach, taking
Thomas London, one of liis congrega55
wKo had been born in Africa, but they were turned back by war. Beverout went to the Rio Pongas, but the Mushms he preached to were unimpressed by his roaring style of oratory. tion,
The
directors, appreciating their rehgious feelings, gladly
deserving preachers to it
was observed they
build a
new
visit
called
brought
England. David George went 'home'
money
with Clarkson, returning with
it)
(as
to
church, and a promise from the English Baptists to give a
any candidate for the ministry. Boston King, and Cuthbert accompanied Dawes on leave. Nevertheless Macaulay and
year's training to
Thornton regretted what they felt the undisciplined extravagances of some preachers, and their readiness to mix pohtics and religion in their emotional,
even
ecstatic,
outpourings.
Governor in Dawes's absence, dismissed Channel and Robert Keeling, for violently threatening the captain of a slave ship who had called in. The Hundredors and Tythingmen met to protest at their dismissal, offering to resign if this and other grievances were not redressed. When Macaulay rebuked them for questioning the Company's right to choose its own employees, and rejected their resignations, Channel raised a mob which beat up Crankapone, who had succeeded Cuthbert as Marshal, and threatened to attack the Governor's house. As the Hundredors and Tythingmen refused to help, Macaulay set up cannon at his gate. Rioting went on next day the Secretary's office was broken into and papers destroyed. The next day was Sunday, and dawned peaceably. Macaulay issued In June 1794 Macaulay, acting
two of
Company's
the
porters, Scipio
:
an address to be read aloud in
all
the churches, pointing out persuasively
the danger and folly of rioting against the its faults,
was
dissatisfied
their
back to
Company wliich, with all He offered to send the
only source of protection.
Nova
Scotia, free
of charge, and bought
a ship to
take them.
His address restored order. recalled to their
the riot, eight
The Hundredors and Tythingmen,
duty of keeping the peace, arrested the ringleaders in
of
whom
were
sent,
with
six
wimesses, to be tried in
England.
No empty
one accepted the in the
Leone than had broken
in
harbour
Nova
faith
offer
of a free passage to Halifax the ship lay prove they were better off in Sierra :
as if to
Scotia. Yet, they
by not giving them 56
still
maintained the
Company
the promised allotments.
Mac-
aulay, admitting the grievance,
thought
it
by
offset
the
Company's
and by their employment. and credit at the store, having received rations so long, Both parties felt aggrieved, the Nova Scotians at the breach of faith, extra,
the
unpromised,
Company
services, free schools
and medical
care,
want of gratitude. Thornton's published report, them credit for their good quahties, deplored their sensible of the benefits the Company was conferring on at their
after carefully giving
being so
little
them Here .
at the
end of the eighteenth century,
as
throughout Africa
ever since, the outraged protest of the unappreciated benefactor set a barrier
between European and African.
Despite such divisions, the loss of the York (with
all
the
Company's
accounts) and the outbreak of war, the directors could in 1794 at last look forward to hopes of some return for an outlay of over -^100,000,
nearly half their capital.
Small cargoes of African produce were
A new
Commercial Agent went out and started trading A factory was opened in the Sherbro. Watt's plantation on the Bulom Shore, though small, and plagued by termites, seemed hopeful: the Bulom labourers he employed were learning European work routine. A second square mile was leased, arriving.
systematically along the coast.
west of the plantations, to be
let to
Nova
Scotians dissatisfied with their
barren allotments, a step towards what Sharp had originally intended,
community of small tov^niships, each surrounded by farmlands whole bundle of such town plans survives among his papers). But as those who took land there had first to renounce all claim to tov^oi or country land in Freetown, and were charged rent of a bushel of rice an acre, no one accepted. The Hundredors and Tythingmen protested, so the conditions were revoked and land offered simply at an annual rent of 25 6d an acre payable after two years' occupation. Even so, scarcely any went. a
(a
Many
in England, notably the promotors of the African Association founded (with Wilbcr force a member) in 1788 to encourage exploration,
regretted the interior of Africa remained utterly peans. Early in 1794
unknown
to
Euro-
Watt and Dr Wintcrbottom's brother Matthew
up the coast to the Rio Nunez, then overTimbo. The Fula received them warmly, and sent a deputation with them to Freetown to arrange regular trade. The following year set
off for Futa Jalon, sailing
land to
821613
^y
E
Watt and John Gray,
the
Company's accountant, went up
the
Kamar-
through the Corkers' country, to visit a who wanted to trade with the Colony. Mushm Mandinka MediterFired to explore further, they planned an expedition to the the year, in ranean via Timbuktu and the Sahara. But Watt died later
anka and
Bumpe
rivers,
chief
and
their
dream was
unrealized.
58
Ill
HAVING
Nova
by suspending work on up a palisade on Thornton Hill, a refuge against attack by land, with a few cannon mounted. Attack by sea was not contemplated: the Colony was deemed neutral in the war against France. While it was threatening, Clarkson wrote Lafayette, whom he knew, a friendly letter pointing out that they, like the Revolutionaries, were guided by principles of Freedom, and should be spared. One of the Company's enraged the
Scotians
the allotments, to build a fort, Pepys eventually only put
shareholders sent a
of their
list
ships to the National
Convention, that
they refrain from attacking an enterprise with aims so similar. Thus
Macaulay remained on good terms with Renaud, the French agent at Gambia Island, and refused to join the agent at Bance Island who proposed they combine and drive him from the river. Early on Sunday, September the 28th, 1794, seven large, well-armed ships were seen flying English colours, rigged in the English way. Some were indeed English, but it was not until they began firing over the town that the colonists realized they were prizes captured by the French. There was no hope of repelling such a force, so Macaulay put up a flag of truce. It was disregarded. The firing went on a Nova Scotian women and her child were killed, others wounded, before it stopped. Then the French landed, led by an American slave-trader with a grudge against the ;
Colony.
The squadron was but the
filthy,
ostensibly
commanded by
a naval
commodore,
ragged crews represented the Jacobin terror already
suppressed in France a few months earlier.
No
sooner on shore than
they began stealing and destroying whatever they could lay their
hands on. The people
fled,
homes to be ransacked. Every Not content with taking what
leaving their
house was broken into and plundered.
they wanted, killing livestock, shooting pigs, dogs or cats
as
they went,
they smashed everything of use or value. Furniture, books and papers, the
printing
press,
the
dehberately destroyed. shop.
The church,
a
library,
telescopes
They broke every special
and barometers were
bottle in the apothecary's
object of their
59
revolutionary
fury,
was gutted, Bibles and prayer-books torn up, even the clock broken. In two years Afzelius had planted his gardens with the rare specimens he was laboriously collecting in the bush, and had assembled a small zoo and an aviary. All this the French devastated. His trees and plants were cut down or uprooted, notebooks and collections trampled underfoot, the birds and animals killed, some even eaten, hi vain he explained he was a Swede, a scientist who took no part in the strife of nations. All they would let him keep was what remnants of the wreckage he could sweep from the floor. This deliberate brutality was curiously blended with civility. The
commodore listened sympathetically to Macaulay's protests, gave him hospitality on his ship, and helped him salvage some of his clothes and papers. One of his captains even gave up his own bed to Gray. The officers expressed sympathy with Afzelius, assured him he deserved to be compensated for his losses, but when one of them restored him his bedspread a sailor snatched it away again. Only after repeated protests
did he
manage
had carried
sailor
to recover a set
off.
For tKe
of botanical drawings which a were under no control, and
sailors
treated their officers as equals.
The people, and some officials, took refuge in the bush, or at GranTown, where the French only fired one shot without landing. Bance Island fell, as so often before. Some were sheltered by the Temne. Pa Demba whose town lay to the south (where the road that still bears his name crosses Sanders Brook) took in refugees, including Mrs Perth, the Nova Scotian schoolmistress and her charges. But Bartholemew Naimbana came down to welcome his French friends, and tried to ville
get Farama to join them, so that the distressed people had the added
apprehension of a
On
Temne
attack.
2nd the French set fire to Macaulay's house and those adjoining; on the 5th they burnt down all the Company's buildings. Some Nova Scotian houses were burnt too, despite promises to spare them.
the
Still
the squadron remained in the harbour.
loaded with a cargo valued
England, put about she could escape.
England, even the
new
letters
Kew
all
from
of the destruction, but was captured before
and
spectacles, the
but his gown, while
Rev. James Langlands,
official
despatches, private
of plants sent from the royal gardens
a large collection
were flung into the
Not
^10,000,
the 9th the Harpy,
passengers were robbed. Cuthbcrt, back from
lost his hat
chaplain,
and
at sight
The
at
On
sailed in unsuspectingly
at
sea.
until the 13th did the
French
sail.
60
As
a final
blow
to the stricken
colony the parting
commodore put on
shore 120 European
sailors,
it was two months before a ship was found to take the survivors (for most took ill and died) to the West Indies. Yet, with his usual civility, he also landed provisions which, supplemented by produce from the Nova Scotia ns' farms, and bought
taken prisoner from his prizes;
from Aspinall, prevented starvation. Nevertheless the Europeans, crowded into temporary shelter, without medicine, fell ill. Pepys, who fled into the bush with his wife, little boy and maid at the sound of the first shot, died of fright and exposure even before the French left (though his family survived). By the end of the year ten of the Company's forty European employees were dead, including the chaplain and two royal gardeners from Kew who came out in the Harpy. Francophile shareholders in England, and the Republican Bishop
Gregoire in France, protested the French government
knew nothing
of the attack and never intended it; it is said that the commodore was imprisoned on his return. But the Company's losses were not made good. As well as the Harpy and five other ships captured in the harbour, two
more were
taken, dov^m the coast, after the French left Freetown.
insurance rates had risen with the war, httle
was
insured.
The
As
total loss
was well over ^50,000. Renaud abandoned Gambia Island and continued the squadron's work. Having captured the Company's ship Naimbana and renamed her Carmagnole, he
waged war
against
all
British shipping. In 1796 he
captured the Company's Ocean, captained by Macaulay's brother
Alexander, with a valuable cargo. Petitions were sent to the British
government but not until 1798 did a naval ship arrive to put down French privateers. Even so, two of the Company's ships were captured in 1798 (Alexander Macaulay in charge of one), two in 1799, two in 1800. Only when Gorec was taken from the French in 1800 did the coast
become
safer.
The Company could not afford to rebuild lavishly. The store-house was replaced on the old site, with the church behind it, and a house put up for living quarters, but no other buildings along the shore. The governor moved from the waterfront, where his house had presented Thornton Hill. A few camion were end of the town, though they inspired confidence. One battery was at Falconbridgc Point; the other,
the French with an easy target, to installed facing the sea at either little
61
above ICing Jimmy Brook, Wadstrom marked on his plan of Freetown as he presumed it, before and after destruction) as Padenheim Fort, called after another Swede in the Company's (which shows the town,
D. W. Padenheim, engineer and builder. Nor, having lost so much, could the Company afford to go on treating the population as employees. Storemen and porters were given up: when, soon after the French left, a ship arrived with salt, two Nova Scotians contracted to unload it. The Company's store had already renounced its wasteful, aggravating monopoly of retailing. service,
Licensed shops were opened instead, though prices were
and unlicensed
Money was
retailers
still
controlled,
punished.
Crankapone, Abraham Smith and John Kizzell to build a boat, The Three Friends, to trade for cattle in the Northern Rivers. Others followed their example: by 1796 half a dozen were lent to
went up the Rokel. Kizzell was one of the witnesses sent to England to give evidence on Channel's riot. He returned with a supply of trade goods to find the Colony devastated by the French, and devoted his first profits trading in the Rio Pongas. Others
relieving
to
his
goods to open his
fellow
Baptists.
The Company advanced him moved to the Sherbro,
Port Loko, but he
a factory at
old home, whence as a boy he had been carried a slave to
Charleston.
So
after the
French attack the
Company became more of an
indirect
than direct source of livelihood. Builders and carpenters were employed
by
the job, not permanently.
found them to officials, quarters,
Those
who
good houses them profitably
built themselves
a valuable investment, for they
could
let
whom the Company could no longer afford to supply with
sometimes for
The Company
also
as
much
allowed
its
as 155 a
European
week, or officials to
as stores
buy
or
offices.
land, hitherto
forbidden.
Many more
turned to farming their mountainous country
lots.
Andrew Moore, bred on a plantation in Georgia, walking down through the bush
from
his distant
farm (near the present Leicester village), He traced it to a nearby tree
noticed a coffee seed lying on the ground.
which Afzclius hurried up next day to identify as an indigenous variety of coffee, liitherto unknown. His discovery stimulated cultivation further: gradually the slopes round the town were cleared and planted. James Robertson, junior, another witness sent to England in 1794, brought back ginger and planted it successfully. Macaulay built a house, which he called Mount Pelicr, and farmed 62
beyond where the i,ooo ft. Leicester The hill above ThornRoad). present the crosses Hne contour ton Hill was farmed by Nathaniel Wansey and called Wansey Hill. On Washington Hill (Clarkson's 'Directors' Hill') Henry Washington put into practice agricultural lessons he may have learnt at Mount Vernon before he left his master since President of the United States.
on
the high plateau near Moore's farm (just
—
and many alarms of attack in succeeding years, tended to unite the divided colony. Yet it caused indirectly another division. A few Nova Scotians surreptitiously joined the French in
The French
attack,
own
Company's expense. Macaulay told them to give up the Company's property, offering twenty per cent of the value as salvage. Little was restored, so he drew up a declaration for everyone to sign, of not possessing any of the Company's property: those who refused, were denied free medical care, free schooling for their children, and prizes for farming. This was felt a bitter grievance, particularly by those who had sheltered houseless officials. Some of Moses Wilkinson's congregation wrote angrily to Clarkson that they had not stolen the property, only protected it, so had a right to keep it. They went on to ascribe the invasion to God's judgment on tyrants, alternatively suggesting Macaulay had deliberately betrayed them to the French. Some even hinted that the destruction of the town had brought the Colony to a legal end, and that its laws were no longer binding. As at the time of Chamiel's riot, Macaulay answered with brisk, overwhelming arguments. When new Hundredors and Tythingmen plundering, to recoup their
losses at the
were elected in May 1795 he recalled again how dependent they were, warned them sharply to think less of their rights against the Company, more of their obligations to it, and explained clearly that he was accountable to the directors, not to them. He promised that if their outstanding grievance, not getting their full allotments of land, still rankled, he would allot at once, but emphasized that he could not guarantee, any more than the directors originally, allotments on flat or accessible land.
He rebuked
their suspicious readiness to believe the
government, to impute evil motives and espy tyranny where there was none; he reminded them how much they were left to rule themselves through their own juries, how the Hundredors and
worst of
their
Tythingmen were not only responsible a potential House of Commons. 63
for
law and order, but formed
Thus he quieted suspicions.
A
their
murmurings, but without allaying their Dawes returned and he went on leave to
fortnight later
England.
As a potential House of Commons the Hundredors and Tythingmen drew up rules to govern their deliberations, providing for regular meetings, freedom of debate, and decisions by majority vote. At their request Dawes and his Council (consisting after Watt's death only of John Witchell who came with him from England as a Councillor)
who
passed laws fixing the price of bread, and forbidding strangers
brought
cattle to the
Colony
to cut out the butchers
by slaughtering and Tythingmen
In October the Hundredors and
retailing themselves.
proposed, and the Governor and Council passed, the direct taxation, a
Road Tax,
obliging
Other
confirmed
resolutions,
measure of
adult men, and female landon the roads or commute with
all
holders, to supply six days labour a year a fine.
first
as laws,
during 1796, included rules
had husband
to prevent strangers exercising freeholders* privileges until they
held land in the Colony for a year, and a divorce granted a
whose
unfaithful wife
had remained
in America, (on the analogy
of
Parliamentary divorce in England). Such laws were recorded in the
Minute Book of the Governor's Council.
No
separate Statute
Book
has survived.
A
court was constituted in 1795 where
Tythingmen
sat
with the
with power to inflict fines, confmement in the stocks, thus relieving the overburdened Quarter Sessions and giving Nova Scotians magisterial responsibilities. A few refused to take part in the elections. Jordan and some of his friends in Brothers Street, got land from a Temne chief. Prince George at Pirates' (or Cockle) Bay to move to should they be ejected. They wrote begging Clarkson to return and lead them from the House of Bondage. But most were reassured by the respect paid their representatives and settled down again quietly. whippings and
justices to hear petty cases,
Ill
and depressed
of the Native Africans until 1803
the
after
restored his equanimity
by
in tJic
(though he
French had gone,
Dr Winterbottom
collecting material for a book. His Account
Neighbourhood of Sierra Leone, not published
left in
April 1796), gives valuable descriptions o£
the surrounding tribes to supplement Matthews's rather superficial picture;
Bulom, Temne and Susu vocabularies
second volume
is
the
first
are appended.
The
systematic account of African medicine, with 64
— of
descriptions
diseases,
remedies and therapeutic plants. Eschewing
theories himself, he provided astringent answers, based
who
experience, to European writers
out studying them.
He was
and died,
for he lived to be ninety-four,
years*
theorized about Africans, with-
good advertisement
a
on four
it is
for the
said, the oldest
Colony, doctor
in
Europe.
with
Afzelius,
stoic resignation, resisted the
One
the scene of his miseries.
temptation to abandon
garden and some manuscripts had
Sweden and England sent new instrumoney, and he resumed work, cultivating plants he
escaped destruction. Friends in
ments and
a little
found growing wild, rebuilding
his collection of insects and animals, and the Rio Pongas. In May 1796 he returned to London to classify his discoveries. Only fragments were published: the Flora and Fauna of Sierra Leone he seems to have projected was never written to commemorate his patient, courageous
visiting the
Banana
Islands
labours.
While Christian Europe was gaining a foothold on the peninsula, Islam was still spreading south and west from Futa Jalon (pp. 5h5). The Baga, Bulom and other coastal peoples along the Northern Rivers
Nunez and
Melakori, Bereira, Rio Pongas, Rio penetrating tributaries
—were
dinka and Fula, or by Susu who, though most swelled the invading tide.
their sluggish, inter-
gradually conquered by
Mandinka
still
Muslim Manrejected Islam,
settled at Forekaria; the
neigh-
bourhood became known to Europeans as the 'Mandingo country'. Susu ruled the adjoining kingdom, Wonkafong. The French on Gambia Island sent Bunduka, aristocratic Fula, into the Temne country as trading agents they stayed and won themselves the Mafonda chiefdom, south of the Small Scarcies. Individual Muslims, adventurers in search of chiefdoms or itinerant teachers, penetrated to the Sherbro and Gallinas. Matthews wrote that he never visited a town without its Mandinka 'bookman'. Welcomed for their learning and occult powers of divination, such Muslims made few converts. Chiefs were sometimes attracted by the prestige of Islam, but seldom their subjects. The Muslim cliief Watt and Gray visited in the Bunipe River :
ruled people
Vai
chiefs,
who
preserved their
own
religion. In the Gallinas too the
but not their subjects, were converted.
During the 1780s Smart, a Loko slave at Bance Island (later known as Gumbu Smart), proved himself so capable and intelligent that he was 65
not
sold,
own
but employed. Sent up the Rokel
countrymen, and kept them
Temne.
he bought up his army, which he used to
as a factor
as a private
was allowed to settle at Rokon where he town. Soon he was the most powerful chief in the country, independent of his employers at Bance Island who dared help the
In return he
built a large, well-laid-out
not ask him to repay the credit advanced him.
Trading in the north, he met Mori Bundu, educated Muslim, and brought
He
him back
to
Bunduka make charms a
Fula,
an
for him.
too became an important chief, married a daughter of Naimbana's,
and settled to Koya.
a
few miles down the Rokel
at
Foredugu, nominally subject
Muslim penetration linked a wide area behind the Colony to North Wandering pilgrims or traders brought news from the Mediter-
Africa.
ranean, or gave information about Timbuktu, or the Hausa country, still unvisited by Europeans. If some European observers noted the West African Muslims' deviations from strict orthodoxy, their disregarding the restrictions on plurahty of wives, their using magic to
exploit the credulous, their times
Winterbottom observed
of prayer, and the Ramadan
fast.
how
strictly
they kept
Impressed by their decor-
ous manners, and by reports from Timbo, he and other Europeans in
Colony contrasted them favourably with the peoples of the coast, long corrupted by contact with European slave-traders. Afzelius found visiting Fula confirmed his Swedenborgian pre-conceptions, which indeed seem revived in a new form when Macaulay maintained that Africans were the more civilized the further away they were from the the
coast.
Obliged to
restrict their policy, the directors still
the interior to trade. In 1795
years earlier
wanted
Thomas Cooper, who had
to
open up
arrived
from England (where he was born of African
two
parents),
Rio Pongas to trade with the He was instructed not only to refuse slaves, but avoid the customary dishonesties of the Coast trade, and so raise the general standard of business. This self-denying ordinance did not extend to refusing to sell rum or firearms which
went
to start a factory, *Freeport', in the
Susu, and the Fula caravans
figure in his
first
from Futa
Jalon.
accounts.
—
The Northern Rivers were full of slave-traders European, like the notorious Jolm Ormond, a byword for cruelty, who died in 1791 after his slaves
had
risen against
him, or American, 66
like
Benjamin
Curtis,
who
home-town, Boston, or their children few were friendly, like David Lawrence, son of a slave-trader from Deal, who visited Freetown and told Afzelius about local substitutes for quinine. Miss Betsy Heard who had been in England as a girl, and ruled as chief at Bereira, also supplied information about medicinal plants. But most were hostile, tried to thwart Cooper, even unsuccessfully incited the Susu to burn his factory. War between Fula and Susu often prevented caravans getting to the coast when they did, the store was often empty because no trade goods had arrived from England. But if Freeport was disappoiuting commercially, it provided cattle for the colony, where there were none. Trypanosomiasis was not yet endemic there, so they could be imported to drag loads or eat. But it was difficult to breed from them or rear calves. Cows were regularly decoyed away by neighbouring Temne. So the Colony remained dependent on an imported called his factory after his
by African mothers.
A
:
supply.
Contact with the Fula provided the link with Islam the directors
had long hoped
for. Its austere
monotheism
attracted their
extreme
Protestantism: Wilberforce told Clarkson to explain to any Muslims
he met that he did not worship images like the
who
Roman
Catholics.
Freetown were deeply impressed by Macaulay's rigid self-discipline and principles, while he was interested in a religion that seemed to share much with Christianity. Opponents of the slave
Muslims
trade
were
visited
also
impressed by their apparent unwillingness to
sell
fellow-Muslims.
When Macaulay returned in March 1796 a band of missionaries came with him chosen by Dr Coke, Superintendent of the Wesleyan Foreign Missions, to convert the Fula. Two were ordained ministers, the rest Christian craftsmen to teach
new
Gospel.
It
was
new
skills as
wives and children following
when
well
men go
originally intended that the
as
preaching a
out alone, their
they were well established, but
Dawes pointed out the temptations single men would be exposed to, so all went out together. The six missionary families were quite unprepared for what awaited them. The wives found to their horror that there were no pastrycooks' shops in Freetown, and that they were expected to cat
One took
to drink; another
shouting bitter reproaches.
salt beef.
pursued her husband through the
streets
The men were amazed when Macaulay
mentioned they would have to work with At last, on the morning they were due to 67
their sail
hands
to the
among
the Fula.
Northern Rivers,
they announced they
would go nowhere but on board
the next boat
for England.
Macaulay was back, Dawes, whose health had suffered, Macaulay took over and was eventually confirmed as Governor. Witchell left with Dawes; Gray formed the Governor's Council. When he went on leave James Carr, the accountant, sat there temporarily. For nearly five months, from November 1797 to April 1798, Macaulay ruled alone, registering his own decisions as those of the Governor and Council. Having lost so much, the directors decided to supplement their meagre trading returns by tapping a source of income foreseen from the start (p. 30); but never yet exploited, the quit-rents on the Nova Scotians' land. In June 1796 a notice was issued fixing them at a shilling an acre per annum, chargeable from January the ist 1797, the first half-yearly payment of 6 J an acre to be made in July 1797. The name 'quit-rent' was not strictly applicable to the Company's charge. A survival of mediaeval land-tenure, the ancient quit-rents surviving in England, and those levied on newly granted land in Crown Colonies, were originally exacted to safeguard Crown rights rather than to raise revenue. Though the Company's first statement of policy differentiated between quit-rents and taxes, the distinction was ignored in 1796. The quit-rent was imposed as a land tax to yield the
As soon
as
resigned.
Company revenue. The Nova Scotians it
a
did not need to understand legal terms to believe
breach of faith. Nothing the directors or their employees could say
would Birch
efface the
memory of the
Town when
pay rent for had announced
scene in
Daddy
Moses's Chapel at
Clarkson had promised they would never have to
their land (pp.3 3-4). All their suspicions revived.
lost their land grants during the French invasion, so at the
same time
new
new certificates would be issued. Only many who did, later returned them, for
that
about half came to fetch them: the
Many
Macaulay
grants explicitly specified quit-rents.
Macaulay
also tried again to
remove Jordan, Anderson and
their
party from 'Discontented Row'. At the July Quarter Sessions an action for ejectment
was brought
them on the Company's behalf. jury was being tampered with so the
against
During the trial it appeared the case was retried with a Special Jury. After long deliberation they found for the defendants some jurors subsequently apologizing to Macaulay
—
68
had not
that they
approved of the verdict. But their decision of the impartiality of the Company's courts, and
really
stood, a vindication
the rights of juries.
A new
chaplain, the Rev.
John Clarke,
Edinburgh, came out with Macaulay.
a Scottish Presbyterian
Some
not being an Anglican but had to give
directors objected to his
in.
'Here',
Macaulay once
Two
Scottish school-
wrote, 'we are not Presbyterians but Christians.' masters accompanied
them
from
so the school could be divided
:
till
then
all
200 or so children had been together in the church. Mrs Wilkinson, a
widow from Clapham, was
in charge
of the
girls
with
a
Nova
Scotian
schoolmistress to help her.
Now retrenching, the Company stopped supplying the children with were only collected from parents who of not possessing looted property (a dollar a quarter), or from outsiders. A trader at Cape Coast was charged /J 14 a year, including board and lodging, for a girl he sent to
stationery.
But school
fees
refused to sign the declaration
school.
Children sent by chiefs paid nothing and were lodged in Macaulay's
house where he led them daily in family prayers, and catechized them on
An
Edinburgh missionary magazine reported that he was waited on by the children of kings. Clarke and the Presbyterian schoolmasters were amazed at the Nova Scotians' lack of intolerance. Baptists and Methodists attended one another's services, and expected them to do the same, showing an example of Apostolic simplicity. Clarke was soon preaching in David Sundays.
George's Chapel.
The
welcomed Europeans as helpers but not as guides or instructors. They trusted to the Holy Spirit, not to human instruction, believing God would as soon enlighten the illiterate (which some were) as the educated. The disgruntled Scotsmen soon noted amid Apostolic preachers
simplicity the 'turning the grace the Apostles'
own
of our
God
congregations. Yet those
into lasciviousness'
who
of
erred, held they
were justified by the Spirit working within them. Clarke and Macaulay, them slow to accept rebuke, called this Antinomianism using religion to cloak immorality and insubordination.
—
finding
Among sent out
m
the
Company's European schoolmasters was
1793.
He
Jolin Garvin,
resented Clarke's being set over him, resigned,
but stayed in Freetown, where he had great niflucnce, preaching to 69
Moses Wilkinson's congregation, seeking to supplant the blind pastor in their affections. He was joined by Jacob Grigg, one of two missionaries sent by the Baptist Missionary Society, who, after a short stay at Port Loko, settled in Freetown. Grigg and Garvin had grown up in the deep-rooted tradition of resentment Enghsh Nonconformists inevitably felt at the disabihties the Church of England imposed. They hated Clarke, the representative of the Established Church of Scotland, put about rumours that he and Macaulay were seeking to suppress the Nova Scotian preachers, shut their chapels and establish Presbyterianism. They played on the people's mistrust of quit-rents to suggest the Company was trying to reduce them to slavery, warning them that those who resisted would be dragged at the tails of horses. Clarke's congregation dwindled: when he went round visiting, the Methodists shut their doors in his face.
Marriages were performed in the Colony without the formahties English law required.
nor
by
if there
The Chaplain sometimes
was none, and
a register
was
officiated,
kept, but
or the Gover-
many were
married
what was a legal as well as a rehgious contract, drew up rules, under which future marriages would be vahd only if performed by the Chaplain, or some person designated by the Governor, after having the banns called in the Church. He also appended rules to oblige fathers to maintain bastards. The Hundredors and Tythingmen, after long debate, agreed to them by preachers. In July 1796 Macaulay, wishing to regularize
a large majority.
Garvin represented these
rules as the prelude to the closing
of all the
He and Beverout harangued Moses's congregation a violent of protest with 128 names appended, was sent to the Governor and Council. Even the sober David George was worked up to a frenzy. Macaulay waited a day or two, then explained publicly that the rules implied no more than they stated. By then passions had calmed; David George, thinking better of his excitement, helped to talk round the misled. Some confessed they had allowed Garvin to add their names to the letter without knowing what was in it. But the Methodists remained suspicious of Clarke who, attending Moses's meeting, had to sit through a sermon preached against him by Luke Jordan. Soon after, Macaulay discovered that Garvin had written defamatory letters about him to Home in England, and had liim tried for defamation, incitmg to riot, and forging a signature on the letter of protest (which he admitted). Foiuid guilty, he was dismissed and given a passage to America. Grigg joined him, having represented Inmself to chapels.
;
letter
70
of persecution. Their congrehad duped them, turned back to Clarke again, and imported sectarian strife died down. the Baptists in England as the victim gations, reahzing they
The Colony's misfortunes inclined the directors to think in terms of •cutting losses, not making profits. Fewer cargoes were sent to risk capture by the French. Even so, of six ships sent out in 1798 and 1799 four were taken, and a fifth wrecked. In the barter economy of the Coast, reducing the supply of trade goods meant turning away customers and losing trade to the well-stocked slave-traders: Cooper's was unavailing when his store was empty. As the
efficiency at Freeport
French took
all
available coin, the
Colony had again
which could only be exchanged if there were none it failed
store
:
Nova Scotians felt cheated. A new issue of one cent and
to use paper
against goods in the in
its
money
Company's
function as a bank and the
was struck in 1796, but the war raised the price of silver too high to mint new dollars; European traders in any case mistrusted them. American captains often refused to sell for anything but American dollars or slaves, so ships full of urgently wanted goods would sail past to Bance Island without the Colony being able to buy from them. As in Clarkson's day the Company's agents in England were negligent, often sending
were
the ledgers
ten cent pieces
damaged or unsuitable cargoes. Early in 1797 all none arrived from England, so the elaborate
fJled,
accounting system had to be abandoned. acting for ficult.
With
officials
one another, systematic accounting was
in
often
any
ill,
and
case dif-
by complaints, waged long, shortcomings. Macaulay sometimes
Storekeepers, their dignity affronted
angry paper-battles to justify their
had to do the accounts himself. Where European officials were so often incapacitated, or incompetent, there was every inducement to train Nova Scotians. In 1796 Jesse
George and
Eli
Ackim were
taken on as assistant apothecaries;
three years later George was appointed apothecary. Promising lads were trained as artisans. Nathaniel Snowball, junior, was given command of one of the Company's schooners as a trading agent in the Northern Rivers. Nova Scotians were responsible for administering the road tax and maintaining roads. In his speech in March 1795 Macaulay said no European was doing work they could efficiently do.
European
salaries
were too low
to be reduced without alternative
71
compensation. Even the Governor only got /^400, with ^^400 table officials could barely provide the necessaries of life.
allowance: junior
1797 the directors decided to
In
let
them
forbidden, and receive in return lower
trade privately, hitherto
salaries.
The Company's own trade was cut down and separated from government; Gray was given full charge as Commercial Agent. Neither he nor the Governor were allowed private trade. The change made government easier and raised the Governor's status.
He no
prices to
longer needed to risk enraging the people by raising
make
profits for the
by haggling behind
Company, nor compromise
commercial rivals who and had salaries which, even
governments
if reduced,
suffered, for land in the
provided
the
Company its
suffered
interests for
Company's
Future
officials.
Above
all,
from employees who henceforth tended to their own. Instead of trading through the
ill-supplied store they dealt
whose
capital.
middle of Freetown, originally
reserved for public building, was parcelled out to
neglect
his dignity
But the Nova Scotians were given were allowed credit at the Company's store,
a counter.
with the better-stocked slave-
were gradually drawn. Increasingly independent, they refused to pay the Company's Customs, which had to be abandoned. So by cutting immediate losses the directors reduced hope of future gain. traders into
orbit they
Cinnamon, guinea-grass (to feed cattle) and mangoes were brought from St Thome to plant on the Bulom Shore (also a horse for Macaulay to ride), but the soil was less fertile than had been supposed. Labour was hard to get: the Bulom soon lost interest in working for others, Nova Scotians had their own farms. In 1796 'Clarkson Plantation' was virtually abandoned.
Thompson's Bay,
A
six
just west
acre plantation cleared and planted at
of Fora Point (land originally intended for
a dockyard), also found unremuncrativc,
from
the
Cape of Good Hope
to
farm on
was liis
let to a
German
planter
own.
found wild cotton growing plentifully, but termites underground, grasshoppers above, thwarted all attempts to plant it systematically, or to cultivate plantations of imported Brazilian cotton. Afzehus
Scarcely half the seeds planted
came up;
often witliin a fortnight
no
plant in a hundred survived. But SLigar-cane did well in the moiuitains. A rough sugar-null was put up by the stream east of the town (later Nicol Brook); Macaulay
more than one
72
:
wrote in 1798 that several farmers had suppHed themselves v^ith tw^enty or thirty pounds of home-grow^n sugar. Coffee-planting held out hopes of profit. Some European officials planted it successfully Gray cultivated twenty acres at his farm by a little stream on the waterfront east of the Scotians did
town
(the site
of the future Bishopscourt). The Nova
planting, but about three-quarters
less large-scale
grew
food for themselves or to supplement their other earnings.
Mihtary
service,
which Sharp held an obligation of frankpledge, had
been forgotten while the Colony seemed secure.
With
constant alarms
of another French invasion, Macaulay organized a regular militia. If he lacked Clarkson's emotional sympathy with his subjects he was ready to interpret the promised equality of colour as liberally. Instead of making the Company's European people elect their own, and
made
handled a gun before, serve under the military experience.
Those
who
December 1796
elections
let
the
some of whom had never
Nova
Scotian captains with their
protested he rebuked sharply.
This display of confidence did In
he
officials militia officers
officials,
little
were
to restore faith in the
and
Company.
of its opponents owned land had votes but none
held,
a majority
were chosen. European officials who were elected, indeed attempts were made to stop them voting. The six Hundredors included Anderson, Nathaniel Snowball (another inhabitant of 'Discontented Row', a bitter opponent of Macaulay's), and Ishmael York and Stephen Peters who had led the outcry against Europeans voting. In January 1797 Macaulay again announced that quit-rents would be payable in July. He added a notice that the Company would charge interest
on outstanding debts
This too was a grievance:
at the store,
many
some unpaid
for years.
suspected that previous storekeepers
had overcharged them to hide deficiencies. Snowball led a dozen or so families out of the Colony to the land they had bought at Pirates' Bay where they built houses and a church, forming their own settle-
ment under liis governorship. The Baptists agreed to pay the
quit-rents; the
refused; the Methodists threatened those
who
The Hundredors and Tythingmen drew up
Huntingdonian leaders paid with expulsion. a
respectful
protest,
arguing that they had been promised land, had been led to behcve it theirs, and that they would never have accepted it had they realized the
Company would demand 821613
rent. 73
F
Macaulay replied
in a long speech, his bibhcal phrases
Company's
theirs, recalling the
terms, rehearsing
all it
matching had done in
providing doctors and teachers, in lettiQg them off quit-rents for so He begged them, if only in gratitude, to recompense the heavy
long.
outlay with so small a payment as five shillings a year (the rent of a five-acre allotment). their
As
only safeguard against their
were printed (on the vasion) to circulate
many
enemies.
A
Company was hundred copies
were determined
collectively never to pay.
the end of September rumours reached
would be put down
French in-
But, convinced individually by his
him an armed
being planned. Dropping his persuasive mask he riot
the
press repaired, or replaced, after the
among them.
patient reasoning, they
At
warned them
before, he
let it
be
rising
was
known
that
rigorously, order enforced if need be with the
no attempt was made to normal law-abiding quiet. When elections were held at the end of the year, only one of the existing Hundredors was re-elected, and Carr, the Company's accountant, was included among the Tythingmen. gallows. His threats calmed them, and as
collect the quit-rents they reverted to their
King Jimmy died in May 1796. His successor Pa Kokelly, who took the old name King Tom, was a chief from the Bunce River, whose son Henry was being educated by the Company in England. Like young Naimbana he disappointed his sponsors by dying there of smallpox. Signior Domingo's son Antony returned rather unwillingly and was employed in the accountant's office. Macaulay found him frivolous, while he annoyed his father by rejecting the ministrations of a country doctor when he fell ill. Eventually, tired of Macaulay 's reproofs, he went back to his family. Naimbana in his lifetime acted as the Colony's 'landlord'; Bai Farama appointed successively King Jimmy and King Tom. But the Company's government did not observe the familiar usages between landlord and stranger (p. 8). The landlord was not allowed to interfere in disputes witliin the Colony. No rent was paid for the land. No new treaty was made when the landlord died. King Tom could not see that he was bound by a treaty made with liis predecessors. Macaulay argued with him, as Falconbridge and Clarkson with Naimbana, that the land, once paid for, need not be bought again. Tom licld that the land was inalienable: Macaulay could only reply that it had plainly been alienated. 74
Unconvinced,
Tom
nourished
a
grievance
against
Macaulay,
blaming him for the
rise in the Company's prices. Snowball and his and a slave-trader who lived on the other side of Pirates' Bay, encouraged his animus. Those aggrieved against the Company hoped he would take back the ceded land and give it to them instead. He refused to accept as his boundary a straight line drawn from the mouth of the brook west of the watering-place (later, Sanders Brook),
associates,
on
of the brook itself. Farmers in the disputed had to be given land elsewhere. Bai Farama too had grievances against the Colony, notably its providing a refuge for slaves he was proposing to sell. It was rumoured persistently the Temne intended an attack. Thus the friendly relations of the early 1790s were succeeded by mutual mistrust. insisting area,
the curving line
alarmed by
The Missionary
his threats,
London Missionary Society) was body to sponsor Protestant missions. Home's writings, among others, helped inspire the founders. The Glasgow branch sent two missionaries early in 1797 to revive the unhappy mission to the Fula; six more, from Edinburgh, Glasgow and London, followed later in the year. As before, clergy and laity were mixed: some were ordained Presbyterian ministers, the rest pious artisans, who rather disliked their subordinate status. None were trained for their work. Even before they left Gravesend they were founded in 1795,
Society
(later,
a non-sectarian
•
disputing furiously about theology to the delight of captain and
crew: in Freetown they quarrelled perpetually. Macaulay, realizing they could never go as a group to the Fula country, where in
war had
any case broken out against the Susu, distributed them in
pairs
nearby.
Henderson and Campbell, the two first arrivals, went up to Rokon where Smart received them warmly. But they were uncongenial companions. Henderson, dissuaded by Macaulay from bethrothing himself to one of Smart's ten-year-old daughters, fell ill and went home. Campbell was joined by his wife and daughters. Mrs Campbell,
money, did all her own domestic work and like her neighbours Rokon, went about barefoot; within a few months she was dead. Campbell after a year or two abandoned his missionary calling, married
to save at
an African
girl, and turned slave-trader. Another pair went to Jenkins, a town on the north shore of Sherbro Island, luider the protection of William Ado, an aged chief (Wmtcr-
75
bottom believed him about a hundred) who had originally come from the Gold Coast. Both caught fever and died within a few months.
The
missionaries realized that to be at
African languages. Clarke began to learn
Ro
all useful they must learn Temne, and preached in it
King Tom's town. He started writing a Teimic book, but died in December 1798 before finishing it. Peter Grieg and Henry Brunton who were sent to the Rio Pongas learnt Susu. When Brunton returned to Scotland he published, in 1801, a Susu Grammar, and a series of Susu catechisms, the first books published in Britain in a at
Fransa,
West African language (though language bore
little
slave-traders in
the area said his
resemblance to what the Susu spoke).
This Susu mission was short-hved. Brunton abandoned Africa, and went as a missionary to the Caucasus. Grieg, alone in the Rio Pongas, was murdered by a party of marauding Fula.
hi June 1797
home
Macaulay applied
the following spring.
to the directors to be allowed to
Not
Thomas Ludlam, son of
go
until April 1798 did his successor
well-known Cambridge mathethough never at a university (he had been a printer's apprentice), a young man of twentythree without experience of governing or of Africa. Rather than leave the uneasy Colony to his inexperience, Macaulay postponed departure arrive,
a
matician, himself of scholarly temperament,
a year, to guide
him
in his task.
further attempt was made to collect quit-rents (Macaulay wrote to the directors he thought they could only be raised by force) there was little opposition to the government during the first months of 1798. Continual alarms of French fleets in the neighbourhood united
As no
the
Colony
in
common
defence:
all
joined gladly in strengthening the
October Gray returned from England (after being captured by the French en route) with despatches from the directors instructing Macaulay to try again to levy quit-rents, but, as a
feeble fortifications, hi
concession, to apply the proceeds to local improvements, not the
Company's revenue. Concession was in
name
was enough to revive mistrust. Again Macaulay offered new grants: only a dozen or so accepted. This time he announced that the Company would no longer recognize that those without grants had any title to their land. At the elections in December fierce opponents of the quit-rents were vain: the
76
quit-rent
chosen Hundredors, including Anderson, Thomas Freeman, one of Garvin's strongest adherents, and Ansel Zizer, a former captain who,
Company's
refusing to sign the
farm
for cultivating his
peaceable and law-abiding united
Ready
money
to
work on
the roads or
had been refused a prize of Washington Hill. Even the
declaration,
at the foot
pay
a
behind them against quit-rents. road
tax,
ready to consider raising
communal services, they would not which they conceived robbed them and their children of
themselves, if need be, for
hear of rent
right to the land.
all
The
directors, cutting
down
expenses,
wanted
to reduce the cost
of education. In January 1799 it was announced that only children whose parents had paid quit-rent would be educated free, the rest be charged a dollar a quarter. At once almost all children were withdrawn.
Even when the condition was abandoned sixty sent theirs back.
a school
An English
sailor,
and had seventy pupils in
a
later in the
year only about
stranded in Freetown, opened
day or two. Yet when he died
would not send them to the Company's school. So when Macaulay sailed on April the 4th, he left a Colony not in open opposition, but discontented and mistrustful. He never went the parents
back to Sierra Leone. In England he married Selina Mills, the fiancee
him since 1796, and was appointed the Company's secretary London. He took with him twenty boys and four girls, some of the children from up country whose education he had been supervising, with a few Nova Scotian children added: Robert Haldane, an Edinburgh philanthropist, was paying to bring them to Scotland for further schooling. Arrived in London, Macaulay decided Haldane's religious and political principles debarred him from caring for his charges. Instead the directors agreed to support them, and they remained at Clapham under a awaiting
in
suitable schoolmaster.
They
received a general education including
were eventually baptized in Clapham Healthy at first, some developed or had to be sent home dying, before their
religious instruction: eighteen
Church.
Some
also learnt trades.
lung complaints, and died, course was fuiished.
The
frontispiece
Macaulay
of Winterbottom's book depicts the Freetown engraved from a drawing by W. A. Bowles who chief of the Creek Indians who, having escaped from
left. It is
purported to be Spanish slavery,
a
made
liis
way
to
Freetown 77
in 1798
on
his
way back
across the Atlantic.
The town
appears rebuilt after French devastation,
with one-storey huts. At the wharf is
about half-way up the
cliff above;
a store-house,
behind
hill
is
with another on the
a large
be the church (rebuilt 1797), with an avenue leading nor's house,
building,
it
Thornton flies
above
mistress)
the
its
Union Jack (sewn by
pahsade;
well
as
as the
up
to the
may
Gover-
A wooden, pedimented
or Fort Thornton.
Hill,
hut which
the
Company's schoolit was the
Governor's house
Secretary's office.
From
the harbour the 300 or so huts
placed in regular
streets.
seem
About half the
were by farming
to straggle, but they
inhabitants lived
which appear in the print as patches cleared on the surrounding hills most of the rest worked as artisans or fishermen, sometimes growing their own produce as well. About fifteen were retail shoptheir lots, :
keepers, another dozen or so traded with small boats in the nearby rivers.
Some settled down outside the Colony to
ment
at
slave
rebuilt the
John
factories.
Bance
trade, or took employMasons and carpenters from the Colony
Island factory after the French destroyed
Tilley, the chief agent,
had
a
Nova
or
came from nearby to work on
Nova Scotians' farms. home after laying
turning
in 1794:
Scotian mistress.
In addition to the settled population, sometimes as
300 labourers
it
the
many
as
200 or
Company's plantations
Usually they only stayed a few months, reout their wages in the Freetown shops, others
replacing them. Retailers were
made
to undertake not to cheat them,
a fme to the Benevolent Fund. Another 100 or so by canoe with produce. Men from the Kru Coast, some 300 miles south of Freetown, worked on the Company's ships and wharf. Efficient and industrious, their services had long been prized by slave-traders. By tradition they left home young, to work on ships or at factories. Kru women stayed at home: not until he had worked for twenty or tliirty years abroad did a Kruman settle down permanently with his wives. They first came to Freetown in 1793. The Company's employees (a few with wives), and drifting adven-
under penalty of
came
daily
turers,
comprised the twenty or thirty European
ships put in regularly, the
Company
inliabitants. Slave-
powerless to rescue slaves from
them: only with doubts as to whether the law would uphold him, did Macaulay make an American captain anchored in the harbour in 1796 give up some slaves he had just bought from King Jimmy. When the Navy began taking action against French privateers naval ships called in sometimes. Macaulay, welcoming their protection, deplored 78
on
their influence
the
Nova
Scotian
women who,
aheady used
to the
promiscuous hfe of the American plantations, grew more conspicuously licentious.
When
Cromwell's
soldiers
drove the Spaniards from Jamaica in 1655,
the slaves took to the mountains, and there
warfare against the
new
waged
intermittent guerilla
English proprietors. These Maroons,
as
they
were called, a name of uncertain derivation meaning a runaway slave, were joined by Ashanti (known there as 'Koromantees') who had escaped from their masters. The military efficiency of this warlike people, exercised in the impenetrable, precipitous, Jamaican bush made them almost invincible, hi 1739 the Jamaican government rather than prolong a tedious, expensive war, made a treaty with them. The Maroons were allowed to keep their mountain strongholds, laws and customs in return they undertook to help the government in invasion or insurrection and to track down runaway plantation slaves. Thus they remained isolated; even in the twentieth century their descendants in Jamaica preserved relics of the 'Koromantee' language. They settled ;
down peaceably, enforcing their ov^i laws, own courts. When the slaves revolted in
punishing offenders in their the 1760s they helped the
them down. 1795 the Maroons of Trelav^mey Town,
planters put
In
in the north-west
had broken the
of the
treaty
island,
a
mountain stronghold
conceiving the Jamaican government
by having two of them flogged, resumed
guerilla
war. Their neighbours refused to join them, but they were
still
a
formidable force. Experienced hunters, camouflaged with leaves, they easily
ambushed
were
at their
the red-coats sent marching against them.
mercy:
a fire started in the
The
planters
dry season might destroy
They also feared the Maroons might rouse their colour war as in the neighbouring St Domingo in
dozens of plantations. slaves in a ruthless
1791.
As
soldiers
could not subdue them with arms, the government
decided to hunt them with dogs. Mastiffs were hired from Cuba.
Unafraid of a human enemy, the Maroons sent word, before one dog had been loosed, that they would capitulate. General Walpole who
commanded last.
the troops, realized that their pacific feelings
might not
Rather than goad them back into resistance with harsh conditions,
he promised that
if
they surrendered they
would not be deported.
A general's word does not bind a legislature of frightened landowners, 79
No sooner did the Maroons surrender than the Jamaican Assembly had them and their famihes put on board ship. Without waiting for orders from England, they sent them to Halifax, Nova Scotia, and passed a law making it a capital offence for them to return. As they also voted money
to support
them, the British and
Nova
Scotian governments
decided to acquiesce.
The Maroons were landed were put to work building village deserted since
at Halifax,
seemed peaceful and
fortifications,
cheerful,
then settled at Preston, a
Hector Peters, Andrew Moore and
its
other
inhabitants sailed off with Clarkson four and a half years earlier.
Walpole, dishonoured by the Jamaican government, sent back the
went home, resigned
present of 500 guineas the Assembly voted him,
commission, and embarked on a career of
his
political opposition.
Sheridan reprobated in Parliament 'the abominable aid of bloodhounds'. After the winter of 1796-7, the longest and coldest ever
known
at
Maroons began petitioning to be removed from the bitter climate. In vain the Governor of Nova Scotia assured them and the British government that the climate Was healthy, that their dislike of it was pure malingering. They were determined not to stay. Knowing that government had undertaken to support them until they had grown enough to live on, they refused to grow anything. Their petitions went mostly to Walpole, the one man they could trust. One was to Thornton, asking him to have them sent to Africa. However unwilling to take these turbulent settlers, he and the directors saw a chance of getting government support. In February 1799 they agreed to take them if government would ship them across. In return they received -^7,000 from the vote for the Gold Coast forts, to fortify Thornton Hill, and a promise of a detachment of soldiers and an annual grant of ^4,000. The Charter ofJustice, delayed since 1791, was drawn Halifax, the
up
(it
took
a year to prepare
incontestable jurisdiction over
The Maroons had
and cost ^1,393) its
to give the
Company
subjects.
to endure another
Nova
Scotian winter, for the
them went to Quebec first, stuck in the ice, and had to wait for the thaw. It was August 1800 before they embarked, 550 of them, in charge of George Ross, a Company official sent over to bring them. A detachment of soldiers went to keep order on board, a needless precaution. Their own officers, commissioned in the Nova Scotia militia, their veteran General Montague James, their
Asia transport, sent to fetch
and captains, kept order and mountams.
colonels, majors
the Jamaican
80
discipline as strict as
on
James Cleveland of the Banana Islands (p. lo) died about 1791. His nephew William who succeeded was lazy and easy-going, but his enemies William and Stephen Caulker (as it came to be spelt), two brothers, one living on the mainland, the other on the Plantains, hated
much to combine and revenge their brother's murder. In 1797 Wilham Caulker died. Stephen, now in control of the whole chiefdom, joined by the Koya Temne, attacked Bemba, or Lord North, one another too
a
former
slave,
hated for his cruelty, who had beheaded Charles Caulker,
and been rewarded by the Clevelands with land southerly tip of the Sierra Leone peninsula).
Cleveland in alarm packed
his
at
Cape
Bemba was
Shilling (the
driven out.
people and possessions on board some
passing slave-ships and fled to the Sherbro. Caulker seized the Bananas,
and carried off James Cleveland's tombstone in triumph as a door-step to his family burial ground on Tasso Island, adjoining the Plantains. As the directors were afraid of planting the Maroons among the
Nova Scotians, it was proposed the Banana Islands home for them. Stephen Caulker was on friendly
already disaffected
be acquired
as a
terms with the Colony: two of his sons accompanied Macaulay to Clapham. But he hesitated to give up his newly reconquered patrimony,
and after long negotiations, only offered half the islands, for ^10,000. During the negotiations it appeared that Bai Farama had a claim to them; the exiled Cleveland too denied Caulker's ownersliip. Unable to pay such a price, unwilling to be entangled in disputed claims, the Company gave up the plan. Instead, Ludlam persuaded Bai Farama and his chiefs to sell the land between Pirates' and Whiteman's Bays, a strategic site, commanding the river mouth, to settle the Maroons on. But Snowball and his exodus were already established there. Fearing, on second thoughts, that they might influence the Maroons against the Company, he changed his mind and decided to settle them on the Bulom Shore.
The Hundredors and Tythingmen took with
their
own
to sitting separately, each chairman, a system that gave prominence to those
chosen to preside. The Tythingmen for 1799 elected James Robertson (or Robinson) chairman, Nathaniel Wansey, deputy. Robertson, a
man of about sixty, born in Virginia, had been a captain, was sent to England as a witness after the 1794 riot, and on his return set up as a spirit dealer. He felt a grievance against the legal system because he had lost
an action for debt. 81
Wansey, aged about
farmed above Thornton
forty,
Plill
(p. 63).
Hitherto he had taken no direct part in pohtics. Neither seems to have
been hterate
—both signed with
Though no
further attempt
a
mark.
was made to levy
of Collector of Quit-Rents, included abolished
—many
their
felt
rights
quit-rents
—the
office
in the Estimates for 1799,
still
was
endangered. Early in 1799
Robertson and Wansey asked in the name of the Hundredors and Tythingmen to have two Nova Scotians appointed j.P.s, and another sit at the Quarter Sessions. The Governor and Council on the grounds that a judge's function is to know and declare law, which they were not educated enough to do. Dissatisfied,
judge, to refused,
the
they persisted, and in June chose
Anderson and Cuthbert, England.
Mingo Jordan,
who were
both
the schoolmaster, with
literate
and had
The appointments were turned down, and
visited
the question
referred to the directors.
When spokesmen protested against quit-rents all were united behind them: the demand forjudges went beyond what many, even of those government deemed disaffected, wanted. The Methodist preachers, strong against quit-rents, further.
who
would not follow Robertson and Wansey
There was no strong
sought their
own
feeling against the existing judges: those
did so on grounds of principle, or self-interest,
rather than because they thought the
Increasingly the extremists turned
general assault
on
the
Company.
Company's oppressive. from particular demands
to a
In September the Hundredors and
Tythingmen issued resolutions declaring that the Nova Scotians owned the Colony and the land, that none but the Hundredors and Tytliingmen had the right to make laws, and that all foreigners should pay them tax.
Ludlam, confirmed
as
Governor
in
November, lacked
the personal
toughness which enabled Macaulay to keep order. Gray, his most
experienced adviser,
appointed Commercial Agent, went off the
Council. Richard Bright, appointed Councillor, was only just out from sensitive, Ludlam preferred to temporize, by the hope that the soldiers and Charter promised with the Maroons would arrive soon enough to prevent violence. In December, just before writs were issued for the new elections, he announced that the directors had refused to allow elected judges, pointing out that neither in England nor any British Colony were judges and j.p.s elected, but always appointed. He also announced that the schools be re-opcncd on their old footing. But reasoning and concession only
England. Cautious and sustained
82
— cnflamed opposition. Robertson, Zizer and Anderson were elected
Hundredors, Wanscy chairman of the Tythingmen,
were
In February 1800 the captain
King
many of whom
his active supporters.
Tom
of a Liverpool slave-ship refused to pay
anchorage dues. There was a violent dispute, and Ludlam
When the captain went, unarmed, to Thornton Hill a body of Nova Scotians turned out, threatening to give him up to King Tom unless he paid heavy compensation. Ludlam, who had promised him safe conduct, was powerless, publicly humiliated. The captain had to pay; though he was plainly in the wrong, the Company later indemnified him for Ludlam's enforced breach of faith. Anxious to regain his people's confidence, Ludlam asked for a statement of grievances. Wansey drew up a few, their paper money not being accepted at the store, their being rebuked publicly by the Company's employees, and instanced Robertson's and another verdict where the losing party was dissatisfied, as sufficient cause to warrant demanding their own judges. In April a judge and a J.P., Robertson and Cuthbert (once a supporter of government, but increasingly its opponent) were again chosen and offered to mediate, as a neutral.
again rejected.
Once more Ludlam
issued an explanatory address,
pointing out that juries, not judges give verdicts, that, with their
own
they could already. decide cases (though not the law which none were learned enough to know). He ended with a warning, that under the promised Charter ofJustice, they would fmd authority enforced by the Crown. But only a handful turned up to hear the address read. At the end Robertson rose and announced that he forbade the holding of another Quarter Sessions until new laws were made. His words were a sign that he and his associates were preparing the rival government already foreshadowed the previous September. The Tythingmen expelled those who opposed them, and put in their supporters. There was even talk of putting the Europeans out to sea in an oarless boat. Most disapproved strongly of violence, but few would join actively with a government they mistrusted against extremists. On September the 3rd the Hundredors and Tythingmen published their code of laws. It fixed prices, specified fines to be exacted for juries,
criminal offences
—
theft,
assault,
adultery.
Sabbath-breaking
threatened anyone serving a writ without their leave with a
etc.
^20
fine,
gave them power to scrutinize claims for debt, and denied the right of Governor and Council to interfere in anything but the Company's affairs.
The people were warned they must obey or 83
leave the Colony;
those siding with
Governor and Council were threatened with
a
^20
fine.
The paper
declaring the laws, issued in the names of Robertson, Anderson and Wansey, was stuck publicly on a house. Bright saw it there and told the owner it was seditious and illegal it was then taken down. A meeting was held at Cato Perkins's chapel where Cuthbert stirred the audience up to believing that Ludlam had dismissed the Hundredors and Tythingmen. On the 25th a paper was put up proclaiming the new laws in force. Next day Ludlam called the Company's employees and the Nova Scotians he could trust to Thornton Hill, gave them arms, and summoned Robertson and Wansey to come and explain their illegal assumption of authority. When they failed to appear he issued warrants to arrest them, with Zizer and Anderson, for signing the paper. That evening Crank apone, as Marshal, took a small armed party to arrest them at Ezekiel Campbell's (possibly a house on the east side of what was later Gloucester Street, just south of Oxford Street) where they were known to be assembled. As his party went down the hill, some got out of hand and rushed ahead, shouting and threatening. Alarmed, the conspirators came out with sticks and clubs. Though instructed not to fire without orders, Crankapone's men started shooting and using their bayonets; several were wounded on both sides, before they returned up the hill with Robertson, captured after a struggle, and Zizer who surrendered peaceably. Anderson and Wansey escaped, and next day, answering violence with violence, assembled their followers in open rebellion at the bridge (later, Nicol Bridge) on the road to Zizer,
;
Granville
Town.
Only about
of the 300 or so householders followed Anderson; Freetown itself remained peaceful. Some of those who, like Henry Washington, farmed east of the town (p. 63), where the rebels were fifty
home. Many who had opposed government constitutionally declined to take arms to instal Anderson and Wansey as governors. None of Moses Wilkinson's ciders joined. Cuthbert, who had accepted the illegal judgeship and cnflamcd feeling against the Governor, when it came to fighting, went up to Thornton Hill to mediate; so did Cato Perkins, though most of the rebels were gathering, joined them.
Most
stayed at
from his congregation. Ludlam issued a notice calling on them to submit, and got the imprisoned Robertson and Zizer to do the same. He also offered rewards for the leaders. Anderson replied on the 28th with an unsigned S4
letter telling
cliildren
him
to give
up
his prisoners, or turn the
women
and
out of the fort and expect a fight.
Ludlam wanted to avoid battle. He could only rely on Nova Scotians, with fourteen Europeans and about fifty Kru and Bulom labourers. The remainder he could not hope would be more than neutral. Again he sent a message, through Perkins, offering, At
all costs,
about thirty
if
they
would submit,
whole dispute
The
accepted. to
it
no
was not
Nova
settled
Scotians.
was not
Tom sent word that if the
King
within a few days he would
himself. This alarming message
seen
action against them, but refer the
began plundering the country houses belonging
rebels
Europeans and loyal
dispute
to take
to the next passing naval officer. His offer
from
him humiliated made Ludlam
a chief
decide,
on
come and
who had
settle
so recently
the 30th, that he
must
attack.
That day a large two-decked ship was seen in the distance. It neared, anchored, and proved to be the Asia, with the Maroons and their escort of soldiers on board, seemingly a miraculous intervention in the
Company's
favour.
The Maroons were
in
good
health and spirits
delighted at the suggestion they stretch their legs in familiar warlike pursuits.
A
final offer
of peace was made, and,
as the rebels
only tem-
on October the 2nd. A heavy thunderstorm spoilt an elaborate plan which had aimed at encircling them; there was only a small skirmish where two rebels were killed. The remainder fled into the bush where the Maroons spent the next few days tracking them down; some, including Anderson, escaped, but were given up by Bai Farama; Wansey and a few more got away altogether. As the Charter of Justice had not arrived, Ludlam could not yet try them. There were no prisons to hold so many, nor could the Company afford to send them to England for trial, with the added cost of sending
porized, the
Maroons and
soldiers attacked
and maintaining witnesses. So administrative sanctions were sub-
The three officers from the Asia, two "military, one were constituted a Court of hiquiry which found thirty-one prisoners guilty of breaking their engagements to the Company and trying to seize power, and sentenced them to banishment for life. Five were sent to Goree, including Robertson and Cuthbert who, despite his not having taken up arms, was held too dangerous to stay. Most of the rest, including Zizer (though he had not resisted) and Henry Washington (less fortunate in -rebellion than his former master), were stituted for judicial.
naval,
sent to the
Bulom
Shore. «5
few were remanded
In addition, a
for trial at the first Quarter There three were chosen to be warning to others. One indictment was
Sessions to be held under the Charter.
indicted for capital felonies as a
thrown out by the Grand Jury, but Isaac Anderson was found guilty of sending the Governor an anonymous threatening letter, Francis Patrick, long
obnoxious to authority, of stealing
offences in English
On November
the 6th 1800 a naval officer delivered
awaited Charter. indisputably
a gun,
both then capital
law and they were hanged.
It
constituted Sierra
from London, the
Leone
directors
a
Ludlam
the long-
Colony, governed
exercising
the
normally exercised in other Colonies by the Secretary of
powers
State.
The
Hundredors and Tythingmen, whose dehberations the directors had in any case never recognized as legislative, only consultative, disappeared.
The lawcourts
the Charter constituted were not suppHed with an
independent judiciary: Governor and Councillors went on judges in criminal
cases.
But
trial
by jury was
retained
sitting as
—Grand Juries
which under the then English law decided whether those remanded for trial should be tried, and Petty Juries which gave guilty or not guilty. In so small a Colony the jury qualification had to be extended more widely than in England: all freeholders and their sons, householders, and officials were eligible, unless disqualified by age, sickness, or criminal conviction.
Freetown was constituted a corporation, the Mayor and Aldermen with juries, to try civil cases. They were not elected, but chosen by the Governor and Council. The Governor and Council sitting as judges,
heard appeals. Only cases involving over ;£400 could be appealed further to the Privy Council, in England. Cases of less than 405 were heard in a Petty Debt Court where
Nova
Scotians
went on
sitting as
made up eight of the first twelve Commissioners. Thomas Cox, the Company's storekeeper was first Mayor. One of the aldermen, Major Thorne, was an elderly army officer who wanted to farm on the Bulom Shore: when he saw it he changed his mind and went home. The Marshals were replaced by a Sheriff, a European before: they
official
;
Crankaponc was Undcr-Sheriff.
As a final safeguard for authority, fifty European soldiers of the Royal African Corps, formed in 1800 for service at Gorcc, were sent to garrison and rebuild the fort. 86
The Company's published
report for 1801 described the tragic failure
of their hopes, depicting the Nova Scotians as refractory from the first, building up their successive protests to culminate in the climax of rebellion. 'They have made the worst possible subjects/ v^rote Wilberforce to Dundas,
'as
thorough Jacobins
as if
they had been trained and
educated in Paris/
As against that judgement, a Nova Scotian v^rote to Clarkson in 1796, are here use (sic) with Tyranny and Oppression'. Yet the directors and their employees, however determined to enforce their rules, were no tyrants, any more than the Nova Scotians, whatever extremists among them might say, were revolutionaries.
*We
87
IV THE
Maroons, having turned out so unexpectedly
Bulom Shore, but the Nova Scotians to
not sent to the
kept
near enough to
inspire
enough
were
docile,
at Granville
Town,
them with awe,
to prevent strife. Recalling the promises
far
broken in Jamaica,
they refused to sign the Company's terms, but agreed to them readily,
and
settled
down
where
Scotia
of peace already urged on them in Nova and schoolmaster had been employed to tame
to the arts
a chaplain
them.
The
older Maroons, ready to give their children education,
have none themselves:
would
Europe was isolation, they had Parkinson; all had
their conspicuous concession to
made in Jamaica where, notwithstanding their adopted planters' surnames, as Thorpe, Jarrett,
European names. Their children made good pupils. In 1803 John Thorpe, who had learnt to write in Nova Scotia, was for a while assistant schoolmaster; he was then sent, with Maroons, to join the children at Clapham.
Rejecting Christianity, the older
When
the authorities in
Nova
but one wife, they replied that
Maroons
a
few other young
also rejected
Scotia tried to get
God would never
them
monogamy.
to give
be so cruel
as to
up all want
away their dependents. Probably not more than a third arrived with more than one (about a quarter had none), but that was alarming enough to the directors. Granville Sharp .wrote begging them to abandon polygamy. Rather than antagonize them over so them
to turn
cherished a custom the government passed an act invalidating future
marriages not performed by law, but not interfering with existing
arrangements.
The Maroons took
this,
took everything, calmly. They
settled
to build themselves huts (perhaps introducing the verandas they
down had
in
Jamaica: Bowles's picture of Freetown in 1798 shows none). They gave
up shooting off their muskets in the streets, and preserved order as jurymen and constables as in their own jurisdiction in Jamaica. In 1803 they made no protest when two of their number were hanged for murder. 88
Fenda Modu, head of a powerful Mandinka family, living at Wonkafong, where he virtually ruled for the aged king, visited Freetown in
Macaulay impressed him. His son, Dala Modu, a successful came with about fifty followers, to settle in the Colony. The government welcomed them, pleased their influence was extending, as the directors had always wanted. 1794.
trader,
Aggrieved
at the ill-success
the sensitive
Ludlam decided
of to
his labours,
renounce the
chronically constipated, responsibilities
of govern-
ment, though he stayed in Freetown. The directors persuaded Dawes
govern a Colony where his once detested rule was recalled Golden Age. He arrived early in 1801 with his little nephew; a niece and her maid joined them later. Cheered by the Parliamentary grant, the Governor and Council drew up plans for a larger, better paid, establishment, suited to the expanding Colony. A newspaper was started. The Sierra Leone Gazette, printed on the government press at Fort Thornton the first issue was to return to
as a
;
sent to the directors in February 1801.
With troops and Maroons at their disposal the government could avenge King Tom's victory over Ludlam: Bai Farama was told that unless the western boundary was settled at once he must depose him. The Temne had always been
assured the
Colony was
pacific.
Threaten-
ing messages, the arrival of troops, the proposed rebuilding of the fort,
seemed a breach of faith, the prelude to the loss of their country. Encouraged by Wansey and other refugee rebels, they resolved to attack at once.
A
few hundred yards west of the fort lived George Sanders, a disNova Scotian who farmed on King Tom's land by what is still called Sanders Brook, an easy base for a surprise attack. Most of the Nova Scotians lived down the hill to the north, the Maroons to the contented
east at Granville
Town.
morning of November the i8th 1801, Wansey led a of Koya Temne gathered by King Tom and Bai Farama against Fort Thornton. The defenders were unprepared. An officer and two soldiers were killed. Crankapone, roused at the first shots to Early
on
the
large force
go up to defend the
was twice wounded, then, fighting to the last, received a third woiuid and died. Cox was shot dead defending the town where he had been first mayor. About thirty, including women and children were killed, before Dawes, badly wounded in the 821613
fort,
89
^
shoulder, led a charge
which
finally
drove the
Temne
out of the
fort,
back across the brook.
During the next fortnight he prepared a counter-offensive. The Maroons were moved from Granville Town to Freetown. Captain Bullen of H.M.S. IVasp^ cruising along the coast, anchored in the harbour. Smart and other friendly chiefs assembled with their followers.
On December the 2nd a
force from the Colony with two boatloads of from the Wasp, attacked and burnt King Tom's towns; in next few days they drove out all the inhabitants between Freetown
sailors
the
and the Cape, and systematically destroyed their farms. King Tom took refuge in the Northern Rivers, where the Mandinka chiefs, neutral in this war between Europeans and Temne, proposed to mediate. But their envoy, Fatima Fodi, instead of negotiating, urged
King Tom to go on fighting. Meanwhile more troops were sent to Freetown from Goree. Captain Bullen, too, busied himself there for another four months, went to Robaga to see Bai Farama, attended meetings at Fort Thornton where the remaining Temne chiefs promised peace, until April the ist, 1802 when he sailed away, 'having succeeded,' he wrote to the Admiralty, *in making peace between the Colony and the Natives.'
At dawn on Sunday with their
Thornton
new
ally
the
nth King Tom, Wansey and their followers,
Fatima Fodi and about forty Susu attacked Fort
again, this time
from
the east, but
less successfully.
Within
twenty minutes they were driven off, their flag was captured, and they were pursued dov^m the Granville Town road and out of the Colony. King Tom and Wansey fled north again. A few months later Dawes sent Bright up to the rivers where, aided by Dala Modu and by Miss Betsy Heard, the stout, amiable lady who ruled Bereira, he persuaded the Mandinka and Susu chiefs to give no further countenance to the
They gave up Wansey and two other rebels. But King Tom Bulom war chief living in the Northern Rivers, and they encamped together on the Bulom Shore. Between the two assaults Benjamin Elliott, a Granville Sharp
war.
joined Mori Kanu, a powerful
beyond Granville Town was found murdered on the it was believed, of an escaped rebel repaying his loyalty to the government. Warned of the perils of straying beyond the town, apprehensive of furtlier attack, the people abandoned their farms. Food grew scarce. Little rice could be bought locally; the continuing Caulker-Cleveland war cut off the Sherbro supply. After the first attack, the Governor and Council passed an act to make everyone
settler,
who
lived
road, the victim,
90
day on the defences. Unable to trade or farming, they were glad to make a living by defending themselves. The palisade round the fort was strengthened. Rough walls, three foot of rubble surmounted by a three-foot fence, were built round the town, with wooden blockhouses at intervals. One wall ran east from Fort Thornton along the line of the present
work two days earn money by
a
week,
at forty cents a
Garrison Street to Susan's Bay; the other ran north-west, cutting across
Walpole Street, including the watering-place point west of it (taken from King Tom), but excluding Dala
the top of the present
and the
Modu's settlement wliich
lay just beyond.
These poor defences offered
little
security against the concerted
from the Bulom Shore. The ill-housed garrison was steadily reduced by disease and drink, despite acts passed forbidding anyone to sell soldiers spirits. By the end of 1802, forty of eighty-four were dead, most of the rest enfeebled invalids, scarcely fit to fight. The Corps could only be brought up to strength by letting convicts from
attack expected
the English hulks enlist. Earlier in the year the Treaty
of Amiens was signed, suspending
temporarily the war with France.
Dawes was warned that the French Gambia Island, empty since
were thinking of sending
Renaud
left,
among
a
garrison back to
the Colony's
Temne
the garrison and formally annexed
it,
enemies.
renaming
it
An officer went from George
Island.
Dawes and Ludlam were sickened with responsibilities they felt unrewarded; Gray went off to the slave trade. It was rumoured the Colony would be abandoned altogether. In January 1803 Commodore Benjamin Hallowell put in, a hard-headed Canadian, unimpressed by the government,
suspecting
principles hypocrisy.
their
incompetence,
anxieties
But he agreed
their
high
to their urgent plea to station a
naval ship in the harbour to protect them.
A
few weeks
after
he
left,
Navy came
the
Captain William Day, a half-pay naval sent out as
Governor, who,
as if to
officer,
make
light
to the rescue again in
born
in the
West
Indies,
of danger, arrived, with
wife and child. Fired with the impatient enthusiasm gout sometimes causes he at once
expect
much from
began making the Colony defensible. Unable to the moribund European garrison he enlisted Nova
Corps of Volunteers. Like Macaulay he made some of them officers drilled and exercised, they were soon an efficient force. Fort Thornton was rebuilt, the wooden fence replaced by Scotians
and Maroons
in a :
91
ramparts of local granite blocks, hauled into position with fibre 'country rope', and mortared with lime burnt from oyster the shore. (In 195 1, they
were underpinned with concrete
shells
from
to support the
of the new Government House.) The cannon, mostly were remounted, and a battery built at Falconbridge Point, with a Dutch artillery officer sent out by the Company in charge. Another Dutch employee. Sergeant Vanneck, supervised the steel structure
unserviceable,
building.
With
Colony transformed into an active garrison, Day could King Tom and his allies. The King of Kafu Bulom (on the Bulom Shore) had just died; he discovered that, by custom of the country, the Colony's owning land there gave him the right to nominate a successor. He chose Jack Wilson of Yongru, who had spent a year in England at the Company's expense (p. 54). Crowned with the title King George Bana, he and Dala Modu's family turned Mori Kanu off the Bulom Shore. Bereft of his ally, King Tom returned to his the
deal firmly with
original
Few
home
east
of the Colony.
honest, capable Europeans
were ready
go out
to
small salaries the directors offered. Before the
to labour, for the
Temne Wars, when
local
produce was
plentiful, it was reckoned that those ready to eat rice of bread could live as cheaply as in England: when food became scarce many had to pay away most of their salary to subsist. A clerk earning ;£ioo a year in 1803 had to spend over ^90 on board and
instead
lodging alone.
them
Ill-paid,
overworked, by
a
to imagine their routine a vocation,
government which expected
many
revolted.
The minutes
of the Governor's Council are full of protracted, bickering, correspondence with employees, terminated as a rule by their resigning or being dismissed.
Those allowed to trade privately laid the foundation of a new career, away from the nagging, unrewarded round in Freetown, in easy independence in the neighbouring rivers, buying and selling the only commodity which yielded an unfailing profit, slaves. Hallowell drew up a list of a dozen of the Company's former employees who had gone into the slave trade. in
produce
in
moved away there,
a
Macaulay
It
who having traded a wliile own wharf and stores, de Los, and James Wilson who joined him young Presbyterian who came out with
included Gray, Carr,
Freetown, where he built to the Isles
high-principled in 1796.
92
his
The Company could no longer hope for trading profits. Their agents left them or made unrecoverable debts. The Freeport factory failed after Cooper died: his successor squandered money on large stone buildings, then turned slave trader, as did his successor. The directors, once confident they were providing in the produce trade, an instrument to beat the slave-trader, had to admit they had no hope of profit so long as the slave-trade
remunerated
easy a source of income.
their rivals so richly
By December
property, including land and buildings lected debts, barely
kept
it
came
to -^30,000.
and gave
chiefs so
Company's entire and nearly ^12,000 in uncolOnly the Parliamentary grant 1803 the
going.
Yet if the Company had failed, and shareholders' subscriptions proved pure philanthropy, the directors would not wind it up like an ordinary commercial venture. Unwilling to abandon their mission, Thornton determined in 1803 to try and get the Government to take it on. But Hallo well's report so alarmed the Chancellor of the Exchequer
from seeking new responsibility, he insisted a Parliamentary Committee investigate whether any more money be voted the Company at all. Macaulay and Day answered Hallowell's criticisms as best they could, and the Committee (Thornton a member) recommended the Colony be transferred to the Crown, stressing that if it were given up the government would have the expense of moving and resettling the Nova Scotians and Maroons. Pitt moved, and Parliament, after some
that, far
and 1804, with an extra ^4,000 for fortifications, but his government, busy fighting Napoleon, unwilling to annoy the slave-trading interest, ignored the Committee's recommendation, and left the Company to continue precariously on its own.
objections, voted, the grants for 1803
Day returned to England at the end of 1803 and gave
the Parliamentary
Committee a glowing account of what his enthusiasm had effected. Back in Freetown in January 1805, liis gouty, dictatorial energy again roused the stagnating Colony to complete the defences by building a tower above Fort Thornton to command the town. Martcllo towers, a military innovation, were being built all along the English coast against French invasion. He got the latest model from the Board of Ordnance, and on April the nth 1805 led a solemn procession up Wansey Hill, renamed Tower Hill, to lay the foundation stone. He and his wife then entertained the officers and ladies to a cold collation, while the soldiers and workmen feasted in the market place. 93
No years
with
from the tower. Within twenty and was partly demohshed. The base still stands
shot was ever fired in anger it
a
was
a ruin
water tank inside
it.
Having secured the Colony strategically, Day determined to revive agriculture, and laid out a large sugar plantation cast of the town whence the Temne Pa Maquoit had been driven. Known at least since the early eighteenth century as Foro or Fora Bay (and its point as Foro or Farran Point), it came to be written Fourah Bay (and will be so spelt in this book).
Agonizing pains in the bowels distracted
November Colony
the 4th he
commended
Day from
and expired, the first Governor the cemetery east of Fort Thornton.
to Ludlam's,
and be buried
in
his plans.
On
his children to his wife's care, the
to die in office
The London Missionary Society sent no more agents to the Fula and Susu. The existing Anglican societies, the Society for the Propagation Promoting Christian Knowledge, sponsored primarily chaplaincies to the converted. So in 1799 a group of evangelical Churchmen, lay and clerical, with whom Wilberforce, Thornton, Macaulay and other 'Clapham-ites' associated themselves, founded the Church Missionary Society (to give it the name adopted in 1 81 3), to sponsor missions to the unconverted. Sierra Leone provided a starting-point for their labours warned by experience, they determined to send out only those who had been trained. No Englishman could be found. But for some years English evangelicals had been in touch with a Lutheran Society which trained missionaries at a seminary in Berlin. Two candidates, Mclchior Renncr and Peter Hartwig, were chosen, brought to England to learn English and Susu (from Brunton's grammar), and sent back to be ordained Lutheran pastors. Hartwig married an English wife, and early in 1804
of the Gospel, and the Society
for
:
they went out to Freetown. It
was from the
home
start a rule
of the
C.M.s. that every missionary send
Committee
(and, indirectly,
were discouraging. Instructed
to stay a year in
regular journals to cdif)^ the Parent
the historian).
Freetown
The
first
to acclimatize themselves before going to convert the Susu,
the missionaries stayed two.
They
all fell ill;
Mrs. Hartwig,
who had
opened a school, had to go home. The two men quarrelled so violently that crowds used to collect outside their house to listen. Hartwig, who had only become
a
missionary to avoid having to serve 94
m the Prussian
army, went off visiting the Susu country, where eventually he stayed, not to convert the people, but to buy and sell them, as the employee of Mrs. Williams, an English slave-trader
at Bereira,
twenty years in
Africa.
Undismayed, the C.M.S. sent out three more Germans in 1806, the Revs. Leopold Butscher, Gustavus Nylander and Johann Prasse. Nylander stayed in Freetown as chaplain the others went with Renner to the Rio Pongas where they settled down to convert the Susu. :
Without Day
keep order the
to
turned against one another. Military garrison,
their
duties
trifling
energies, often exercise
them
group of European
little
officials
officers in a peaceful tropical
occupy self-important
to
insufficient
in harrassing, even trying to supplant,
commanding the Ludlam, armed with a
the civil government. Early in 1806 the lieutenant
troops sought to usurp the acting-governorship.
Secretary of State's instruction subordinating military to civil power, was able with the help of two naval captains to pack his rival off under
army headquarters
arrest to
at
Goree.
Day's optimism, which ignored what not induce farmers to return to their
it
preferred not to
lots.
Many of
banished in 1800. Vainly the directors renounced rents in the
hope of getting them back
Freetown, earning
money
Corps, which, despite the
Colony had
parties until
it
could
were
claim to quit-
They
ships
name, was paid. Farms reverted to bush; on imported food. When it ran short, famine arrived with provisions there were feasts and
threatened again.
Ludlam, eight years
in Sierra
Leone
— 'no
place in the world' he
wrote, 'could be better suited to check an excess of ardour'
easy-going than prayers.
He
preferred
building fortifications, or in the Volunteer
its
to rely
When
threatened.
all
to the land.
see,
the best
Day who had
—was more
the missionaries in daily' for family
gave dances in the barracks, picnics in the woods, diversions
scarcely consonant
with the
directors' principles,
though gratifying to
the Colony's enemies.
As the
assaults
on
the slave trade increased,
its
defenders
anxiously aggressive. Mrs. Falconbridge's book, with
Thornton, was re-issued
in
improbabihty of the slave Francis
Spilsbury,
1
802 with a
new
its
grew more
onslaught on
title-page proclaiming the
trade's being abolished.
surgeon to H.M.S. Favourite (whose brother
George became surgeon
to the
Colony 95
in
1
809) described in a published
account of his voyages the
and
sickly, half-starved
improper junketings,
their
as
population of the Colony,
he saw them in 1805 and 1806.
Joseph Corry, an employee of Messrs. Anderson of Bance Island and an apologist for the slave-trade, visited the Coast in 1805 and pubhshed a
book on Island).
it
(with charming coloured plates of Freetown and Bance
He eagerly denounced the Colony's feeble, hypocritical govern-
ment which countenanced immorality and did nothing
to
encourage
industry.
were brought against Dala Modu, long suspected of Company's protection. He appeared to answer them not in his usual European clothes but defiantly in a Muslim gown. Ludlam turned him out of the Colony so he took his people over to Lungi on the Bulom Shore. Cleveland, driven from the Bananas, went on fighting the Caulkers. The Shcrbro chiefs were drawn into the war. European slave-traders supplied arms, and reaped a rich harvest of slaves captured from devastated villages all over the country. Dawes went vainly to mediate in 1803. Ludlam tried again in 1805 and finally succeeded, with Kizzell's help, in making a truce, the Sherbro people agreeing that the ancient British right to York Island (where traces of the ruined fort were still visible) gave the Governor a claim to interfere, even to crown their kmg. In 1806 charges
slave-trading under the
War also
raged in the Gallinas where. a succession dispute turned into
between the coastal people, who monopolized trade with Europeans, and the inland, resentful of their monopoly (a constant source of war throughout West Africa) As in the Sherbro European slave-traders supplied arms and bought prisoners. King Tom and the Koya Temne remained peaceful; in July 1807 a final settlement was negotiated with- them at Robis (between the present Wellington and Hastings). The treaty confirmed the Colony's conquest of the land west of Freetown. The Temne also gave up their enclaves to the east, Pa Maquoit's and Signior Domingo's towns, and were allowed only three villages near the eastern boundary. In return Signior Domingo (who died a few months later) was promised compensation, and Bai Farama the watering dues (collected henceforth by government) and an annual present as landlord. Thus the Colony's original right to the peninsula, cession, was a struggle
superseded by conquest.
The Temne, 96
threatened inland by
Susu
Gumbu Smart and his from the sea. In March 1792, soon after Loko, were now driven back Clarkson landed, a Temne woman had come up to him and pointing her foot at a cannon lying amid the confusion on the beach, cried out that he had come to take away her country. He replied that they came only as friends, without any such intention. Yet within fifteen years he had been proved wrong and the woman's prophecy was fulfilled. encroachment, and by the growing power of
Early in 1806 Pitt died.
The succeeding
the 25th 1807 passed an
'Foxite' government on March Act forbidding British subjects to trade in
of May. Severe penalties were empowered to bring illegally
and
slaves after the ist
enacted, and naval
customs
transported slaves for
officers
adjudication before a Vice-Admiralty Court.
Meanwhile Thornton was still pressing the British government to Colony already virtually supported from public funds. By 1806 the Company had received ^6j,ooo from the Treasury. The fortifications cost about ^20,000, the Volunteer Corps about ^3,000 a year. As basing currency on non-existent goods in the Company's store had roused so much resentment, the directors allowed the Governor to make payments in bills drawn on them. Thus they were constantly faced with demands for sums they knew nothing of, but dared not repudiate lest they lose their credit. The government grant for 1806 was swallowed up at once repaying uncontrolled expenditure. Early in 1807 a transfer bill was introduced into Parliament. It was amended and delayed: its opponents declared that far from taking on the Colony, government should make the Company repay the grants. Not until the end of July did it pass the House of Commons. On August the 8th it became law. Under it the Colony was transferred to the Crown and the Company wound up, government taking over all but its purely commercial property. The directors' authority passed to the Secretary of State. The formal transfer took place in Freetown on January the ist 1808. Ludlam handed over the Company's Charter to the senior naval officer on the Coast, the Company's flag was hauled down and the Union Jack hoisted. The transfer made httle immediate difference to the inhabitants. Thornton arranged for them to be spared military rule and retain trial by jury. The Charter superseding the Company's continued most of its provisions. Ludlam remained in office until liis successor arrived; take over altogether a
97
.
Company's employees were allowed to stay on in government service if they chose. Slave-dealing was specifically prohibited within the
the Colony, and, at Macaulay's suggestion, Freetown designated the
of
seat
a
Vice-Admiralty Court where recaptured slaves could be
adjudicated.
In
1
The surrounding country, was almost empty only at Cape
808 barely 2,000 people lived in Freetown.
denuded of its Temne inhabitants, Sierra Leone was there a village of grumettas from Bance Island who piloted ships up the river. After the Maroons moved to Freetown, Granville Town was abandoned to the evil spirits who were said to have haunted it (p. 30). Thornton's name was perpetuated by the fort, Wilberforce's by a street, but Granville Sharp's vanished. The survivors of his Province of Freedom, the Old Settlers, as they were called, gradually merged with the rest. Only ten were listed as heads of families in 1802. At least one was killed fighting the Temne; some, like Dcmane stayed up country (p. 23). Elliott Griffith, arrested for debt to the Company, died in the gaol at Fort Thornton in 1802. James Reid, once Governor, became the Company's gaoler and commissary. After his death (by 18 14) his widow handed over to government the original grant of land and two letters from Sharp which he had preserved (they do not survive in the Sierra Leone Archives). He :
owned
three
good houses
in Freetown, one, in
Water
Street,
valued
widow
sold to John Stevenson, also an Old Maroon. Studdard, the former Chief Justice was dead without issue by 181 3. Only two other Old Settlers then owned houses, William Bond, and George Clark who helped Dawes beat off the Temne attack in 1801 and succeeded Reid as gaoler. His house was inherited by his son Samuel
at
;^2io. Another, his
Settler,
who
who
sold
it
bequeathed
to a
John Lemon,
Nova
it
to a
Scotian in 1830.
a Bengali hairdresser,
one of the headmen of the
*Black Poor' in London, was imprisoned for slave-dealing, escaped,
joined the French in 1794, and helped them plunder Freetown. He was back in the Colony in 1808 with his wife Elizabeth, one of the original
who had sailed with him in the Vernon. Ordered out of the Colony for having helped the French, he seems to have returned later. She stayed in Freetown after his death as a shopkeeper, and died about 1820. Another prostitute wife, Hannah Blewer, went home ill
prostitute wives,
in 1798.
98
— when
Maroons were brought in to defend Freetown most were given town lots to the west; after the Temne were driven out, King Tom's peninsula and the grassfields south of it were allotted them as the
farmlands. Those given land
among
Nova Scotians moved west distinct Maroon Towoi. Though the
their own people to form a was occasional intermarriage and some Maroons went to the Nova Scotian churches, they tended to remain hostile communities divided by the memory of their first encounter. Collectively they were called 'Settlers', a name sometimes used for
among there
the
Nova
to
mean both
the streets in 1808 illustrate the division.
The Nova
Scotians alone, but used henceforth in this
book
groups and their descendants.
The names given
Row
Scotian streets began with East
(the
former Brothers
Street, or
Then followed three called after generals they had served in the American war Tarleton, Rawdon and Howe. Tarleton was changed within a year or two to Wilberforce 'Discontented Row') and East Street.
—
Street (perhaps because General Tarleton
championed the
slave trade in
Rawdon was for a while Rodney Street. Then came three streets called after members of the royal family Queen Charlotte, the Duke of Gloucester (who took an interest in
Parliament).
and George III. George Street was the beginning of the Maroons' town. Trelawney Street, west of it, commemorated their Jamaican home, Walpole Street their betrayed champion. The point beyond the watering-place within the town walls was called Westmoreland, another Jamaican name ^Westmoreland parish Africa)
—
when the government took over the name Westmoreland was transferred to the three streets running east and west, known in
adjoined Trelawney. In 18 14, point for building, the
southernmost of the 1808 it
as
Church
Street, as the dilapidated
church stood there. North of
ran Davies Street, probably called after a friend of the Governor's
and changed
after his departure to
forty years or so did
Water
it
Street, twice as
Cross Street
get the
name Oxford
wide
the others,
as
(p. 108)
Street.
;
not for another
North of it was
rmming along
the cliff
above the harbour.
The Maroons were Scotians.
as disinclined to
Those described
for 'husbandry',
officially as
merely grew
from which they made
their
farm
'yeomen',
own
fufu, their staple
99
as the
discouraged
who
Nova
took apprentices
vegetables, cliiefly cassava,
food
in Jamaica, as in Ashanti,
unknown
to the rice-eating
Temne and Bulom.
Smith, given land (which became 'Smith's
Hill')
Captain
among
Andrew Nova
the
Scotian allotments, farmed on a rather larger scale, but most Maroons became labourers or artisans like the Nova Scotians. Those who prospered copied them in building houses to live in or let, usually a wooden frame on a stone cellar, with shingled roof; the poorer thatched, and increased the danger of fires, which constantly broke out. Within a dozen years of landing Captain Herbert Newton Jar rett, who worked as a mason, owned two framed houses, his son another; Charles Shaw, another captain, had a house in Trelawney Street valued at ;£i8o. Such leading Maroons served as Commissioners of Requests in the Petty Court with the Nova Scotians, and sat on juries. Several of the boys from Clapham returned to official posts. John Macaulay Wilson, son of King George of Kafu Bulom, became apothecary, James Wise, a Nova Scotian, government printer. He
printed The Sierra Leone Gazette^ part
official gazette,
part newspaper,
few numbers of the first issue, was revived in January 1808. Others became clerks: Ludlam preferred them to disgruntled Europeans. David Edmonds, junior, whose father, one of the original Nova Scotian captains, was conspicuously loyal to the
which, having languished
Company
after a
during the rebellion, returned
as
a skilled boat-builder.
few years he had several ship's carpenters with him building small craft on the shore by the mouth of Sanders Brook. But, save for Macaulay Wilson, most of the Clapham boys from up country left the Colony within a year or two. After Dala Modu's departure no single group from the neighbourhood was domiciled in Freetown. But labourers came to work; children were employed as servants in Europeans' or Settlers' households, often adopting their names (to the confusion of the genealogist). A few
Within
a
had country women living with them. A Caulker married a Nova Scotian. Macaulay Wilson married Captain Shaw's daughter Mary and settled down with her in Freetown. Spilsbury has a story of a Nova Scotian woman marrying a nearby chief, then being driven Settlers
away by
his other wives.
By the beginning of the century at least twenty Settlers were permanently domiciled up country, trading in slaves: after the Temne wars particularly, many lost their scruples about buying and selling people who had attacked them. Hector Peters, for instance, born free in
who had played the French horn in a mihtary band during American war, left the Colony in the 1790s to trade in slaves up the
Charleston, the
100
Rokel. Sometimes he even sold them (the process was called *ransoming') in Freetown.
When
the slave trade
became
general
illegal a
amnesty was given to all, slave-traders or banished rebels, who chose to come back to the Colony. Peters returned, and when David George died in 1810, took over the Baptist congregation and was pastor. Zizer
European
many
years
and others returned from the Bulom Shore. slave-traders too, including several renegades
from the
Freetown. They and those of the
Company's service, came Company's employees who stayed on to settle in
as traders, bought up good sites, and imported trade goods from Europe. The agency system the slave-trade was based on persisted (p. 8): European merchants sent agents, often Settlers, up the rivers for rice to sell in the Colony, or for ivory and camwood to export. Thus the Settlers,
built houses
without
or connexions with Europe, were confined to trading as
capital,
agents, or to petty retailing
:
when government tendered for rice in
for example, four Europeans, but
no
Settler
Maroon women worked hard
In Jamaica the
1 8 1 1,
put in for the contract.
in the fields, freeing
of Scotland and other mountain communities) for the more leisurely and congenial arts of war. There was a tradition of a Maroon woman, Nanny, fighting in the early wars, but they had long ceased to be Amazons. In Sierra Leone their their
husbands
(as in
the Highlands
customs tended to keep them subordinate.
widow had
to give
up
his estate to the
dozen years in Freetown
less
When
a
Maroon
died his
head of the family. So
than a dozen
after a
Maroon women owned
house-property the only owner of a large house had been a European :
official's mistress.
The Nova sexes
Scotian
worked, were
women, bred on
less
the plantations,
dependent on their menfolk.
where both
Some had
escaped
from slavery on their own. When they left Halifax, unattached women cliildrcn were registered as heads of families (while the Maroon women were all assigned to husbands). Mary Perth, for instance, converted while still a slave in Norfolk, Virginia, had gathered her own congregation there; she escaped during the war to the British lines, and ultimately Nova Scotia, with three children from her master's plantation. In Sierra Leone she managed Macaulay's household, looked after the cliildrcn sent to school in the Colony, and opened a shop. Witli her profits she built a good house in Water Street. Her religious fervour was described in an English missionary magazine. When her with
lOI
fell ill she took her to England, first sending Henry Thornton ;£i50 for him to invest in the funds for her. After her return, towards the end of her life, she re-married: in her active years she did
only daughter
very well without a husband.
When
Company
allowed
open shops
of were women Mary Perth, Sophia Small, and Martha Hazelcy. Within two years Mrs. Small had built a two-storied house, the only one in the town, for about ^^150 and was letting it to the missionaries. She kept one of the two taverns opened in 1795: the
Settlers to
Spilsbury supped there enjoyably ten years petition
was
fierce.
in 1794 three
—
the first six retailers
By
181 1 only eight
later.
But here male comnineteen men, held
women, but
spirit licences.
Women
preached and testified in the Nova Scotian churches as the moved them Amilia Buxton had her own congregation in her house in Water Street. Abraham Moore's widow went off to the north to trade. A list of heads of Nova Scotian famihes drawn up in 1802 gives one name in three a woman's. Until 1797, when women were Spirit
:
excluded, they could vote, and stand as Hundredors and Tythingmen.
of women gave evidence in a case in 1809 to determine whether or not a girl had ever had a child. They made full use of the courts for one man, four women were said to bring actions in the Petty Courts. No wonder if amid so
Though not summoned
as regular jurors, a special jury
:
much female litigation a Scolds Act was passed condemning women convicted of defaming their neighbours to a public ducking in the harbour.
(a
Dawes took Phillis, the daughter of Martha and Abraham Hazcley Nova Scotian farmer, born in Charleston, who served as Church
Beadle, and
on
the Petty Court) to school in England.
On
her return
she opened a school, teaching reading at three cents a week, with
and arithmetic ten cents. Mrs. Elizabeth Robinson had a rival school, but for reading and needlework only. Girls were said to forget what they had learnt as soon as they left, testimony confirmed in the land registers where of sixty-two women who bought or sold land between 1825 and 1850 all but eight witnessed their naines with a mark. The marriage registers too are full of women's
needlework an extra
five cents, writing
marks.
Nova ing, in
1
Scotian 81
3,
five
women owned of the sixteen
several
lots
Mrs Hume, who owned two,
of the best properties, includ-
on the harbour had a house
also
side
of Water
Opposite, on the corner of Wilberforce Street, stood
house belonging to Martha Burden, her 102
own
Street:
in Charlotte Street. a large
frame
property, which passed
at
Women
her death not to her husband but to her daughter's family.
drew the first three of the country allotments. Lot number three (where Magazine Street now runs) remained in the family of the original owner, Lettice Demps, until the 1850s when her grandson, the Rev. Scipio Wright, sold
it
off in small building
lots.
Sophia Small also put her retailing profits into land.
Maroons were
settled at Granville
Town
she gave
When
the
up property she had
acquired there and was given in return Gray's farm, forfeited by his
having entered the slave trade. In Freetown she built a large house in Charlotte Street valued at ;^900, with outbuildings and cowsheds stretching over three lots;
it
stood there until burnt in a
fire in 1881.
So Jane, her daughter by a European, was an heiress, a great catch for George Nicol, a European carpenter, employed by the Company, who married her. Backed by her capital he went into business himself, extended the country property westwards
till it
reached the stream
Nicol Brook, and built two houses in Water Street;
called
and brick-built house above, and just
east of, the
liis
still
stone
Government Wharf,
cost ^3,500.
German missionaries followed Nicol's example. Renner married his Nova Scotian housekeeper, Elizabeth Richards, who went with him to the
Rio Pongas, taught in the school and was an ornament to the Nylander married Phillis Hazeley. She died after a few months
mission.
and he subsequently married her successor
as
schoolmistress,
Beverout, one of the Methodist preacher's family. Her
sister
Ann
Frances,
Bance Island, married the Rev. Charles Wenzel whose European wife had died in childbirth at the Rio Pongas. Most Europeans dispensed with the formality of marriage: when the
once
Tilly's mistress at
Nova Scotian widow ladies gave them an annual banquet, marriages were not what was arranged there. Macaulay found even his own brother Alexander, a ship 's~cap tain in the
Nova
Scotian
girl.
Nylander wrote since
am
I
in
18 12,
^children
in the Colony.'
their cliildren to
beg
Company's
service,
kept
a
*There are about twenty Mulatto children here,'
He
some fathers went away leaving But it became the practice for fathers
said
in the streets.
to leave house-property to the
of respectable gentlemen, born
mother, or in
trust, for the children's
benefit.
So
if
Freetown was held depraved (Captain Chamier
at this period,
described
poste rcstante) the Settlers
yoiuig
officials,
it
years later in
liis
who
visited
it
Life of a Sailor as the devil's
cannot be wholly blamed. The half-educated
disreputable soldiers, passing sailors, and retired slave103
traders,
who formed
the European population encouraged rather than
Few
checked immoraUty. used also
attended Nylander's services.
as a military hospital,
officiate in his
own
In contrast, the
gradually
fell
The church,
to pieces so
he had to
house.
Nova
Scotian churches were
full.
The Hunting-
donians had theirs in Wilberforce Street, on the corner of Church
moved
Street; later they
widow of
them by Mary Ash, leader, drowned in 1801. The Baptist Church of Rawdon Street, where lower down, on the
their early
to the adjoining site left
was on the west side east corner of Cross Street, the Methodists
many
with
their
away
in 1809 to
preachers, cohered less than the others:
form
a
ingly infirm, could do
new
They,
some broke
congregation. Moses Wilkinson, increas-
little
more than preach
Joseph Brown, a leading preacher,
England for
built theirs in 1798.
his health, in 1796,
whom
the
horrific
sermons.
Company had
sent to
wrote to the Wesleyan Conference in
1806 asking them for a missionary.
The Company
relieved the poor, pensioned old employees,
supported the families of those killed in the
Temne wars under :
and the
new government the destitute were left to private charity. The Maroons usually supported their own dependants, but many old Nova Scotians were uncared for; Moses Wilkinson was left destitute in old age. In 1 8 10 a Poor Society was founded, on the model of similar charities in England, supported by private contributions; of -£52 subscribed during the first year the Governor gave ^^30, other Europeans ;£io, the Nova Scotians /jio, the Maroons ^2. Despite their attachment to the forms of English law and love of the courts which guaranteed their rights. Settlers occasionally reverted to summary procedures that had survived two Atlantic crossings. A Nova Scotian woman was prosecuted for cruelly beating her servant girl, three Maroons for similar cruelty to their niece. Both girls had run after strange men and incurred a traditional penalty unsanctioned by English law.
were also prosecuted for bringing in witch doctors to by ordeal though some rejected firmly a practice which was the mainstay of the slave trade. A law passed in 1808 forbade the use of witchcraft to intimidate. Thus by 1 808 when the Granville Town Settlers had been twenty-one years in Sierra Leone, the Nova Scotians sixteen, the Maroons eight, they formed together a distinctive community of their own, neither wholly European nor wholly African. Several Settlers
try suspects
—
104
V THE
directors
of the dying Company were unwilling to abandon
their mission to the
Colony
altogether.
Warned
off financial
founded in 1807 the African Institution, to stimulate trade with Africa without itself trading, to promote African education and improved farming methods, and to be a watch-dog against the slave trade. An influential board, headed by the Duke of speculation, they
Gloucester, sponsored
He and Thornton responsibility, did
of
State
and
it.
Macaulay was honorary
forsaw
that the transfer, if
secretary. it
relieved
them of
not necessarily deprive them of power. The Secretary Under-Secretary, knowing and caring
his
who
little
about
Macaulay was asked to recruit officials; he wrote memoranda of advice. He was even appointed agent to administer the Colony's fmances, until the Secretary of State found the post came under the Treasury and must go to a Treasury Sierra Leone, turned readily to those
Clerk. His salaried post under the
bought
and
a ship
did.
Company
having come to an end, he
with Sierra Leone, first on his own, nephew, as Macaulay and Babington.
started trading
then, in partnership
with
his
Wilberforce, on intimate terms with the great, was always ready to
send urgent
little
mended
first
the
notes of advice or recommendation. royal Governor,
He recom-
Thomas Pcrronet Thompson. He
procured Dawes and Ludlam well-paid temporary employment on
Commission third
to investigate the British
possessions; the
Commissioner, Captain E. H. Columbine, of the Navy, was a
governor of the African still
West African
a
Institution.
Thus 'Clapham-ite'
influence
was
exercised in Sierra Leone.
807 a ship's-captain from Rhode Island, anchored in Fourah Bay, kidnapped some boys from Robana, then sailed up to
In
November
1
Freetown. The
Tcmne
chiefs
complained to Ludlam
Maroon
who
sent
a
on board. They freed the party of Volunteers under a boys and arrested the captain. Threatened with being handed over to the Tenme, he agreed to stand trial in the Colony, and was fined /^500821613
105
officer
H
— who were indentured as of the Company's employees who paid $ioo each for them. Part went towards the fine, part to the chiefs to prevent their being revenged on the next American ship. Four months later Commander Frederick Parker of the Derwent, a supporter of the former Company, the first of the long succession of His cargo, distrained to pay, included ten slaves, servants to three
who fought
two ships, believed American, taken at sea with 167 slaves on board. Under the Act of 1807, captured slaves condemned in a Vice-Admiralty Court were forfeited to the Crown, and were to be enlisted in the forces or apprenticed, the captors receiving a bounty for each. Ludlam had no power to constitute
naval officers
a court,
the slave trade, brought in
nor fund to pay bounties from, nor instructions
or apprentice. So, without attempting to
condemn
how
to enlist
the slaves legally, he
followed the previous precedent and apprenticed them.
To
of so many he had to reduce what the master paid to $20; government took some at the same price for a Corps of Labourers. Parker was paid dispose
the proceeds.
Governor Thompson, banker in Hull
(a
who
arrived in July,
was the son of a rich of a close
friend of Wilberforce's), the grandson
of Wesley's. From Cambridge he had joined the Navy and, as midshipman, was elected a fellow of his college (Queens'). But instead of returning to reside he went into the Army, took part in an attack on Buenos Aires, then, at twenty-five, accepted the governorship of Sierra Leone. associate
a
Though Wilberforce's nominee, he saw no reason to share liis views. Even before leaving England he was finding fault with the Company's rule in Sierra Leone he saw everywhere evidence of their easy-going inefficiency, culminating in what he declared the public sale of 167 slaves. For though Ludlam held them apprentices, they were sold. Masters do not normally buy apprentices; no indentures were drawn up. Thompson could maintain them as surely sold as if the masters had bought them from a slave-ship. His mounting indignation overflowed in a series of despatches to the Secretary of State, denouncing with savage fury the Company, and those of its employees who remained in Freetown winding up its affairs or in government service, for hypocritically pretending to seek :
the abolition of the slave trade while they bought and sold slaves in
Freetown Little
itself
escaped
liis
censure.
Had
the
Company's
store sold clothes
they had deliberately encouraged the Settlers to dress luxuriously. J
06
Did the Company's servants tell him Bai Farama was entitled to they were seeking to degrade the Crown by making it pay
customs
—
tribute to a chief.
Did
a
Nova
Scotian girl give birth to a light-skinned
—
baby wliich disappeared one of the Company's servants was to blame, and Ludlam had comiived at its murder. Determined to enforce discipline in a Colony he felt demoralized, he disbanded the Volunteer Corps with its smart blue and scarlet uniform, its drummer boys in turbans and feathers, its handsome rates of pay for sleeping on guard. A new militia was constituted under an Ordinance allowing courts-martial to give sentences of up to two years imprisonment in irons. The Nova Scotians sent delegates to protest. Thompson threatened to charge them with high treason, and reduced their officers to the ranks.
He
hated the
Nova Scotians as he hated the Company, and suggested The Maroons he liked better, as less infected by
they be deported.
democratic insolence. Best he liked the liberated
slaves,
whom
he
hoped to turn into 'a free and hardy peasantry'. During November 1 808 Parker brought in another seventy-eight to be condemned in the Vice-Admiralty Court, officially constituted with Thompson acting-judge; another 230 were condemned during 1809. The Governor was instructed to register the condemned and send an annual return to London. Many registers survive in the Sierra Leone archives, showing name, age, sex, and sometimes a rough physical description including tattoo marks, with a note of how each was disposed of. Some were carelessly made out: often the disposal column is
empty.
Those for 1808-9 show that Thompson was still obliged under the Act of 1 807 to go on apprenticing (though he had proudly declared he would resign rather than do so), chiefly to Europeans and Maroons. Some of the children were sent to school. But one group from the Bambara and Jolof countries he sent to farm on the slopes of Leicester Mountain, the peak rising abruptly behind Freetown (which Ludlam,
who had
a house there, may have named after his home, Leicester) beyond reach of Nova Scotian contamination. He also laid the first stone of Kingston-in-Africa (after his own home, Kingston-on-HuU) in the mountains about five miles inland by the Hogbrook.
To stamp
out in
name
as in
deed the seditious
polluted the Colony, he abolished the
cents,
he declared
as inclining the
and substituted 'Georgetown'. Dollars smacking of American republicanism, were replaced by
inhabitants to insubordination,
and
spirit
name Freetown,
707
sterling.
He
clergy and
pay
advised the Secretary of State to send out an established
make every
colonist, including the
Nova
Scotian sectarians,
on citizens' duties, justifications of his renamed in January 1809 The African was printed (but not published) as a facetious lampoon
to support them. Homilies
policy, appeared in the Gazette,
Herald.
One issue
on
the Colony. Yet he did not want to make his subjects servile. He suggested young men be sent to England for military and naval instruction, and that John Thorpe and George Caulker, both educated at Clapham, return to study at his
own
college. Queens',
Cambridge.
Rather than be advised by anyone connected with the Company,
Thompson took
into his Council the officer
commanding
the troops,
when he died, Captain Forbes, a disreputable who like many officers found service in than a vocation. Unemployed slave-traders,
Captain Macgregor, then,
brother of Lord Granard's, Africa a refuge rather
robbed of
enemy
their profession, rejoiced at a
Company. He
governor
who
assailed their
was inclined to welcome them, sold Joseph Davies, a former slave-trader from Cape Coast, Day's plantation at Fourah Bay, and bought large quantities of unwanted stores from him. Daniel Botifeur, a slave-trader in the Rio Pongas, once surgeon at Bance Island, who had supplied the Colony with cattle after the Freeport factory closed, was friendlily received at Fort Thornton when supercargo of a slave-ship sailing under Spanish colours which was openly buying slaves from the Bulom Shore. With the slave trade illegal, Bance Island lost its importance. The Andersons again tried vainly to sell it to government; they (with other former slave-traders) joined the African Institution, which gave them a prize for growing cotton on Tasso Island. The Superintendent at Bance Island found it increasingly difficult to maintain authority over the Temne grumettas who knew he could no longer sell them. Their headman began claiming to be equal with him. In October 1809 they rioted. Davies and Botifeur, both on the island, summoned Thompson who formally commissioned the Sheriff and Montague James, the Maroon general, to administer the Colony, and sailed up with a detachment of troops. Alleging that the riot might old
the
encourage the neighbouring
in return
Tcmnc no
to attack the
Colony, he held a
on Bance Island and transported the ringleaders to Cape Coast. Thompson's many charges against the Company was its
court-martial (for there was
constituted authority
to hold a civil court)
Among
being hostile to Islam. Embracing enthusiastically the theory (which the 108
Company's agents themselves maintained (p. 66) and the African of Africans being more civihzed the further they contrasted the pohshed urbanity of visiting Muscoast, he were from the Institution accepted)
hms, not only with the degraded habits of the coastal peoples, but with the hypocrisy and corruption the Company had spread in Freetown. Castlereagh, the Secretary of State, who took little interest in Sierra Leone, passed on the Governor's tirades to the horror-struck Wilber-
and Thornton.
force
To Thompson
reply to so many), directing
him
to
he sent only one despatch
(in
hand over the government
to
Captain Columbine and return to England.
Columbine stopped on
commanding
his
way
out
the garrison, persuaded
at
Goree where Major Maxwell,
him
to join in an attack
on
the
neighbouring French Colony of Senegal. They
sailed up the Senegal and the French capitulated. While Columbine was on shore his ship foundered on a sandbank and was lost. He had to return to England, and only reached Sierra Leone in a
landed through the
river,
new
surf,
ship in February 1810, ten
months
after Castlereagh
had written
his despatch.
In September 1809
him
Thompson had the D'erwent case formally brought
where he appointed John from Clapham, prosecutor, or Kings Proctor. Sheltered by his judicial immunity, he delivered a diatribe on the Company with a vehemence that made one of his audience observe 'you would think he had taken his degrees at
before
Thorpe,
in the Vice-Admiralty Court,
a clerk in the Secretary's Office since his return
Billingsgate.'
He
accused the directors of seeking to aboUsh the Atlantic slave
trade merely that they
seeking to ruin the filling the
might monopolize
West
India planters
it
themselves in Africa, of
by denying them
slaves,
and
market with the produce of their own slave plantations. He letters, left behind by Ludlam, interpreting
read aloud extracts from their
them
to support his charges.
Dawes,
who was
present in court (and
when he protested), was accused of Ludlam, of encouraging immorality and The speech was then published for general circulation in
threatened with imprisonment
approving infanticide.
of
slavery,
the African Herald.
Among the correspondence read out and published, was a letter from Macaulay warning Ludlam
though Castlereagh was ready enough was hostile, advising him to be careful- what reports he sent home, not suppressing the truth but wording it carefully lest unfriendly readers misinterpret it. By that
to countenance their views, his Under-Secretary
109
publicizing this letter as an example of Jesuitical dishonesty started a cry that
was
hound Macaulay
to
for another
Thompson
twenty
years.
As Governor, Thompson continued the Company's practice of manufacturing paper-money, signed with his name, but backed now by Treasury
bills: a
Columbine
blank
arrived, so
^5
note survives
many were
Colonial Accountant not to take them.
saw
among
his despatches.
in circulation, that
When
he ordered the
The Company's
supporters
chance of revenge, bought up over -^5,000 worth (trusting,
a
would honour them), and had Thompson arrested for debt as he was embarking. Their triumph was temporary. He was under orders to report home, so Columbine granted him an immediate Habeas Corpus. But his sailing was delayed, and he had to stay an extra day in the Colony while his enemies gathered in the church to pass enthusiastic resolutions disapproving of his rule. If a rather crest-fallen Thompson left Sierra Leone he did not long correctly, that sooner or later the Treasury
remain
dispirited.
martial and closed
His future army career (which included a courtwhen he had risen to be a general) might have been
who would guess that the flail of republican Freetown would one day become an outspoken radical pamphleteer, Bentham's friend, an associate of the Chartists, a champion of parliathen foreseen. But
mentary and economic reform.
Paying current expenses with home-made Treasury
enabled
bills
Governors to spend almost unchecked. Ludlam raised subordinate salaries after the
took on more
Crown took
over;
Thompson
raised
them
higher,
and created several well-paid posts. Buildings were put up, and the Treasury asked to pay for them. Allowances were added to salaries. Officials living in hired houses had their rents paid and clerks,
repairs done: those
who bought
houses were even paid for living in
them. Parhament voted an annual grant, averaging about
-^T
16,000,
but by the end of 18 10 an additional ^^59,000 had been spent. So a detailed estimate for a Civil Establishment was drawn up. Parliament
voted ^15,545 for
it
current expenditure to
He announced
his
in
181
fit it,
and Columbine was instructed to cut and incur nothing extra without sanction. 1,
unpleasant task at once, dismissed those not
inckidcd in the Estimate, and aboHshcd lodging allowances. Everywhere
he found waste. Despite lavish expenditure on public works the church, barracks, gaol
were
all
and courthouse
ruinous. His
(a
canvas building in Gloucester Street)
own wooden
no
house inside the fort was too
decayed for
wife and children to Hve in; he had to hire another.
his
who had
Settlers
put their
money into building good houses were Nova Scotian carpenter, was paid ^80
well rewarded: Peter Francis, a
a year for a building used as the Secretary's office.
was allowed). Columbine recom-
extra grant for buildings (which
mended
that
labour, and
Obliged to ask for an
once they were finished government give up employing
do
all
public
The Company was
works by
local contract.
restored to official favour.
Columbine removed
Forbes from his Council, and took on the Company's accountant, as government's; a new mayor and aldermen were Ludlam and Dawes answered Thompson's charges at a public meeting, then went down the Coast to finish the Commission of Inquiry, Columbine intending to follow. American traders whom Thompson had favoured were excluded. 'Georgetow^i' became Freetown again. The African Herald a Gazette. Columbine brought out another young protege of Wilberforce's, John Grant, as junior Member of Council. He disliked him, and rather
M.
D.
put
Hamilton,
in.
than saddle himself with an argumentative associate, declined to swear
him in without
further instructions
his brother-in-law, seat.
who had come
from London. out
Instead he appointed
as his secretary, to a
temporary
allies among Thompson's friends: it was rumoured Columbine left the Colony on the Commission of he would hoist a yellow flag at Fort Thornton and assume
Grant found
that as soon as
Inquiry,
government.
Columbine might have laughed off this futile plot (which gave him home on the next boat) but for Forbes who, enraged at losing his Councillor's seat (with /^400 a year),
an excuse for sending Grant
wrote angry ing, as
letters declining to
accept the Governor's orders, imply-
one of his predecessors to Ludlam
(p. 95), that
dent of civil control. Columbine ordered
He
him
to
he was indepen-
Army
Headquarters.
Columbine called out the militia, landed the marines drew them up ready to fire on the soldiers should they be summoned to defend their captain, and put him under arrest. refused to go.
from
his ship,
Forbes confined his resistance to savaging a brother officer with his
on board, and was shipped off to Headfrom the Army.
walking-stick, joined Grant quarters to be cashiered
war was averted. Forbes's supporters apologized (except Dr Spilsbury who went home in a huff). The Secretary of State, Thus
civil
Wilberforcc prompting, upheld Cokmibine, and exonerated Dawes
and Ludlam from Thompson's charges. Ill
Some may
feel this history takes
too
But from whatever standpoint the
much
account of Governors.
history of a
Crown Colony
is
written they obtrude themselves. In the days of sailing-ships a Governor
of Sierra Leone was under little control. With a good wind despatches from London might reach him in a month, but it might take much longer to send a reply. It might be half a year before he heard whether the Secretary of State approved of what he was doing. His salary alone placed him high above his subordinates. The Estimates for 1811 gave him -^2,000 a year, the Chief Justice ^1,500, but the Members of his Council, whom he could suspend at will, only ^400, the Secretary and Chief Surgeon /isso. Even when steam, then the telegraph, brought him closer to London, he was still left to initiate and carry out his own policy, reversing if he chose his predecessor's, so that in Freetown people repeated, 'New governor,
From
the
new law'.
first
States. Sharp,
the Sierra
who
Leone settlement roused
interest in the
kept his American friends informed of
United
its
early
was approached in 1789 by the Rev. Samuel Hopkins, a Congregational pastor in Newport, Rhode Island, some of whose Afro-American flock thought of migrating to Africa. In 1795 they sent a delegate to Freetown to prospect; Macaulay offered land on the Company's usual terms, but none came over. The American government, too, was interested in a Colony founded with American (though not republican) settlers. In 1802 Jefferson proposed to ship across a large number of slaves who had taken part in an insurrection in Virginia; the directors, already overburdened with difficulties,
responsibilities, declined his offer.
In
New Bradford, Massachusetts, lived Captain Paul Cuffee,
freed African father and a
Quaker, trading with
of religion
his
Red
own
son of a
Indian mother, a pious, industrious
boats.
He
yearned to bring the blessings
Having heard of the African Sierra Leone in 18 10 in his brig the
to his brethren in Africa.
Institution's plans,
he
sailed
over to
mamied with a crew of African descent. There letters reached him from Wilberforce and from William Allen, a fellow Quaker in business in London, a member of the African Institution, asking him to England. So after a couple of months he went to England, addressed the African Institution, and persuaded Allen to help him give tlie Settlers practical encouragement. On his Traveller,
112
return to Freetown at the end of 1811 he got one of the Methodist
congregations to organize a co-operative trading society, the FriendlySociety of Sierra Leone, to enable settlers to combine to
produce and market
monopoly was
trade
(p. first
with
president. Allen a
grow
or buy
abroad, to break the European merchants'
loi). Kizzell
Clarkson, started their
it
his
long experience of the Sherbro
and some
friends, including
Thomas
non-profit-making society in London to dispose of
produce and send out goods in return.
Cuffee planned to bring over Americans of African descent, skilled, self-reliant
farmers or artisans whose example of sturdy independence
would stimulate the Settlers to enterprise. To prove his interest in the Colony permanent, he bought a house in East Street (on the northwest corner of Church Street), and went home promising to return annually with goods and immigrants.
On
voyage back from England he brought the Rev. George three schoolmasters, missionaries sent by the English in belated response to Joseph Brown's request Conference Wesleyan (p. 104). A site for a mission house was bought where Dala Modu's town had been, just west of the town wall, no longer needed for defence. his
Warren and
Chief Stephen Caulker, the re-conqueror of the Bananas, died in 18 10. country his brother Thomas was his heir. But his son
By custom of the
at Clapham (p. 81), employed on his Company's then government, storekeeper, of primogeniture. Supported by Dawes, who
George Stephen, educated return to Freetown as the
had learnt English rules accompanied him to the Plantains, he persuaded his uncle to divide the chiefdom again. Thomas took the Bananas and the mainland, George Stephen the Plantains.
The
rainy season of 18 10 was particularly unhealthy: Nylander some-
Ludlam died at sea, leaving Dawes and Commission of Inquiry. Mrs Columbine died in October; her children were sent home ill, and one died on the way. Columbine, too, was constantly ill, left in May 1811, and died of dysentery in mid- Atlantic. times had ten funerals a week.
Columbine
to finish the
Before leaving, he took the
first official
census, published in the
Commissioners' Report. Enumerators were sent round making returns: a previous
count made in 1802 was only based on the Company's 113
of households. The total population, grouped as European, Nova Scotian, Maroon and African, was given as 1,917. But the 28 Europeans (with 4 women and 2 children) did not include the garrison; nor can the 100 Africans have included the recaptured slaves, about 1,000 of whom had been landed by March 181 1. The Nova Scotians, given as 891 in lists
1802, had risen to 982; the increase included returned rebels and slave-
The Maroons, 515 in 1802, numbered 807. The returns showed 381 houses. Three were of stone, one belonging to a Nova Scotian stonemason, George Carrol, the others to Europeans. Most of the rest were wooden framed houses. 136 were classed as traders.
wattled huts.
Their total value,
Government least
when new, was reckoned
-^26,589, of
which
buildings (excluding Fort Thornton) accounted for at
-^3,000.
Europeans owned
at
least
another
-^8,000
worth.
Macaulay and Babington had a stone building valued at ^^900 by the government sawpit in Susan's Bay; James Carr, returned from the slave trade, built a house for ^1,000 on a site in Rawdon Street that belonged to his Nova Scotian mistress, Betsy Walker. The remaining houses may be considered not only the Settlers' homes, but their invested capital.
The Act of 1807, which prevented
British subjects openly taking slave-
ships across the Atlantic stopped for a short while a trade hitherto largely in British hands. Americans, sailing their
own
under Spanish colours, defying
anti-slave-trade laws revived
it.
Spaniards and Portuguese
joined them to supply the newly expanding markets of Brazil, justifying Burke's
prophecy
'that so
long
some means for its supply will be found'. The Commissioners of Inquiry believed that
Cuba and
as the slavery
con-
tinues,
as
many
as
80,000
were shipped during 18 10. Columbine, despairing of enforcement over the whole coast recommended the Navy patrol only the so-called Windward Coast (north of Cape Palmas) ignoring the Leeward Coast (south of it) the main supply of slaves. Dawes, and eventually the government, disagreed, preferring that the Navy try to cover the whole coast. By the end of 181 1, 1,991 slaves had been captured and condemned or more accurately re-captured, since they had already in Freetown once been taken as slaves. 'Re-capturcd', was in use as an adjective by the 1820s; the noun 'recaptive' only appears in print in the 18 80s (and has not yet found its way into the Oxford English Dictionary).
—
114
The recaptives were known officially as Captured Negroes. As their number increased (they already outnumbered the Settlers) a Superintendent was appointed to register and look after them: the
first,
Kenneth Macaulay, was a second cousin of Zachary's who came out aged sixteen as a government writer in 1808. He had charge of them while they were awaiting disposal, distributed country cloths to wear, and made out indentures for those apprenticed. Charles Shaw, the Maroon captain, oversaw those settled at Leicester, under Macaulay 's supervision. They were ruled summarily, the unruly,
men
or
women,
publicly flogged. Their expenses were paid
from
England, not out of the meagre Colonial vote, but under a special
Treasury grant voted annually by Parliament.
From
the beginning of the century the British
sought to recruit Africans, to serve in the
West Indies.
Army
in
government had
West
Africa or the
some recaptives were enlisted and sent to be trained at Goree. A few boys were also entered on board naval ships. Most were apprenticed to Freetowoi people who took them gladly as servants. When a group of Ashanti was liberated the Maroons welcomed them as countrymen, took them into their homes and taught them trades. Eventually they were given lots in the Maroon In 18 10
Tov^m. Lieutenant Bones, a naval officer Columbine
left
temporarily in
charge of the Colony, held a general muster of recaptives to check
what was happening to them. About eighty were said to have run away; another dozen had vanished completely. Impressed with the industry and behaviour of Thompson's Bambara community at Leicester, he settled forty-two from Cabenda (at the mouth of the Congo, some 2,000 miles away) on the ridge above the Cape, known as Devil's Hill, or Signal Hill, where there was a military lookout post. An abandoned Temne town, Beaver Tom's, was taken over and called
New
Cabenda.
Serving or half-pay officers, unafraid of the tropics, could be found to govern Sierra Leone: it was less easy to find a qualified lawyer for Chief Justice, an office created by the Royal Charter. In Upper Canada Robert Thorpe, an Irish barrister, appointed judge, was behaving with a Violence
him
and indiscretion
which left no alternative but to remove Government of the Province'. The first 1808 he was passed on to Sierra Leone. .
.
.
or the whole Executive
choice was the easier, so in
115
The Charter was drawn up and
sent to
Lord Eldon, the Lord
Chancellor, in August 1809; rather unwillingly he affixed the Great
was handed over to the new Chief Justice in March 181 1. By then questions were being asked in Parliament, for Thorpe had been waiting in London since 1808, drawing his full salary. He took office in Freetown in July, with Lieut. -Colonel C. W. Maxwell, promoted Governor from commanding the troops at Senegal. Appointed by Commission (as his predecessors were not) Captain-General and Governor-in-Chief, Maxwell was also comSeal to
it
in
missioned
August 18 10;
as
it
Vice-Admiral to give sanction to the Vice-Admiralty
The Chief Justice was senior Member of Council, but in a member acted Governor, to keep executive and judiciary separate. Maxwell made one of his staff officers, Dr John Court.
vacancy the next senior
Heddle, Colonial Secretary, with
Member. While Thorpe waited
a seat
ex
and another the other
officio,
were being brought before the Vice-Admiralty Court where he was to preside. Columbine appointed Alexander Smith, the Company's former storekeeper who had stayed on in trade, acting-judge. He adjudged cases as Thompson had and restored at least one cargo of slaves, legally shipped by Spaniards, to their owners receiving no salary, only court fees. When Thorpe arrived, he demanded Smith pay them over. Smith refused, so he brought an action in his own court, won it, and was awarded ;/^300 damages. Smith complained officially, and though Thorpe maintained in his own defence that he had sued not for the fees, but on principle, to punish contempt of his jurisdiction, the Secretary of State eventually made him disgorge them. Captors who brought ships before the Vice-Admiralty Court had prize agents in London to collect bounty money and in Sierra Leone to prosecute cases: many appointed Zachary Macaulay and the Freetown agent of Macaulay and Babington. The Court also brought the Colony employment and wealth in the form of court officials' fees, fees for ship-minding and admeasurement, and small contracts for ship's stores and carpentering.
—
in England, slave-ships
—
Maxwell was bidden continue Columbine's regime of economy, cut
down
public works, deprive the
salaries,
and
the Colony,
Members of
relieve the British tax-payer,
by
raising
some
who
local revenue.
116
On
liis
Council of their
bore the whole cost of
August the 22nd 18 12
:
Customs Ordinance, to tap that prime source of Colonial revenue. Two per cent was levied on British, 6 per cent on foreign goods; watering dues were increased; tonnage collected on carhe passed the
first
goes landed. Foreign ships, forbidden to trade under the British Naviga-
were permitted to, exceptionally, if the state of supplies in the Colony demanded it, under Governor's licence. To check fraud, ship'scaptains had to deposit their papers at the Secretary's^ (or, as it was now tion Laws,
usually called. Colonial Secretary's) office, so long as they remained in
the harbour.
Duties were also levied on goods sold at auction, including the constant auctions of prize goods
from condemned
slave-ships. Licence
from auctioneers and spirit retailers; twenty-seven were taken out in 1811. The Road Tax was revived and reorganized. The money it raised, and a Horse Tax, were earmarked for roads and bridges. The Governor could apply the rest as he chose. ^2,058 was collected in 18 12. The paper bills were called in, dollars sent to replace them; copper coins were also sent out in 181 3. But Maxwell still went on issuing local notes, which were not called in and destroyed until 18 16. fees
were
collected
spirit licences
With
the Colony, the
Crown took
over responsibility for the
Com-
pany's land grants, which the quit-rent dispute, then the fmal years of slack
government, had
settle all
left in
confusion.
Maxwell was
instructed to
outstanding claims to land, to grant the remaining four-fifths
of the promised allotments, withheld since 1792, to those who wanted them, and to give all landholders a secure title. Thorpe drew up rules for granting land under the Great Seal of the Colony (which arrived in 1 8 12), in which quit-rents were revived though the Company had abandoned them and heavy fees charged for those who made out the
—
—
grants.
The
Settlers beseiged
of land, but,
Governor and Council with petitions for grants few took out the required grants
their petitions granted,
title, they escaped paying quit-rents. were confiscated in 1813 for non-payment, another six in 1 8 14. Mrs Maria Parker, a Nova Scotian, gave up a house worth ^65 rather than pay 15 io| J quit-rent. Now that so few farmed, only nine applied for their long-promised country lands, and only four were put into immediate possession, in satisfaction of the engagement made over twenty years earlier in Nova Scotia.
thus, if they
Even
so,
still
lacked secure
eight lots
117
Maxwell took most advantage of ^Smith's Hiir forfeited
*Belle Vue', as
lOo) he enlarged
(p.
Nova
Scotian lots until
he called
it
it
Having bought by granting himself empty or
the land grants.
included the adjoining
hill.
To
he added, by purchase and grant,
his estate,
Fourah Bay Point. There he laid out plantations, cultivated by recaptive apprentices. Kenneth Macaulay was granted forty acres between Cockle Bay and Whiteman's Bay, where he grew cotton he also had a house and farm on the east side of King Tom peninsula. His brother :
George, a government writer, had a plantation beyond Granville Brook. Between them the three owned more than half the cultivated land in the Colony.
The Royal Charter empowered under military or
the
Governor
discipline, if need be, in or
to raise a militia to fight
out of the Colony, on land
Maxwell, fmding Thompson's militia decayed, passed a new The preamble rehearsed the provisions of the Charbut the Ordinance prescribed service within the Colony only;
sea.
Militia Ordinance. ter,
also required militiamen to take the Oath of Allegiance on penalty of outlawry if they refused. Maxwell had the Ordinances he and his Council passed printed for circulation: previous legislation had merely been recorded in the Council minutes. The Settlers, unused to legislative formulas, took the preamble for the enactment. Rumours circulated that they were to be degraded from free citizens to soldiers, liable to be shipped from their homes. The Maroons, the backbone of the militia, remembering their deportation, were determined never to go to sea again. They abhorred alien discipline: their revolt in 1795 was provoked by a flogging. Remembering the broken promises, they were suspicious of oaths (p. 88). Led by Charles Shaw, who had led the fighting in Jamaica, it
they refused to swear, believing Maxwell would never dare alienate
them. In
1800 the Maroons counterbalanced
in 181 to the
1
Maxwell saw Maroons.
He
in the also
Nova
Scotian disaffection:
ever-growing body of recaptives an answer
wanted
to enlarge his
own Royal
African
Corps with men more suited to tropical service than debauched Enghsh and to provide from the recaptives recruits for the West India Regiments. As there was no building in Freetown suitable for a recruiting station he took over Baiice Island, where a few of the convicts,
Andersons' employees lived on wretchedly in the decaying splendours. 118
Recaptives were drafted there for enlisting, then went, with recaptive wives, to the Barbados, or to Freetown where, formed into
two com-
panies of the Royal African Corps, they took over garrison duties.
They
built huts to live in
called Soldier
Town,
west of Fort Thornton in what came to be
thus saving the expense of rebuilding the dilapi-
dated barracks.
With
recaptive soldiers to rely on.
Maroons, no need even for
Maxwell had no
fear
of the
a militia except to enforce subordination.
He still demanded the oath, so Nova Scotians, left with their
a large
body of Maroons, and
famihes for the
money
houses they had invested their
in
had
Bulom
few
a
Shore.
The
to be left behind.
Declared outlaws, their property was confiscated: some was taken by
government, or sold for debt. Thomas Cato, back from the
Bulom
a
Shore, was rewarded with
by a Maroon. The Maroons trusted
Nova liis
Scotian rebel
old country
lot,
forfeited
policy, a
the Secretary of State, upheld to take the oath;
reported
Columbine had reversed Thompson's out to reverse Maxwell's. But
jthat as
new Governor would come most got
it.
their
few stayed away until he left the new status, no longer the courageous
had returned, but
all
Colony. They returned to a
Gradually during 1813 they began
property back. In June 18 13 Maxwell a
warriors of the Jamaican mountains, but civilians kept in order recaptive troops.
The
suppression of the 1800 revolt set the
Maroons: enlisting recaptives outsiders given arms against them.
Scotians against the the liberated
set
by
Nova
both against
Recaptives not taken for soldiers or apprenticed to Settlers or
— —
government which employed a West Indian sergeant to teach some to be masons were sent to form villages of their own. In 18 12 a group settled on a hill above the deserted Granville Town. Their settlement was called Kissy Town, which suggests they came from the Kisi country, shipped perhaps from Shcrbro or Gallinas. But village tradition brings them from the Kisc-Kisc (then called Kissi) River north of the Melakori. In the following year a group of Portuguese-speaking recaptives was settled at what had been Pa Demba's Town, renamed Portuguese Town. A shipload of Vai was sent up to the Hogbrook, where Thompson had planned a village; recaptive Jolof, Mandinka and Susu joined them in adjoining villages, each people tending to keep to their own town. Some Bassa from south of Cape Mcsurado formed Bassa Town on the Atlantic beach. Mende recaptives, called 'Kosso' in the Colony 119
(a
name today only
adjoining
used
as a
New Cabenda.
In 1795 a witch doctor called Sandi (a
King Jimmy's Town. Tradition has driven out, he
Pa Sandi,
Town
term of abuse), formed Kosso
moved
a mile or so
Mende name) was living in when the Temne were
that
it
south along the beach and founded the village of
below where the
recaptives
Town. The Captured Negro Department's
lists
were
show
to build
Kosso
a recaptive
boy
living there in 18 12.
Recaptives landed at coasts adjoining the
and
at least
this
period had been shipped chiefly from the
Colony. There were
also Ashanti,
one Ibo. The Congo people who,
by the waterside,
left their hilltop at
New
it is
said,
Congo
(p. 115),
preferred to live
Cabenda and followed the
Congo River down to Whiteman's Bay where in 18 16 they bought from a Maroon woman a site for a new home, Congo Town. pretty stream dignified as the
In 181
1
Brougham
passed through Parliament the Slave Felony Act,
to punish British slave-traders, or foreigners trading in slaves soil, still
with transportation, thus bringing the settled in the rivers adjoining the
many
on
British
British slave-traders
Colony within reach of the law.
Maxwell, a protege of the African Institution, took the offensive in 1 8 12 and had two slave-traders, Samuel Samo and Charles Hickson, seized at the Isles de Los and brought to Freetown for trial. Thorpe, who was to try them, doubted if he could. Samo, though he
had been heard to boast he was English, was Dutch; neither the Isles de Los, nor the Rio Pongas, where he had been settled sixteen years, were British. Governor and Chief Justice hastily despatched to the Rio Pongas an agent who persuaded the chiefs to agree that Europeans living under their protection be held imdcr British law. Armed with this dubious authority, which enabled him to maintain from the bench Rio Pongas counted as British jurisdiction, Thorpe tried the Hickson was acquitted, Samo found guilty. Even then he dared not risk sentencing Samo. Unwilling to discharge unconditionally so notorious a slave-trader, he had another message sent to the that the
prisoners.
chiefs, this time asking them to petition that Samo be pardoned. They duly petitioned, and the pardon was graciously granted. Maxwell then enlisted the Navy. In June 18 13 Captain Scobcll of
Pongas
the Thais destroyed
a
British slave-factory in the St Paul's River, south
of Cape Mesurado, freed over 200 120
slaves
and brought the owners,
Robert Bostock and Jolin McQuin, to Freetown. Thorpe was on leave in England; his bench was filled by Dr Pur die, a friend of Maxwell's, who also held the offices of Colonial Surgeon and Colonial Secretary.
Taking Thorpe's decision to try Samo and Hickson as a precedent, he sentenced Bostock and McQuin to fourteen years transportation; they were sent to England, thence to Botany Bay. Later in the year another naval expedition went to attack the Rio Pongas factories; the slave-traders retreated to a fort up one of the winding creeks and drove away the boats, hi March 1814 Maxwell called his
new
recap tive troops into action. Justifying himself to the
Secretary of State with a gruesome, improbable story of the slavetraders' inciting a chief to kill a
150 soldiers, for
who
European
for a
human
sacrifice,
he sent
destroyed the factories, and brought back 240 slaves
condemnation, four slave-traders for
trial.
Purdie was
bench, assisted by Captain Appleton, Royal African Corps led the expedition, captured the prisoners,
and received
still
on the
—who had
a large share
of the bounty money for the slaves. Maxwell also received a share as Governor. Three, Dunbar, Cooke and Brodie, were given fourteen years transportation and sent to England; Hickson, the fourth, already
once acquitted, three years hard labour in Freetown where he was to
by teaching
his
Thorpe, meanwhile, was
in
expiate his guilt
own
former
slaves
how
to farm.
London, complaining to the African Institution of abuses in the Colony, to the Secretary of State of Maxwell's having put in Purdie, instead of a nominee of his own, as judge. Maxwell followed in July, for a surgical operation. Governor and Chief Justice, hitherto friendly, fell on one another. Maxwell begged that Thorpe be dismissed. Thorpe retaliated in a published pamphlet, A Letter to William Wilherforce, denouncing not only Maxwell, but the African Institution and the defunct Company, raking up Thompson's charges, reprinting Macaulay's unfortunate letter (p. no).
Once
the
of slave-traders, Thorpe became their prop. He called attention to Dunbar, Cooke and Brodie, waiting in the hulks at Portsmouth; flail
they petitioned the
The
Home
Secretary and were released.
Brougham's Act empowering the Sierra Leone courts was based on a repealed statute. Thus their trial had been illegal. They and Hickson were pardoned; Cooke brought an action against Maxwell. Though the pardon was given on a clause in
to try slave-traders for felony
technicality, the Abolitionists felt
it
a severe
blow,
if
only because
it
discouraged further attacks on slave-factories.
Thorpe depicted 821613
the attacks as
unprovoked aggressions on neutral 121
1
soil
by
with
a
governor greedy for bounty money. Macaulay answered him
counter-pamphlet; the African Institution published a long
a
Thorpe replied at once with further pamphlets aspersing Macaulay and the Institution. They were mentioned in Parliament; the House of Lords made merry over Dr Purdie, 'the learned surgeon of Sierra Leone'. If Thorpe always had the last word in argument, his opponents worsted him personally. While the controversy was raging, in March 1815, he received a letter from the Under-Secretary of State dismissing him from his judgeship. Vainly he protested, publicly and officially, against a judge's being removed from the bench, unheard, by the administrative act of a subordinate. Neither Lord Bathurst, nor his successors as Secretary of State, would reinstate or pension him. apologia.
Thorpe's pamphlets delighted the West India fearful
interest,
increasingly
of the Abolitionists. Their ov^m pamphleteers took up
charges Joseph Marryat, m.p. for Sandwich, repeated :
them
his
in a series.
More Thoughts, and More They also alarmed the Colony's friends, apprehensive much of what he said was true. William Allen, whose practical
Thoughts on the Abolition of the Slave Trade,
Thoughts that
sympathy
Still.
for the Settlers already betrayed his suspicion that they
being economically exploited,
felt
were
the African Institution failed to
He was disgusted at the directors for trying blame the Company's failure on the Settlers' laziness and depravity, when they had themselves broken their promises to them. The Clarkson brothers were roused by the revival of quit-rents John prepared his Sierra Leone diary for publication (only an abridgement appeared, in Allen's periodical The Philanthropist), Thorpe pointed out that lack of funds prevented the African Institution fulfilling its mission to Africa. The average income was seldom over ^1,000, much of which went to print pamplilets. A few hundred pounds were spent bringing African boys to England to train as teachers; a European schoolmaster was sent belatedly to Freetown in 181 5, and returned the following year. Otherwise little was done for answer Thorpe adequately.
to
:
African education, Its
less for
sponsors, vilified
agriculture.
by Thorpe and
liis
associates, lost
influence over the Colony. Wilberforce's interventions
received in the Secretary of State's office. Macaulay,
presented as rapaciously using his influence to 122
much of their were
whom
monopohze
less
well
Thorpe
trade, acted
in character
by trying
Colony. His
efforts
fell
heavily
only damaged,
When two young Maroons, arrived in
London in
1
Maxwell levy-
privately to get Bathurst to stop
ing customs duties which
8
1
5
his
on
own
liis
firm, the largest in the
reputation.
Stephen Gabbidon and Samuel Thorpe,
to protest against
Maxwell's outlawing them,
they turned not to Macaulay but William Allen, and John Clarkson. Allen took up their cause in The Philanthropist, publishing the Freetown street
and allotment plans to show
who owned
the lots and
what had
been confiscated.
The African
Institution,
its
shortcomings exposed, went on con-
tributing towards African teachers, but quietly gave
imposed
responsibilities to the
slavery society.
It
shadowy being
a
held
its last
up
self-
an anti-
public meeting in 1827, but continued a
Among the abuses, real and imagined, Thorpe exposed,
When
other as
few years longer.
way Kenneth Macaulay vision.
its
Colony, continuing merely
was the
accounted for the recaptives under
Parliament asked what returns he had
careless
his super-
made
to the
The
Treasury, none were forthcoming.
register in Freetown from 1811 names and numbers; the duplicates sent home were sketchily made out. Kenneth Macaulay, in justification prepared a general return, showing how many had been recaptured by July 1814 (5,925), with a rough description of what had become of them, which the African Institution printed for Thorpe to deride. In 1 81 5 he was relieved of his duties, wliich passed to his brother George, who was as amiable, Thorpe said, as Kermeth was vicious. He returned to Sierra Leone, though, as Macaulay and Babington's
to
1
8
14 shows only the recaptives'
agent.
Maxwell resigned in June 1815 and was found a quieter post as Governor of Dominica. Cooke's action against liim was heard in the King's Bench in 18 17. No defence could be made. Cooke was awarded ^20,000 damages which the government imdertook to reimburse Maxwell. Brodie, too, began proceedings but died before they came on; Dunbar and Hickson were dead by 181 8. Bostock, back from Australia, brought an action against Captain Scobell which was settled out of court. Thus it was shown that the illegal slave trade had to be suppressed by legal means. 123
when Maxwell
left for England in 1814, Lieut.-Colonel Charles MacCarthy, in command of the troops at Senegal, took over in Freetown, as Lieutenant-Governor. Of Jacobite lineage (his great-grandfather had followed James II to France), of French birth and parentage (he used his mother's name, MacCarthy, not his father's, Gueroult),
he started
Devoted
mihtary career in the
his
to
Irish
Brigade under Louis XVI.
monarchical principle, he preferred even Hanoverian
kingship to French republicanism, turned at the Revolution to the
and served
British army,
In 181
1
in Flanders, the
West
Indies
he was posted to the Royal African Corps.
and Canada.
Though
a
Roman
Cathohc, he was ready, in office, to sign the declarations against Popery and Transubstantiation still exacted from ofEce-holders, even the oath abjuring the Family for whom his ancestors had left all. Loyalty to the
Crown came
first:
'I
humbly
beg',
he once wrote to
Bathurst, 'you will lay at His Royal Highness's Feet, the Assurance of
my
and Service.' Leone to arrange for Goree and Senegal to be returned to the French, under the Treaty of Paris. Captain Maling, the senior Member of Council took over, but died within a few weeks. Then Purdie, 'the learned surgeon', acted Governor until March 1815 when he too fell ill and died, leaving Appleton to act; Appleton's health broke down in June and he handed over to the next senior
Devotion
In
to his sacred Person
December he
left Sierra
officer.
While Thorpe's contest were without proper legal
still
raged, the successive administrators
Kenneth Macaulay, appointed But he was debarred from presiding in the Vice-Admiralty Court where, as a prize agent, he profitted from condemnations. James Wise, the Nova Scotian Government Printer, held for a while the post of King's Advocate. MacCarthy returned in July 181 5, and in 18 16 was appointed Governor. His mild sway restored the Settlers' confidence. Quit-rents were forgotten; those who had suffered under the Mihtia Act were compensated. A new Cliief Justice, Dr Hogan, replaced the furious Thorpe, and a qualified barrister was sent out as King's Advocate, with the duties of public prosecutor, legal advisor to the government, and senior Member of Council. assistance.
to the Governor's Council, acted as Chief Justice.
A Temnc
secret society was organized in 181 5 to recover Port Loko from Brima Konkuri. The leader, Moriba Kindo Bangura, from the
124
Sanda country, was himself of Susu origin, brought up
a
Mushm.
He bore the title Alikali (a form of the Arabic El Kadi, the judge), which he had bought from the chief of Maligia. Piis revolt succeeded. The Susu were driven from Port Loko. Brima, who five years earlier had boasted that the Temne would be exterminated within a decade, was beheaded. The Colony government took no part, beyond accepting the Temne claim that Brima was a usurper and refusing him help. Thus Port Loko became a Temne town again, though Susu with Temne mothers were allowed to stay in their own neighbouring towns. Moriba became chief, retaining his title Alikali, under the nominal overlordship of Bai Foki, the traditional ruler of the country.
The tions
peninsula was primaevally covered with forest timber. Genera-
of burning
to
make
shifting farms,
and European
sailors cutting
firewood, gradually reduced the lower slopes to secondary bush. Afzelius (whose Afzelia Africana)
name survives recommended
in a fine
hardwood
the Konta, or
the higher slopes be carefully thinned
and the timber preserved. But his advice was ignored; were felled indiscriminately for immediate use.
accessible trees
John McCormack, a young Irishman from Lurgan, County Armagh, came out to West Africa in 1808 and was employed trading along the coast. In
1
816 he settled in Sierra Leone and shipped to England a
cargo of what was called African Teak fieldia Africana) a hard,
Port Loko Creek. Island,
with
a
To
(really,
African Oak, Old-
durable timber, cut from the banks of the
be near his supply he built a house on
wharf and
sawpit,
where the
Tombo
logs, floated across,
could
be squared for sliipping.
Henry Williams, an English rival, went to Bance Island (where the was given up at the end of the war), as the Andersons'
recruiting station
agent, took
it
over himself and built
a
sawmill. Other prospective
timber merchants settled on Tasso Island: Macaulay and Babington
opened an establishment there
Timber provided
in
1
820.
the long-sought alternative to the slave trade,
giving the Colony a profitable article of export, increasing customs
revenue and attracting merchants with a
Temne traders
little capital. It
restored the
means of getting European goods, scarce since the slaveleft, and again provided chiefs with revenue from rents and a
customs. 125
McCormack found the Temne ready to wages (given in trade goods); he also employed Krumen. In 1818 the Navy Board began taking Sierra Leone timber for the dockyards and the Board of Trade reduced the heavy duties levied on African timber and other produce. Against
work
all
prophecies,
regularly for
126
VI TNon
i8i2 Nylander, disgusted with Freetown, went to
Bulom
the
forward to vernacular teaching,
Vocabulary, and translated St Matthew's Gospel, the lation
made
start a
mission
among the Susu he looked composed a Bulom Grammar and
Shore. Like Brunton
The
in Sierra Leone.
Rio Pongas, but they did
c.m.s. sent
more
first
more than educate
little
Bible trans-
missionaries to the
few
a
children,
including the settled slave-traders'.
The Wesley an mission took over teaching in Freetown. Warren some of his colleagues went home. When the Rev. William Davies, a Welsh missionary, arrived in 181 5 the schools had almost faded away. The c.m.s. sent Butscher back from the Rio Pongas as chaplain. German Lutheran and Welsh Methodist died in 1812;
cooperated
gladly
the
in
of interdenominational
tradition
local
harmony.
The a grant
C.M.S.,
determining to
make more
use of the Colony, obtained
of land on the south-east slope of Leicester Mountain
in 18 14,
where recaptive children could be or farming, and the most promising
as a site for a Christian Institution,
supported, taught useful trades
trained as teachers or missionaries. Butscher took charge as
masons
:
those trained
built premises.
Recaptives had already begun taking European names: nine of Thompson's Bambara had Maroon surnames within a year or so of landing. Apprentices often took their master's; those baptised might take a missionary's. tion after
anyone
Bickersteths,
The
who
Pratts,
Sibthorps (c.m.s.
c.m.s.
Crowthers,
officials
But most preferred
promised to name
contributed -£5 for
its
a child at the Institu-
support, so
Nottidges,
Venns,
little
recaptive
Martyns and
or benefactors), ran about on Leicester Peak.
names of their own. Recaptives, with their diverse speech, had to learn English to understand one another. Amid the Babel of tongues English became not only
a
to choose
lingua franca but a Pentecostal interpreter, speaking a message
many were
ready to hear. For, abandoned by their
failed to protect
them
in their
own
gods
who had
homeland, they came up from the hold 127
of the slave-ship hke Jonah from the whale, cut off from
their old life,
ready to be re-born into a new.
MacCarthy was shocked by the miserable settlements round Freetown where recaptives had been dumped, without help or instruction, to refashion their lives as best they could on alien soil. Where previous governors saw an administrative problem, how to settle them cheaply, he saw a heaven-sent way of transforming Africa by changing them into Christian communities, orderly villages, each
grouped round
its
church tower, instructed and cared for by benevolent European guidance.
The Rev. Edward
Bickersteth (later Secretary to the c.m.s.) was sent
in 1816 to inspect the
whole mission. He and MacCarthy agreed
that
more promising mission-field than the unremake the Colony their centre. 1 8 16 was a year of retrenchment: with the end of the war came orders
the recaptives presented a
sponsive Susu, and that the c.m.s. must
to cut down colonial expenditure. A lesser governor might have abandoned plans necessarily entailing great expense. MacCarthy, not the least of whose gifts was a power to charm money from the British Treasury, so presented his that the government was persuaded into forming with the c.m.s. another of its alliances with private phil-
anthropy.
The Colony was divided into parishes, each to be superintended by a clergyman provided by the c.m.s., paid by government. The c.m.s. undertook to provide and pay
government to build churches, left the Rio Pongas to devote Government appointed a Colonial
teachers,
schools and parsonages. Tlie missionaries
themselves henceforth to recaptives.
Chaplain to relieve them of duties in Freetown.
As an outward mark of their new status, MacCarthy renamed Hogbrook village Regent, Cabenda Wilbcrforce. New villages were formed Gloucester, Leopold, Charlotte, ni the mountains, Kent at Cape Shilling, called after members of the royal family, Bathurst ni the mountains, after the Secretary of State. (Leopold and Bathurst were amalgamated in 1825 on the site of the former, the widower prince's name however giving way to the still officiating minister's.) More German missionaries, including William Jolinson and Henry During, and the first Englishman, Jolin Horton, came out in 18 16. All brought wives. Johnson, a Hanoverian, a labourer in Whitcchapel until his call, was sent to Regent where a Wesleyan teacher had had
—
128
temporary charge. A large body of newly-landed recaptives, many Ibo, had been added to the original Vai. Sick, disorganized, knowing no English, they depended on daily rations administrative confusion sometimes prevented them getting. Johnson began to organize them, set
them
clearing the bush, gathered the children into a school.
Carthy had already sent in August, the first stone
When
soldiers to help build a church:
it
Mac-
was opened
church in the Colony.
of curiosity, or in the hope of being given clothes. Before the year was out they were assembling to hear Johnson's gospel, voluntarily or under orders, for as superintendent, armed with magisterial powers, he could compel them to
come
the bell rang, the people assembled, out
in.
church-goers were converted and had forty-one communicants, a year later seventy-six (this included many young children). The church was enlarged, but still overflowed with orderly, respectably-dressed people, the schoolgirls in white, the boys in scarlet jackets, provided at govern-
Ruled by
baptised.
his persuasive authority
By
early 1817 he
ment expense. A good choir-master, he taught his congregation to sing hymns. Out of church hours the children held their own prayer meetings, praying and singing.
Some have
felt
whose fame soon
that Johnson,
publications, accepted converts too uncritically.
filled
missionary
Yet he rejected those
he believed unregenerate. MacCarthy, brought up a Roman Catholic, wanted recaptives baptised as soon as they began adopting European ways. Johnson insisted they accused
him of
first
show
signs
of conversion, MacCarthy
trying to sabotage his plans, threatened to complain
Archbishop of Canterbury. Johnson still refused. But when in 1 82 1 MacCarthy went up to Regent to be greeted with hymns by an orderly community drawn up under silken banners, he and his to the
sceptical officers
could only stare amazed.
Johnson even seemed able to influence his people physically: once backsliders he rebuked were temporarily paralysed and had to be carried out of church.
Sunday
at
Regent was
a
day of silence, broken
only by the villagers assembling quietly for morning, then afternoon, church.
On
Christmas
Day when
the citizens of Freetown
ing and dancing, his orderly flock
prayer to
a
quiet dinner while
sat
down
shoutmg and
were drink-
outside his house with firing
resounded from
below.
A
Benefit Society (which lasted into the twentieth century) was
started to care for the destitute,
and
a
129
Building Society for the villagers
to build houses for
find
them
so neat,
one another.
An Enghsh
was astonished to road was cut west-
visitor
with furniture and crockery.
A
and rice, Johnson demonstrating how to spht boulders by heating them and pouring on cold water. During took charge of about loo recap tives, chiefly Jolof, Mandinka
wards to the
sea to trade for fish
and Susu, at Gloucester. Only three understood English. Once they were under shelter he began Christian instruction by enforcing Sabbath rest, then daily school and religious services. Like Johnson he made them come, sending his recaptive churchwardens to round them up, and, as at Regent, some responded with conversion. The c.M.s. asked the missionaries to send verbatim accounts of what annual reports, that pious hearts
their converts said, to print in the
be touched by their broken English. Johnson and During insisted on such oral testimony
as
proof of conversion. Thus recaptives were
encouraged to express themselves in experiences,
religious
were
Societies
pennies
to
the
started,
c.M.s.
their
new language,
articulate their
and pray extempore. Auxiliary Missionary through which the villagers could pay their for
missionaries
to
their
still
unconverted
brethren.
Much of the superintendent's work was once persuaded that they were
free,
magisterial.
New recaptives,
often assumed they were free to
had to instill respect and put them to work. MacCarthy loved building so stone churches, parsonages, store-houses and schools, with high walls bounding the government premises, or King's Yard, went up in the take their neighbours' produce. Superintendents for property,
villages.
Those employed by government received
rations as well as
wages; school children and the newly landed were rationed too, so the remaining villagers were encouraged to grow cassava to
sell
govern-
ment to feed them. At Bathurst Horton, who left the mission for government service, brought order to an unruly community ofJolof and Bassa. Renner and his Nova Scotian wife went to Leopold, taking with them sixty children from the Rio Pongas. When he was temporarily posted to the Freetown chaplaincy the villagers insisted she stay behind to look after them and settle their disputes. Christianity was brought to Kissy by a Nova Scotian Baptist who built a rough chapel and immersed converts in the stream. The Rev. C. F. Wenzcl went there from the Rio Pongas in 1816; MacCarthy bought the chapel and discouraged further Baptist labours. Wcnzel was infirm
— deaf, lame, sometimes almost blind from 130
ophthalmia caught
8
from
recaptives
make
converts.
Carthy
laid the
—and was too harrasscd by superintendent's duties to But
his
people had to attend church. In 1817
Mac-
foundation stone of St Patrick's, Kissy, one of the few
this era to be solidly built. When Wenzel died in 181 Nylander took over and the Bulom Shore, where the people were more interested in what little trade the mission brought than in his preaching,
churches of
was given up. MacCarthy spared no expense to make the villages reflect his vision. Bells, clocks and weathercocks were ordered from England for church towers, forges for village blacksmiths, scales and weights for village markets. Quill-pens and copy-books, prayer books and arithmetic books were ordered for the schools, with tin cases for the children to carry them in, lamps to read them by. Hats were ordered for the men, bonnets for the women, shoes for all; gowns and petticoats, trousers and braces buttons, too, with needles, thread and thimbles, soap and smoothing-irons, even clothes-brushes, nothing was forgotten. Mrs Renner told the c.m.s. Committee African women wouldn't sew. MacCarthy determined to alter that. As well as ready-made clothes, he ordered yards of pretty patterned cottons (the samples are still stuck onto his despatches) for schoolgirls to make up into shirts and dresses.
—
The
could not provide for the children
C.M.S.
Institution
on
so lavish a scale.
children distributed to the villages.
nucleus of a
new
Institution,
A
moved
at
the Christian
was given up and the few boys were retained as the
So in 18 19 in
1
it
820 to Regent, a serninary
where they would receive higher education than the village schools provided. MacCarthy envisioned it as a College where Settler and recaptive children
would be educated
for the learned professions.
A
Governor who interpreted so liberally orders to cut down expenditure, was impatient of an official policy wliich, having restored Goree and Senegal to the French, was uninterested in acquiring new West African possessions. In 18 16 he reasserted ancient British claims in the
Gambia, and laid out on St Mary's Island a town tactfully named after Lord Bathurst. Between it and Sierra Leone lay the Isles de Los, deemed British, inhabited by British traders. Forced to stop selling slaves, they bought undutied goods cheap from American ships and smuggled them into the Colony: W. H. Leigh, a former slave-trader, once employed by the Sierra Leone Company, was said to have made ^20,000 in two years. MacCarthy persuaded the British government 131
must be occupied
the islands
Modu
of Lungi,
chiefs,
who
who
to safeguard
Customs revenue. Dala
claimed part-ownership,
won
over the other
ceded them to the Crown. MacCarthy pointed out to
Bathurst that the treaty having been signed during the
he could not be accused of making them drunk
The War of 1812
upset Cuffee's plans
(p.
Ramadan
fast,
first.
113).
With
peace he
returned, in February 18 16, with a sawmill, trade goods and thirty-
four
settlers.
Some were
skilled artisans, useful in
Lockes, a blacksmith, Robert Rigsby,
Cuifee went
home with
Freetown,
as
Perry
a baker, Peter Wilcox, a tanner.
African produce, but sold
it
at a loss. In 18 17
he died. His Friendly Society faded away. Allen could not induce the members to combine to raise produce for export, and they turned to trading individually. Wise, the secretary, abandoned printing, set up in
and began ordering out cargoes of trade goods from England European merchants; Gabbidon and Thorpe, back from London, did the same. In 1 81 8 two delegates from the newly founded American Colonizabusiness
in competition with the
tion Society arrived in Freetown to prospect for a settlement.
They
made friends with Kizzell who took them to his Sherbro homeland, where they fixed on a site at Mano Bagru. MacCarthy, busy trying to check American smuggling at the Isles de Los, was alarmed at the prospect of their settling so near and asked to be allowed to occupy the Sherbro and forestall them. But the British government saw no reason to interfere with peaceful American plans even if they threatened the Colony's revenue. settlers arrived early in 1 820 led by an official of the government agent, empowered to start a Colony for recap tives freed by the U.S. Navy. They made their temporary base at Camplar (a place vanished from modern map or memory), Kizzell's factory on the north shore of Sherbro Island, a marshy site too shallow for their ship to approach. Once landed, they foimd the Bagru chiefs had changed their mmds. Fever broke out, there was no clean water to drink; twenty-five died, including the two conductors. The remainder, led by the Rev. Daniel Coker, an Afro-American African Methodist Episcopal pastor from Baltimore, moved across Sherbro Island to Yoni. When a remforcement arrived in Freetown from Norfolk, Virginia in March 1821 they were easily persuaded to give up the Sherbro scheme. The settlers were brought from Yoni to Fourali Bay while
Eighty-eight
Society,
and
a
went down the coast to find another site. Eventually Liberia, was founded at Cape Mesurado.
their leaders
settlement,
132
their
A
few stayed
in Sierra Leone, including
put in charge of
Macfoy,
who
a recaptive village.
Coker,
whom
MacCarthy
An 'Afro-Wcst-hidian, Thomas
arrived with his family in 1818, also
became
a village
superintendent. Others crossed the Atlantic to settle as shopkeepers like as a boy in the Congo, sailed back to Africa from Charleston in his owai schooner. Another attempted Colony, a group sent from Charleston in 1822 to Ormond's factory on the Rio Pongas, was no more successful than the Sherbro attempt, and the survivors drifted to Freetowai. In 1820 the Caulkers were at last persuaded to lease the Banana Islands to the Crown for an annual rent of 250 bars paid, not as nor-
Alexander Harleston, or James Creighton who, enslaved
mally to
chiefs, in
Caulker
moved
Thomas The Koya Tcmne, who
goods, but Spanish dollars valued a bar each.
to
Bumpe on
the mainland.
were compensated. Recaptives, chiefly those the superintendents found troublesome, were sent there. Frederick Campbell, a young Scot who had served in the Navy, had charge, and laid out Dublin village. Some of the Bulom inhabitants remained, as did a French trader, Jean Meheux, settled several years on an outlying island, where he lived in African style. On the Plantains Stephen Caulker, George Stephen's brother, a C.M.s. teacher, opened a school, where he taught partly in English, partly in Bulom. He translated some hymns into Bulom; they were printed on the government press. Some of his pupils' copybooks were sent to London to the c.M.s. where they still survive. George Robertson, a Liverpool trader, published a book in 18 19 suggesting the British government take the whole coast; he made treaties of his own (in the King's name) with chiefs at Cape Palmas and Fernando Po. The following year Isaac Spencc, a ship's-captain from Hackney, opened a factory by the River Sestos, south of Cape Mesurado, where for nearly twenty years he traded in produce, improtected by any European power, leaving an African manager in charge when he went to England. He died, and was buried, in Freetown, where he also
claimed the
owned
islands,
property, in 1839.
During Maxwell's governorship the barracks at Fort Thornton had been repaired, and a much-needed military hospital built above and west of them; 'Westmoreland' point was cleared for a gaol and a place to shelter newly-landed recaptives. But when MacCarthy took over there were scarcely half a dozen stone buildings, public or private, no 133
Governor's house, no church, no gaol, no proper pubhc
offices;
church
were held in a hired room which was also used as courthouse and girls' school. The gaol was finished in 1816, a three-storey stone building. On the ground floor were prisoners' cells on the first, cells for debtors and Europeans, and the gaoler's quarters; on the top, the Court Hall. Prisoners were allowed to roam freely through the building and in the walled yard outside. The building was in use, structurally little altered, until 1914. Just east of it, above King Jimmy Brook, a stone wall with two gateways (one still stands) enclosed the King's Yard, where newly-landed recaptives were herded. Stores were built there for the equipment supplied them, and offices for clerks. The foundation stone of St George's Church was laid on January the 9th 1 817. Work went slowly, so services had to be held in the Court Hall. A town hall was built in the middle of Water Street, between Trelawney and Walpole Streets, rising on arches above a marketplace with a clock in front. The wharf was rebuilt with stone breakwaters, and a handsome flight of steps down from Water Street; MacCarthy, who lived nearby, was out daily superintending the work. Later generations have called them inappropriately, 'the Portuguese services
;
Steps'.
Even MacCarthy could not extort from the British government permission to build a Government House. Fort Thornton was still uninhabitable, so Maxwell and he hired Nicol's house at the top of the wharf steps. Li London at this period, a house for a family of five with two servants could be leased for under .^loo a year. The Colony paid
^350
a
year for
this
four-roomed house,
later raised to ;£500.
draw on the Treasury mess was built on the slope
As commander-in-chief MacCarthy could for military buildings.
An
elegant officers'
also
between Fort Thornton and Pademba Road, and magnificent Commissariat buildings. The Commissariat store, three storeys of stone with a wooden superstructure, was built at the wharf MacCarthy estimated it would cost ^4,000: the eventual cost was believed to be ^$0jr6o,ooo. Offices and quarters for the Commissariat officers, who, not holdmg commissions, could not mess with the regulars, were built at
Walpole Street. Brick-biult, slated, with iron verandas (bricks, slates and iron posts all sent out from England) with fireplaces througliout) the cellars ventilated with narrow draught-slits to keep out the ram, the verandas boarded and shuttered, it was probably the most comfortable house in Freetown. It is little changed today. the top of
134
Goree and Senegal became French again many British moved thence to Freetown. Rather than pay liigh rents for poor houses they began building their own. In 1814 there were six stone houses, in 181 8, sixty. The town walls were demolished by 18 13 and New Town East laid out beyond Settler Town. By 181 8 Fourah
when
merchants
Bay Road was laid out, and the Circular Road round Tower Hill. Nicol Brook was properly bridged in 1820; T. S. Buckle, the Colonial Surveyor, bridged Granville Brook on the Kissy road at Buckle's Bridge.
Westward
the lines
of parallel
streets
were extended beyond Maroon
Town
as far as Regent Square, laid out for well-to-do residents at the bottom of Bathurst and Wellington Streets. The Kru, originally encamped in Water Street, were moved further and further west, hi 1 8 16 an Ordinance was passed to acquire for them compulsorarily land by the shore beyond Sanders Brook belonging to Eli Ackim, a Nova Scotian trader who had bought it from its Maroon owner. A jury of freeholders awarded him ^62. compensation which he took with bitter protests at being dispossessed in favour of aliens. During
succeeding generations his descendants tried vainly to recover this valuable property, until in 1906
it
was declared by Ordinance Crown
Land.
There were over 500 Kru in Freetov^oi in 18 19 and another 200 working at the timber factories up the river. A few were also settled on the beach south of Cape Sierra Leone where they lived by fishing. However valuable their labour, they were suspect as thieves. An Ordinance was passed to make them collectively responsible for one another's crimes, but the Secretary of State disallowed it. Instead, special Kru headmen were appointed to keep order among them. They were still transients, never bringing their wives, returning home eventually with their savings.
Some complained
they took wealth
as their gains were always invested in goods bought in the Freetown shops, they did more for the Colony's trade than European officials who remitted their salaries home.
out of the country, but
As part of the post-war military reduction, the Headquarters and five Companies of the 2nd West India Regiment took over the Freetowni garrison in 18 19, and the Royal African Corps was disbanded. The Act of 1807 specifically denied pensions to freed slaves recruited into the army, but Maxwell had persuaded the government that pensioning the 135
discharged and settling them in Sierra Leone might help lessen the expectation of bad faith associated with Europeans in
So about
a
West
Africa.
thousand, including some from the disbanded 4th
West
were given land in the Colony with farming implements and 5 J a day (the disabled, 8^. With rice averaging about 45 a bushel, palm oil 25 a gallon, they were well off. MacCarthy kept over 300 in Freetown where they founded a suburb, Gibraltar Town (some had served in Gibraltar). Others he sent to a deserted Temne village beyond Kissy, renamed Wellington, and along the Atlantic coast to a place at the mouth of the Whale River which the Bulom called Mo Mini, renamed York, after the Duke of York. Some joined the recaptives at Kent. Another treaty was made with the Koya Temne who for an annual 50 bars gave up the land cast of Gambia Island, and moved out, leaving it empty for settlement, so that the Colony covered the whole peninsula. Here Hastings, called after the Commander-in-Chief in India, was founded at the Temne village Robump and beyond it, at Ma Porto (known in the 1790s as Jack Ryan's town) Waterloo. A few ex-soldiers were also sent to the Isles de Los. The soldiers were settled in by their officers who stayed with them until they had built houses and started farming. At York, Bulom women flocked in to live with them; others married recaptive women. The expanding colony could absorb many diverse elements. In 1 8 19 a ship arrived unannounced with eighty-five ^convicts and other dangerous persons', deported for insurrection from Barbados. MacCarthy put them on government works they proved peaceable so he let them settle in the Colony. Most had trades and found employment easily as superior servants or artisans. Cain Davis, a tailor, was employed for a while as a village superintendent. Jacob Thomas, a horse-doctor, grew rich as a publican, bought valuable house-property, redeemed his daughter left behind as a slave in Barbados, and sent his sons to school India Regiment,
;
in England.
wife. In
1
Simon Priddy,
841 any
Barbados without
who
fear
a
stonemason, settled
chose were
officially
down with
a
Maroon
allowed to return to
of punishment.
Between 1807 ^^^
their
Mende
them
neighbours. li
Upper Moa country. Kailahun) where powerful war chief who had built
Alldridge meanwhile was making treaties in the
On his first tour in he made
a treaty
890 he reached Kanrelahun
1
with Kai Lundu,
a
(later
up the Luawa chiefdom. On his second, in 1891, he revisited Kai Lundu, then went east across the Kisi country through towns where large weekly markets were held, with small bars of locally smelted iron, *Kisi pemiies', as currency; trade goods were imported from Liberia. Hay linked some important inland towns brought within the Colony's
influence
frontier road'.
—Taiama,
Thus the protected
area, also
country, covered most of the coastal plain.
went
chiefs asked to
Panguma
Tikonko,
—by
an
extending over the
'upper
Temne
Wherever he and Alldridge
have police stationed in
their
towns. So Frontier
Police were scattered in ones and twos over a far wider area than
was and was given some. The regulars, no longer needed, were withdrawn from Robari. Despite Hay's assurances, the chiefs found they were no longer the free agents they had been. Those who ignored Governor's instructions were liable to suffer: Bai Simera, accused to Hay of plundering, only averted arrest by instant apology and restitution. A chief was gaoled for several months by Ordinance because he was said to have contemplated 'buying war' from a neighbour. They were warned against using their traditional economic weapon, the Poro, to restrict trade. originally proposed: even Kai
Nor
Lundu asked
for
could promises to respect 'domestic institutions' stop slaves or
wives ruiming away to the Colony, or bring them back.
Macfoy's business declined during the
he mortgaged ten
late 1880s: in 1890, in
Liverpool,
^6,534 debt. Instead he turned to large-scale farming, cleared land round liis mansion at Jamaica, and employed a hundred or so labourers planting coffee, cocoa and other plantation produce. He experimented with tapioca. Thus he retained his pre-eminence as 'Sherbro Monarch': in 1888 he celebrated the factories for a
Queen's birthday by holding
a levee liimself at Jamaica.
He
subscribed
largely to church funds, gave /J150 to rebuild St Matthews, Bonthe, and built his own church at Jamaica, fming his labourers if they failed to attend.
With
the
Sherbro pacified, others were tempted to follow
example. Harris returned to Sulima with plans to get
grow
a
his
land concession
Samuel Lewis's brother Ebenezer, a professional photographer and trader, got the Tuckers to mortgage
from the
chiefs to
rice.
490
him land
government Gendama, Imperi,
in the Kittam. His brother Alfred, formerly in
service in the
Gambia, obtained Ka Tegbe's land
at
from Macfoy. Ka Tegbe objected to the land being transferred to another owner, and complained to government that Macfoy had punished him for objecting by destroying his town. But there was not enough evidence to prosecute. Unable to get redress from government, Ka Tegbe and his neighbours Ba Sliia of Bogo and Ghana Bunje of Gangama, who had also mortgaged Macfoy their land, had already used economic sanctions against him, by inviting European firms to break his monopoly. Fisher and Randall, French Company, and Paterson, Zochonis, all extending their business, opened up in Imperi. Macfoy warned the chiefs he would be revenged and sent a messenger on a mysterious errand inland to Panguma. Cases of so-called cannibalism were still reported in the Sherbro in the late i88os: in 1887 a man was imprisoned for ten years for dressing as an alligator and attacking a couple fishing in a canoe off Sherbro Island. Soon after Macfoy's messenger returned, murders
human
ascribed to
D.
F.
he seems to have suggested the Tongo Players be
summoned
as landlord, agreed, and interviewed them from up country. Then for a fee of about ^^36 they about thirty victims, including Ghana Bunje, and burnt them
(p. 442).
on
at his house at Gbambaia. One of his was found murdered. Ordinary methods of detection having
Wilberforce was staying
servants failed,
leopards started in Imperi. Early in 1890 the Rev.
Macfoy, consulted
their arrival
seized
to death as
When
human
the
investigate.
traditional
leopards.
news reached Freetown the Police Magistrate was sent to The chiefs made no secret of their having used their
means of
detection, but agreed not to again.
To
prevent
Hay proclaimed
Imperi part of the Colony, subject to of Turner's Treaty). But though nominally amiexed to the Sherbro District, no new administration was introduced. The chiefs were explicitly told their 'domestic institutions' further outrages
British jurisdiction (by warrant
would be
now British soil), and were given no more authority there than beyond
respected (although their country was
the Frontier Police jurisdiction.
Some maintained in cliiefs
beyond the Colony was inahenably vested and people. The advent of concession-seekers obliged Hay to that land
491
were entitled to ahenatc land to foreigners, and whether, if they were not, government should try to stop them. Samuel Lewis told him he believed chiefs had a right to alienate, and
inquire whether chiefs
advised against government's giving their people rights of inalienable possession.
Anxious to
opposed any
opened by foreign capital, he beyond having concessions made before a would explain them to the chief and prevent
see the interior
restriction,
government officer who undue exploitation.
Parkes, pointing to past precedents, agreed land was ahenable, and approved of government's protecting concession-givers. But Hay,
of interfering beyond
realizing the legal complications
shelved the matter until the status of the interior be
jurisdiction,
more permanently
decided.
The
of Colonial Secretary and Treasurer, joined for economy in 1887, were separated again in 1889, each with an Assistant: Enoch Faulkner, the Chief Clerk, was promoted Assistant Colonial Secreposts
tary at ;£300. In
policy agreed
on
recommending
a
Creole
Hay was
in 1865, less often carried out in Sierra
following the
Leone than
in
where Creoles had hitherto had more chance of Gold Coast Charles Pike acted Governor, Francis Smith
the other colonies, rising
:
in the
was puisne judge. In 1890 James McCarthy was appointed substantively to the post of Queen's Advocate in which he had already acted. Thus a Creole was raised to one of the most senior offices, with a seat on Executive and Legislative Councils. His private legal practice was valued at ^1,000 a year, so, for official economy, he retained it and was paid only /^300. As Colonial Regulations disapproved of judgeships being held by officials with local connexions, the Police Magistrate, or the Master and Registrar, both appointed from England, acted ChiefJustice in a vacancy. Having one of its own sons preside over its own bar was an honour to a community where the law was so esteemed, where the return of a young barrister from the Inns of Court roused the excitement other communities reserved for a new matador or prima donna. Nor was there any shortage of heroes. T. J. Sawycrr sent his impulsive, outspoken, son Alfred back to England in 1886 to study law and learn to keep himself out of trouble. The second son John, also educated in England at Monkton Coombe School, then in a Liverpool accountant's
492
office,
followed. Called to the
bar in 1889, Alfred remained in the family stationer's business until
1896
when
the
two brothers went
into legal partnership, Alfred doing
the bar work, Jolin the solicitor's.
They
also carried
on
their father's
firm after his death. Utterly different in manner, John reserved and taciturn where Alfred was extrovert and talkative, the Shorunkeh-
Sawyerr brothers were closely united: they prayed daily at the same hour whether together or apart (a practice copied from their father who prayed thus with his friend James Johnson), and died within a fortnight of one another in 1929. J.
R. Maxwell's younger brother, John Wilfred, was called to the
F. T. Dove, called in 1891, was the son of a self-made man, William Dove, who started as Ezzidio's clerk, then made a fortune trading in the Northern Rivers and in Freetown. Claudius Wright, also called in 1891, was also the son of a selfmade business man, Joseph G. Wright, born at Hastings, who had a shop in Kissy Street. Claudius was originally destined for the ministry, took his B.A. and l.th. at Fourah Bay College and was teaching at the Grammar School when he became involved in litigation with the Colonial Surgeon. Having lost his case he abandoned teaching and took up law. Before the end of the century the bar was further augmented by A. S. Hebron's brothers, Roland and Jabez, T.J. Thompson, and Moses Awooner Williams, a Cambridge graduate, son of G. B. Wilhams. In addition to those qualified at the Inns of Court S. F. Owen, a Gambian trained in Lewis's office^ was admitted to local practice as a
bar in 1889. business
solicitor.
Hay
gratified local feelings
by bestowing
Justiceships
hitherto normally restricted in Freetown to
officials,
of the Peace,
more widely.
In 1889 he appointed T. J. Sawyerr, John Harding, the Army Pay Clerk, and Simon Lardner, a shopkeeper in Kissy Street who ran the
canteen at the barracks and had helped organize the Centenary celebrations; in 1890, J. B. M'Carthy, the Queen's Advocate's father, Bishop, junior.
and
Thomas
Bishop and
mar School
his
brother Theophilus Colenso (so called at the
Gram-
Bishop Colenso's Arithmetic book) were the sons of an Aku rccaptive, Thomas Bishop (and his Ibo recap tivc wife), who traded with Lagos, kept a flourisliing shop near Big Market and died in the
after
month
his
son became a
j.p.
Thomas,
493
junior, after a
few years
trading at Abeokuta, returned to Freetown as a grocer, then hardware dealer;
he helped organize, and
later tried to resuscitate, the
Native
Association.
work
Theophilus went to to the Niger
where
several
for a friend
European
of his
father's in Lagos, thence
firms, finally the
Niger
Company
employed him as agent. He also helped negotiate some of the treaties by wHch the Company extended its sphere. In 1884 he returned to Freetown with inscribed silver plate and a gold watch from the Company, to sell cottons in Rawdon Street at Egga House, called after his depot on the Niger. Both brothers were, like their father, preachers and office-bearers in the Wesleyan Church; Theophilus built a church at Egga and preached there himself. In the villages, pastors had long been j.p.s, at Waterloo a shop-
W. Kawalley, since 1880. Hay added E. L. Auber, the French Company agent at Kent (the son ofJohn Auber, an Aku police sergeant), and the Rev. A. P. Woode, a Wesleyan minister who had served in the keeper, S.
Customs, the son of a Congo-born soldier disbanded at Waterloo. In the Sherbro, European traders had been j.p.s almost from the annexation. J. Bunting Wright, of Bendu, and W. H. Davison, a Creole trader in the Kittam, were included in 1885. Parkinson,
who had gone
Hay added J.
B.
boy from York, and was own, in the rivers, and at
to the Sherbro as a
employed by Heddle, then traded on
his
Victoria Road, Bonthe.
Major J. J. Crooks became Colonial Secretary in 1890. An Irishman, risen from the ranks through service in the Commissariat, he first came to West Africa in 1873, held offices under the Colonial government while still in the Army, and was taken on permanently after he was pensioned. An Irish Home Ruler, he was popular in the Colony
among
those
who longed
for
*Home
Rule' there.
appointment he collected the early volumes of despatches and Council minutes and sent them to the Colonial Office. They were passed on to the Public Record Office where the minute-
Soon
after
his
books up to 1830 and
Leone Company letter-book were kept; were sent back to the Colony. 1895 he retained liis interest in past records, and a Sierra
the rest, duplicated there,
After he retired in
published 1903 a
two
much
liistories
of Sierra Leone, a concise survey in 1900, and in 1925 he brought out a compilation from
fuller account. In
the records of the Royal African Corps.
494
The
produced another
Secretariat
in 1902
College, he entered
historian,
A Durham
took the name Esu Biyi).
government
Claude George (who
Bay
graduate of Fourah
service in 1892 after experience in
Lewis's office and teaching, rising to be ist Clerk, Secretariat.
He made
use of official archives and a wide range of published sources to v^ite
The Rise of British West Africa, published in 1903, quoting from some Sierra Leone Company Letter and Entry Books that have since vanished. Written in
a flowing,
Macaulay-esque
style, his
book
more
gives a
view of the early history of the Colony than Crooks's, but it is well put together, and stops after Sir Neil Campbell's governorship.
discursive less
Trade revived in the late i88os. Though the prices paid for produce remained low, the volume of exports from the pacified Sherbro and
Customs
Gallinas increased.
The
receipts rose too, in 189 1 ^70,000, a record.
Imperial loan of 1877 was at
freed
last
from parsimonious Treasury
money
Large businesses with
paid
and Colonial expenditure
control.
to spend
the recovery. European firms began
were the
moving up
first
to benefit
from
the Sherbro rivers;
opened at Port Loko, cutting out smaller Creole was revised, wharfage dues abohshed, and a
Fisher and Randall rivals. In
off,
1890 the
tariff
wider range of imports dutied instead. This too benefited the large importers with wharfage gone steamships put in at the rate of almost one a day. Small traders and retailers, who had to pay more for im:
ported wares, complained. Hay, and
were unsympathetic. Deploring petty traders, they
by larger
welcomed
rivals into
Hemming
at the
(in traditional style)
Colonial Office, the
number of
the prospect of their being squeezed out
something 'more useful to the community at
large*.
Weekly News leader observed, which gave Creoles a sense of loyalty to the Crown conquered peoples could never feel, British birth, as a
also
gave them a sense of the recognition the
Crown owed
them.
By
was a permanent invalid, too ill to attend Legislative Council; Lewis was constantly away on legal business in England and along the Coast; Sawyerr alone remained to voice local the late 18 80s Syble Boyle
feelings.
W.
Blanshard Marke, a stationer in Garrison Street, S.
to put grievances before
of petitions. artisans,
by A.
Wesley an
Hebron, organized the Central Political government in the traditional form Though the members were mostly small shopkeepers and
minister, assisted
Medium
later a
their
petitions
(particularly
495
against
the
1890
tariff)
were
supported. Hay, frightened they
influentially
asked about
him
in
would
get questions
Parhament, behttled them to the Colonial Office
in the usual gubernatorial style, so their representations
were ignored,
or treated with suspicion.
At the time of the Centenary celebrations it was suggested in Freetown trial by jury be restored in civil cases. Hay was inclined to approve. At the Colonial Office there was a tendency to see juries as instruments of policy: Hemming's reaction was recalling a case ten years earlier
when a jury had
acquitted a defaulting
official.
In 1889
again in Legislative Council. But the Crawford
Sawyerr
had sympathy for Sierra Leone juries. Lewis advised European lessened against the change; so did Hay. A Jury Ordinance passed in 1890 did nothing to redress the community's grievance. The qualification was extended from propertyowners to the literate; the Police Magistrate, not the Sheriff, was empowered to empanel; the right of challenge was reduced; and the raised
it
trial
of unanimity again substituted for the two-thirds majority verdicts that had condemned Crawford. rule
A
group of Creole business
men formed
the Sierra
Leone Printing
and Publishing Company in 1890, putting up ;£soo to start another weekly. The Sierra Leone Times, to rival the Weekly News. J. A. Fitzjohn, the former Postmaster's son, educated in England, edited it, contributing a regular feature headed 'One Thing and Another' where he aired
his forceful, idiosyncratic views.
The Weekly News, with Blyden
a regular contributor,
tended to
approve anything distinctively African, and deplored slavish imitation
of European ways. Fitzjohn preferred them. His paper not only denounced surviving recaptive customs but poured scorn on the *unwashed aborigines', the 'nasal badge' people who flocked in from up country. Yet
than
its
it
rival,
was
in
one way more responsible
to the community anonymous letters on Church of outlook the two remained friendly,
in refusing malicious
matters. Despite differences
avoiding the mutual recriminations early editors practised.
Case brought out another short-lived ^yeekly, The Trader in 1891 and up to 1899 occasional numbers of his Artisan. Sawycrr's press published Saturday Ho! from 1 891-6, a magazine rather than a newspaper, meant to encourage people to read more widely. It scriaHzed Scott's luanhoe;
Abayomi Cole
contributed a 496
news-summary
in
Arabic
for
Muslim
women from
readers. Articles in
out of lying
it
were
said to
have shamed market-
length in the street while a friend picked
full
lice
their hair.
still mistrusted lest it bring back the House and Land Tax, was favoured at the Colonial Office, largely as a way of relieving Colonial revenue of municipal expenditure. In the Colony there were many ready to welcome it as a measure of self-government,
Municipal government,
so long as
it
did not oppress the poor, feeling
city should leave
drawn up
its affairs
in 1890.
It
provided for
a
it
discreditable that a large
A Municipality
Ordinance was City Council with a majority of
to outsiders.
government nominees, with power to levy rates and sell up defaulters. Such an Ordinance gave no satisfactorion to those who sought self-government; those
who
feared taxes declared
it
merely
a
dis-
Land Tax Ordinance. After long discussion in the Hay agreed to abandon it. A Committee, which included
guised House and press,
Lewis and Sawyerr, began slowly drafting another.
Yet the municipal principle, so feared when combined with taxawas deeply rooted in a Colony where unofficially elected headmen had so long ruled the villages. At Kissy the village elders actually took the name 'Kissy Town Council' in the 1870s. At Waterloo, where the Seventeen Nations was languishing, the pastor tried to revive it in its old form in 1886, with national representatives. But several nations no longer survived; a special Creole group had to be incorporated for those who had lost ancestral feelings. By 1889 there was a 'Waterloo Association', by 1895 a 'Town Council', as well as the old Sevention,
teen Nations.
Early in 1891 three elderly
Municipality
Bill,
Amara of Foulah Towoi, since
I.
Aku
recap tives
James Benjamin,
Charles
decided to revive the
who had
opposed the
Pyne and Alimami
Aku
kingship, vacant
B. Pratt died, to restore the glories of what they remembered
golden age of King Macaulay. So King Macaulay's son, George Metzger Macaulay, in and out of government service, now a small trader, was conducted on horseback along Padcmba Road, through enthusiastic crowds, to the bush at George Water, long sacred, and installed with a sceptre as Chief Leader, not just of the Aku, but of all as the
the people.
Some
educated Creoles mocked, but his installation stirred popular
feeling; Blyden,
on
a visit
from Monrovia, acclaimed 497
it
as a step
self-reliance. The government saw only an attempt up an unconstitutional authority. Macaulay was refused official recognition; an Ordinance was passed against impersonating magi-
towards national to set
strates, lest title
he assume jurisdiction over
his
new
subjects. His
empty
conferred no real power; he died eight years later without having
restored his father's
kingdom. So while the government urged an
unwilling people to accept municipal administration,
it
rejected the
municipal administration they desired.
There was
little
between Creole Muslims and Christians. compatriots to instal Macaulay. William Fourah Bay Muslim, was a founder member
hostility
Amara joined with
his
Aku
Cole ('Daddy Ajalay'), a of the Kissy Road Association. Christians contributed to building Mountain Cut mosque, Foulah Town, in 1883, Foulah Town Muslims towards repairing Ebenezer Church. In 1890 the Foulah joined in post-Ramadan prayers for the
first
Town
people
time with the Fourah
Bay community. The immigrant Muslims however prayed
apart.
Nevertheless Muslims were cut off from the community, if only
because they feared to send their cliildren to Colony schools
Thomas
lest
they
Bay Alimami Haruna Fourah Bay, of was a rare College by exception. So was Harun al-Rashid, educated at the Grammar School (as Henry Valesius King), who continued his studies at Futa Jalon and Fez, going thence to Mecca, the first pilgrim from the Colony. On his be converted. Gheirawani (or
George), sent to Fourah
his father
return with the pilgrim's
title
Al-Haji he taught Arabic for a year at
Fourah Bay College, then was
a private teacher until his death in
1897.
Sunter reported about twenty small Koranic schools in Freetown.
On
instructions
from the Colonial
Office
Hay
communities, in 1890, to apply for government
persuaded the Muslim aid, hitherto
only given
to Christian schools. A Muslim school was opened at Pratt's Farm, Fourah Bay (I. B. Pratt's escheated property), government providing
premises, giving a grant towards teachers' salaries and inspecting.
Gheirawani was
and
in charge.
Blyden, long
a
bridge between Muslims
Christians, taught the senior pupils during his visits to Freetown.
No
Freetown Muslim prospered hkc Mohamcd Shitta, born at Waterloo of Aku parents who took him to Badagry in 1844. He traded in the Upper Niger, and devoted much of his large fortiuic to religion, giving a roof when the Fourah Bay mosque was rebuilt in 1892, and at 498
home
in
Lagos building
rewarded
his liberality
a
mosque
with
for ^4,000.
a decoration
The
and the
Sultan of Turkey
title
Bey.
After 1864 only one ocean-going ship, the Ovarense, seized in 1877 by an over-zealous police officer, was prosecuted for slave-trading. She was restored with heavy damages and costs which the British Treasury
had
The expenses of
to pay.
the Liberated African Department,
still
defrayed from England, dwindled to pensions to a few aged recaptives,
and maintaining children rescued from slavery at Charlotte School, managed until 1882 by the c.M.s., then by the Colonial government. The Treasury wanted to be rid of these small commitments, but not a sinecure clerkship,
until
1
891,
with solvency restored, could the Colony afford to assume
them. Then the Liberated African Department was wound up, Charlotte School closed, and the recaptive sick maintained in hospital from the same funds
Colonial poor. Pensions of 2d a day were
as the
still
paid from
Colonial funds to fifty- two surviving indigent recaptives, thirty men,
twenty- two women, until they died. The last payment was made in 1922.
During the
18 80s the French
took up the policy considered
Colonial Office in 1873 of restricting the import of arms
Rowe
fp.
at the
398).
proposed joining with them and the Portuguese to forbid
importation concertedly. But the Foreign Office declined to take part, suspecting the other nations British trade
would
suffer,
would enforce and
the prohibition laxly, that
they be incessantly plagued
by vexa-
tious correspondence.
French writers were indignant about a British government that paid chiefs stipends to
buy arms
at British shops.
The French government
complained of Samori's buying arms in Freetown. Hay retorted that he dealt chiefly with French shopkeepers.
Leopold
II
summoned
the Brussels Conference in 1889, to discuss
principally international cooperation
The
to suppress
the African slave
of the General Act of July 1890 also promised to restrict the sale of arms and spirits in tropical Africa. The Colonial Office was unwilling to enforce it. As Hemming observed, restricting the sale of arms did little to stop the slave trade, but gave great advantage to European governments which were seeking to conquer West African empires by force. He also feared to antagonize Samori. trade.
signatories
499
So not
until 1892
was
a Sierra
Leone Ordinance passed forbidding
of precision arms to any but licensed persons who guaranteed not to re-sell, and providing that flintlock guns, and the 'trade powder' used to fire them, be imported into agreed
(as
at Brussels) the sale
government warehouses, only withdrawn held if the Governor saw
for sale
under
licence,
Members of the Liverpool Chamber of Commerce with West interests,
with-
fit.
driven by foreign competition to cooperate and seek
African official
support, formed an African Trade Section in 1884. Underlying the
government was the assumption and that if foreigners were to blame. intruded. Colonial and Foreign OflTice Matacong Island passed from Isaacs' s heirs to a limited Company which found an unsuspecting firm to give them a mortgage and went bankrupt immediately. Left in possession, the mortgagor leased it in 1 891 to Taylor, Laughland, a Glasgow firm long in the Oil Rivers, protests they addressed regularly to
that Africa
and
its
trade should
by
rights be British,
which sent out an agent. He hoisted the Union Jack. The French removed it. He objected and they turned him off the island. When he sought government's aid he was told Matacong and the Northern Rivers had been French since 1882. In December 1891 a formidable deputation representing Liverpool, Manchester, London, Birmingham and Glasgow business interests (and including Cornelius
May
of the Weekly News and the Rev. James
Johnson), met at the Colonial Office. They protested that they knew nothing of the 1882 Convention (never officially ratified), that govern-
ment had thrown away the Northern Rivers and would lose the whole Sierra Leone hinterland unless Samori's offer was accepted. Knutsford answered shortly that they came too late, that the French all he could do was fix abandon differential duties. A Times article recalled that governments had only been consistently following the 1865 policy, and blamed the trading interests, now protesting, for having prevented the Gambia being exchanged for
already controlled the interior, and that boundaries, and try to get
them
to
the Northern Rivers.
The
provincial press answered back, angrily denouncing 'the British
of West Africa', blaming official lethargy for continuing pohcy most traders had welcomed a generation earlier when government mtcrfcrencc, now demanded, was resented. Scuttle out
the
500
XX 432), was elected KEBALAI, who organized Bokari's wars Small with (p.
Scarcies, of Kasse, received a stipend had Kasse Since Bai Bureh. 1871
for his mihtary prowess, chief
the
title
from the Colony. Bai Bureh,
as a treaty chief,
accepted his obligations
to the Governor, agreed, for instance, to refer a land dispute
neighbour Bai Yinka to Hay, fighting the
Limba
in 1890.
with
his
who decided against him. Karimu was still
They sought Bai Bureh's help and he joined
them, pleased to come in on what appeared to be the Colony's side. Hay, trying to bring peace to the protected area, refused to countenance a war which he feared might spread across the Scarcies into
went and persuaded the unwilling Limba his way back he met Bai Bureh who was indignant at his allies making peace without him. Garrett called this defiance, and arrested him, to bring him to Freetown to explain himself French
territory. Garrett
and Loko not to
When
fight.
On
they entered the Kasse chiefdom Bai Bureh,
who
felt
it
monstrous he should be arrested for fighting the Colony's wars, stepped into a
doorway and
escaped. Garrett, with only a tiny police
dared not try to recapture him.
escort,
fighting continued in the Sanda country,
As
^Frontiers' (as the ranks
April
1
of the Frontier Police were
a
party of forty
called)
was
sent in
89 1 to restore peace, and the prestige lost through Bai Bureh's
They marched as far as Tambi (or Tembe), high up the Small Scarcies, where some of Karimu's followers (or, in the official phrase used for them, 'freebooters') were believed stockaded. Remembering
escape.
how Parkes had burnt one
of their towns they refused to open the gate. officers were wounded, a private was The shot (accidentally, from behind), the rocket trough jammed, and Moore decided to retire. Hay and Parkes, both on leave in England, wanted an Frontiers attacked.
The two
immediate punitive expedition to restore
of the
rains prevented
lost prestige.
But the onset
it.
The Boundary Commission agreed on in Paris in 1889 started work in December 1891 on the understanding that the whole upper Niger basin must be French. The British Commissioners, Captain A. H. 501
;
Kenney,
r.e.,
an experienced surveyor, and Major Lamprey, an
Army
doctor long on the Coast, were accompanied by a botanist, G. F. Scott-Elliot, sent at the special request
report was printed for Parliament.
of the
When
Kew. His work in the
authorities at
they started
were told Karimu's followers had dispersed. Tambi, however, was still occupied (according to Kenney, by runaway slaves) Moore pined to avenge his repulse and an expedition was sanctioned. Hay was promoted to the Barbados late in 1891. Crooks, actingGovernor, was on leave when the expedition set out. Government devolved on Sir William Quayle-Jones, a loquacious, ambitious Chief Justice, knighted (the first knighted judge in Sierra Leone) after ten years West African service. Feeling himself the heir of Rowe and Hay he accompanied the expedition. While the expedition delayed, a force of impatient Limba and Loko raided Karimu's allies in the Bena country across the Scarcies in the Scarcies they
French sphere.
To
reassure the French, Quayle-Jones
made
all
the lead-
ing Scarcies chiefs, including Bai Bureh, promise not to cross the Scarcies in
war again.
With
a para-military Frontier Police, there was no need for regular But the War Office supplied a Maxim gun and a staff officer, Major Browne, who had helped against the Yoni. Browne made a reconnaissance, declared his opponents beneath contempt, and promised to annihilate Tambi in ten minutes. 168 Frontiers under seven officers reached it on March the 14th. Browne had underestimated the distance so they arrived exhausted; he had been told Tambi stood isolated in a clearing, but found it hidden in a thicket. They fired rockets, and the defenders extinguished the fires. A seven-pounder gun made no impression on the town gate; Captain Robinson, r.e., tried to blow it up with gun cotton and was shot dead. The defenders kept up a steady fire. The attacking officers were all wounded. The Police seemed disinclined to assault, so Moore beat another retreat. Browne, severely wounded,
troops.
straight home to England. Moore determined on a third onslaught
went
to restore his men's prestige.
Quayle-Jones, who backed him, would not admit they could have been beaten by an African enemy, and wrote accusing the French government of having drilled, if not actively supervised, the Tambi garrison, a baseless charge he had subsequently to retract. Rather than
undergo the humiliation of asking for regular troops, they swallowed of asking Bai Bureh to help them.
their pride to the extent
502
But
the
War
Office, rather than risk a third repulse, telegraphed to
Colonel A. B. Elhs,
now commanding
the troops, to take charge.
took 500 men of the ist West India Regiment and advanced on Tambi with the Frontiers. Bai Bureh's forces accompanied them:
He
Quayle-Jones feared he would take offence join
in.
On
Bai Bureh's
April the 7th they stormed the
men
supporting the attack
if
he was not allowed to
town without
difficulty,
as a disciplined force,
very
from the usual mob of looting 'friendlies*. Promotion had not lessened Ellis's malice: shortly before the expedition his publishers lost an action against a trader he had libelled in his West African Stories, In his reports on Tambi he took all the credit for his ov^oi regiment. Thus the Frontiers were doubly humiliated, prevented from restoring their lost prestige themselves, and denied different
recognition for their part in the fighting.
Alfred Lewis Jones was a Liverpool
West
Welshman who
Africa as a cabin boy. Returned, he
shipping
office,
working
his
way up
became
first
went
to
clerk in a Liverpool
to controlling partner in Elder
Dempster, absorbing the African Steamship Co. and the British and African Steam Navigation Co. Ceaselessly energetic, he looked beyond shipping, revived the decaying Canary Islands by bringing the banana to the British breakfast table, and sought to develop West Africa. He ov^^ed the Sierra Leone Coaling Company, a trading as well as coaling concern. Nor was his enterprise limited by immediate profit, for he was ready to help young Africans to rise in the world as
he had.
Samori caught
his
imagination: the Coaling
the Sofas arms to fight the French.
policy (which his friend
He was
Hemming was
unable to
abandon Samori, and the trade he controlled, Captain Williams, the Coaling
him
Company
Company supphed
enraged
at
government's
alter).
Rather than
to the French, he sent
agent, to
make
a treaty
with
January 1892. Samori readily gave Jones a concession, not merely to build roads and railways, but coin money and levy taxes in his dominions. He also gave a magnificent black ostrich which in
Jones presented to the Queen.
who
was observed at the Colonial Office), seemed to prefer placating the French to wimiing votes in Liverpool or Manchester, could not allow a private firm to support Samori in war against France. Jones was warned that if he sent another mission it Salisbury
(it
503
would be prevented leaving Freetown under the Arms Restriction Ordinance. Thus he was forced to abandon his dream of empire in the West African interior.
The
Anglo-French
Boundary
Commissioners
quarrelled
before
they had finished surveying the Scarcies. Each blamed the other, and
who
the French gave up. Kenney,
were seeking
a pretext to
suspected his French colleagues
avoid entering Sofa territory, went on alone
to the Niger. His survey extended
from the Atlantic
at
Mahela
to
Farana (and included that famous locality the destroyed village of
Thence he went to see Kemo Bilale, the Sofa general Heremakono, within the British sphere. Everywhere he found people believed that the Elder Dempster mission
Passin-no-dia). at
implied the British belief,
allied
with the Sofas. The French encouraged the chiefs to join them. Sayu of Kaliere,
and urged the frightened
near Falaba, went over. Limba chiefs began closing the road to keep the
from Freetown where, if precision arms were no longer availstill buy flintlocks and trade powder'. On Kenney's return to Freetown Quayle-Jones set out for Heremakono, first extorting consent from the Colonial Office by sending incomprehensible telegrams. He reassured the chiefs, who opened the road again. Sayu came and apologized; police were stationed at Kaliere. Kemo promised not to molest the inhabitants of the British Sofas
able,
they could
*
sphere, or use
Heremakono as a war-base.
The Congo
Free State opened a market for indentured labour to
build railways and public works. After 1885 labourers were recruited regularly
from the immigrants who flocked
to
Freetown from up
country. Private contractors shipped them, but contracts were
made
before a magistrate. Thus an appearance of oflicial sanction was given
what seemed to some dubious exploitation. A. T. Porter shipped labourers regularly to the Congo. The son of an Afro-West-Indian who was manager at Kent in the 1830s, and a to
Maroon mother, he had Wharf, below Kissy military installations. sanction, to
In
1
built
up
a flourishing business at Gibraltar
Street, contracting for building materials for the
He
also shipped labourers,
without government
Fernando Po.
89 1 there were complaints that
504
Congo
labourers were being
ill-
went to investigate and found them dissatisfied. But it was shown that some of their complaints were exaggerated so the Colonial Office unwillingly made no official protest. Porter went on shipping labourers. In 1893 he was appointed Consular Agent for the treated. Porter
Congo Free State. The West African Hotel having come stone hotel in Wilberforce Street in
modelled on what he had seen on his with a European manageress to run it.
Colin Rosenbush gave up (p.
383) for high
to an end, he built a large
1892, Porter's Royal Hotel,
visits to
his step-father's
England and Belgium,
loan bank in Water Street
fmance in London, where during the i88os he made West African bank. In 1889 he returned to
several attempts to float a
Freetown (hyphenating his mother's name as Rosenbush-Graham), managing director of the West African Bank Ltd., with headquarters in London. The Freetown branch was on the north-east corner of George and Oxford Streets (where the bank vault may still be seen). He revived the Commercial Association (often revived under different names, and as often defunct), but could not get the larger firms to
who
with him, and the Association collapsed. His directors in London too turned against him. He was
join.
Those
superseded,
did, quarrelled
and
left for Liberia,
in 1892 the
West African Bank was
wound up.
A
more durable Chamber of Commerce was organized
in 1892,
outnumbered by Creole members. was elected first president, Lewis secretary was engaged, Norman Roberts, Matacong. They met at Tinubu House,
the European firms joining, though
Wilham
Pittendrigh, P.Z.'s agent,
vice-president.
who had
A
full-time
been in trade
at
Gloucester Street.
Like the Liverpool and Manchester Chambers they tended to be
of official policy. Their own proposals were usually confined government to greater economy and protesting against any change in the existing fiscal system. suspicious
to exhorting the
During the
1
890s
West Coast
traders
before an indifferent English public, fighter
who wandered alone swamp mud,
sweeping the 821613
found an enthusiastic champion
Mary
Kingsley. This courageous
through the bush, her thick serge seeking rare 505
fish,
skirts
invcstigatmg African Kk
— religion
and customs, and fmding infinite amusement, constituted spokesman of 'the heroes of commerce' as she termed a
herself the class
more
for the
known
usually
official
as
*palm
oil ruffians'.
not know, that her heroes had once welcomed school of Burton, Reade and
st)de, in the
She had only contempt
policy adopted since 1865 (and either concealed, or did
with a devastating
ridicule
it).
Ellis,
Her
cut
witty, slashing
down opponents
which concealed knowledge and experience
ofWest Africa of a kind seldom printed before. The historian, however, need not always accept the opinions, even though he admires the style, of a writer who said she 'would not be seen dead in the same street with
Historians'.
She only passed through Freetown without making any stay though chanced, in 1893, to strike a day when locusts invaded the
Colony as they had not since Mrs Melville described them in 1841. Like Reade she saw the Creoles at first through Burton's contemptuous eyes, but like him grew ultimately to sympathize more with them.
Macfoy extended
his plantations to the
in Imperi, virtually his,
way he his
on
mainland, clearing and planting
a large scale.
Where
villages stood in his
evicted the occupiers and destroyed the houses.
employees dug up the burial ground for
Frontier Police tried to stop
him
At Gangama
a plant nursery.
When
the
evicting without a court order, he
answered that Imperi was British and that if they wanted to stop him they must take proper legal proceedings. After the Tongo Players left Imperi, murders began again, in June 1
89 1.
The
Frontier Police could do nothing; the Early
Dawn
protested
government which refused its new subjects protection. went to ask Captain Soden, the Frontier officer call back the Tongo Players. When he refused them let to Imperi, in they said they would recall them whether he let them or no. Soden was nervous, unsuited to lonely responsibilities. Soon after, he left the angrily against a
The indignant
chiefs
without having reported the chiefs' defiance to his superiors. Ba Shia, Ka Tegbe and the Imperi chiefs then summoned Neppo,
service,
the famous
from Taiama to detect the murderers. A At least a hundred, including Ba Shia, human leopards, were tied up till their relatives paid
Tongo
Player,
terrible holocaust followed.
were
seized as
Neppo
a fine,
then burnt to death.
The burnings took place at Bogo near the house where a Frontier detachment was stationed. Obedient to strict orders not to interfere 506
with ^domestic institutions', they did nothing. Two constables, a Mende and a Temne, even joined in the dances that accompanied the burning. A Creole Sub-Inspector, N. H. Sawyerr, passed through in
November. He saw
gruesome pyre, and reported how the aged Ba had begged his help, but that he had been obliged
the
Shia, awaiting death,
to refuse.
Captain Lendy, transferred to the Frontier Police, acting InspectorGeneral, suppressed his report as reflecting discredit
government remained
on
the force.
ignorant until January 1892
officially
So
when
Macfoy complained to Freetown of these illegal atrocities, taking place on British soil, apparently with official connivance. Garrett was appointed manager, Shcrbro, in 1891. He hated Macfoy, believed he was trying to make himself a real Monarch in defiance of government, and was convinced that he was behind the murders. Thus he supposed the Tongo Players, brought in to detect murderers, Macfoy's enemies. Touring Imperi he saw Neppo and his men, got them to put on their Tongo dress and photographed them (there is a print in Alldrige's A Transformed Colony), without comment on their activities.
Lacking evidence of Macfoy's having done anything
he suggested he be detained to
as a political prisoner.
Bonthe to investigate, and, if need be, arrest Macfoy. The day he arrived in Bonthe, Macfoy arrived in Freetown
Lewis, his lawyer.
When
Quayle-Jones returned, Lewis
report to the Executive Council.
murders were committed
made
to see
a special
was generally supposed leopard body to make
to secure parts of the victim's
medicine. Alldridge, writing
which had
It
illegal,
Quayle-Jones went
later,
with
described a medicine, Borfima,
human
fat (though this has been power. Lewis observed that the Imperi victims' bodies were unmutilated. He therefore assumed (like Garrett) the murders were pohtical, but that Macfoy 's enemies had instigated them
to be annointed
denied) to give
to be revenged
on Ghana Bunje, Ba Shia and
mortgaged him after the
Bogo
it
their land.
burnings).
the other chiefs
who had
(Ka Tegbe, spared by Neppo, died soon
He
did not mention that the chiefs, though
they had originally mortgaged to Macfoy, had subsequently defied
him (p.
491).
felt he had no case for detaining Macfoy, even agreed he might be legally justified in evicting his Imperi tenants. Lewis then visited Imperi with Macfoy to report further: on his return he accused the Frontier officers of having con-
After this report Quayle-Jones
nived
at the burnings.
The manager, Waterloo, was 507
sent to investigate.
His report seemed to imply they had let the burnings go on in the hope of suppressing murders they could not suppress themselves. Neppo and his assistants had meanwhile been brought to Bonthe. Garrett was ordered to send them to Freetown for trial, and to issue a Proclamation warning Tongo Players to leave the country. Convinced Macfoy was guilty, and that Neppo was his enemy, he pretended to believe the second order superseded the for trial soil
he
let
the perpetrator
of at
Instead of sending
Neppo
hundred murders on
British
first.
least a
depart quietly up country.
Suddenly Macfoy had
a paralytic stroke and was brought to Freeby Dr Davies. Discouraged by the protracted medical treatment his fiery energy was too impatient to submit to, his relatives took him to a country doctor in Grassfields. There, on January
town
to be treated
the i6th 1893, died *Sherbro Monarch', aged
than loved, alarming even to those
who
fifty, a
man
feared rather
admired him, an undeniable
if ruthless witruess to the ^native energy' latent in the Creoles.
In the Sierra Leone
Church laymen went on contesting
their pastor's
authority. Class leaders felt entitled to settle disputes within the con-
gregation, like discipline
by
Company headmen, and
objected to his exercising
virtue of his priestly office. There
were angry
disputes
over the custody of Church funds. In 1885 the Church Committee
some
directed that lay treasurers take charge, but
Gradually people
pastors resisted.
denying themselves to support the
lost interest in
dwindled — inevitably time of commercial low — 1888 Church funds were too to pay stipends. depression and by
Pastorate. Contributions
at a
Church Conference held that January, T.J. Sawycrr begged the more restrained, the laity more charitable. To his appeal the suggestion (made recently in England by Bishop Bickeradded he steth of Exeter), that the Church would root itself more deeply in Africa if it relaxed the rule of monogamy for native converts. The audience welcomed his defence of polygamy, upheld by example and precept in the Old Testament, and, it could be argued, not forbidden in the New Some even proposed it might well be extended to the Colony, 'and make us all honest men', as one Churchman frankly At
a
pastors to be
remarked.
The
c.M.s. representative at the Conference,
and the Parent
Com-
mittee in London, were horrified. Rather than seem to coiuitcnance
such suggestions, they
made Sawyerr 508
resign
from the Church Finance
Committee. Thus the Church lost the services of its most generous and champion. The financial crisis was eventually solved by the bishop starting a special appeal fiind which raised enough to pay
influential
stipends.
The Articles of Agreement, the Sierra Leone Church constitution, made the pastors subordinate to Bishop and Church Council, rather as a
missionary to his society. In 1879 Bishop and Council deprived a
pastor for immorality and drunkenness.
He
questioned their authority.
Investigation proved that in the confusion caused
by the
first
bishops*
deaths the c.m.s. had neglected to have the Articles legally validated. So, though the accused did not try to enforce his rights in the courts, it
was showTi
that the pastors
were not
subject to local discipline.
Ingham and the Church Council declared they had the power, given them by the Articles of Agreement, to move pastors from one village to another, and ordered the Rev. Moses Taylor to move from Waterloo where he had been for twenty years. He refused, alleging that Ingham, a 'laymen's bishop' was merely trying to help hostile members of his congregation get rid of him. When Ingham withdrew his licence to preach he took legal advice from Lewis, and In 1887 Bishop
appealed to the Archbishop of Canterbury under the Letters Patent of
1852 constituting the Bishopric.
admitted
his right to appeal,
the pastors had the same sort
The Archbishop's
holding
of status
legal
that, as the Articles as
were
advisors invalid,
clergymen in England. Rather
than incur the expense and humiliation of a lawsuit, Ingham restored the hcence.
had no authority over his own clergy, a bitter personal degradation. He was determined not to accept the status of an English bishop and let his clergy defy his orders, ignore (as some were doing) his known personal wishes by introducing surpliced choirs and choral services, which he abominated. So he and a committee of clergy and laity drew up revised Articles, subjecting the pastors to local discipline, to be legally validated as a Church Constitution. Even his powers in the Cathedral seemed insecure. In 1890 the Chief Justice declared he believed the Governor was, by law, Dean and Chapter and that the bishop had no right to interfere with the services. This view, submitted to the Colonial Office, was found wrong. Ingham, confirmed in his jurisdiction over the Cathedral, strengthened it by creating two canons, the Rev. Samuel Spain, and the Rev. John Taylor Smith, who came out from a London curacy with the title
Ingham
felt this
ruling that he
'canon missioner'. 509
The
c.M.s.
new
approved the
Articles in 1890; next year
called the pastors to sign them. Five refused
Ingham
—Taylor, G.J. Macaulay of
Kissy, that formidable controversialist, noted for his powerful letters
of Wellington, Moses Pearce of Christ Church, Pademba Road, and H. P. Thompson of Benguema. They insisted on their right to continue under the constitution they had been appointed under. Unable to force them to sign, or deprive them for to the press, S. G. Hazeley
refusing,
He
Ingham was
yet determined to assert authority over them.
persuaded the c.M.s., which
and parsonages, only let to the Leone Church paying the costs)
still
owned
the freeholds of churches
pastors, to take legal action (the Sierra
to eject the recalcitrant five.
Lewis, the pastors' counsel, protracted the suits from year to year. Delay was to his clients' advantage. The c.M.s. suggested compromise; prominent Creole laymen offered to mediate. Ingham remained adamant though he risked dividing the Church. In the Niger diocese
—
Archdeacon Crowther (the bishop's son) was defying the c.M.s., starting a Niger Delta Pastorage on his own responsibility. Macaulay declared he considered Kissy an independent Pastorate.
Meanwhile the Rev. Nathaniel Boston, a Durham graduate of Fourah Bay College, ordained in 1880, employed as a missionary on the Bulom Shore, was embroiled with the Sierra Leone Church Missionary Association, which had taken the mission stations over
from the
c.M.s. His defiance
of the Association was believed
really
Ingham who had prevented him sitting on the Church Committee. The case was brought into the courts, where the Association got an injunction to prevent him officiating. Ingham then charged him with immorality, proposing to hear the case in his own court. Lewis, Boston's counsel, contested his right to hear cases at all. The judgement of the Supreme Court, that the bishop could only hear directed at
ecclesiastical,
not criminal,
cases,
stopped further proceedings.
the Association brought an action to eject Boston
parsonage
at
Yongru, Lewis
won
the case
on
from
his
When
church and
a technicality, so
he
stayed.
The Five Pastors' congregations divided for or against them. At Benguema the bishop's party left the church in 1892 and built their own. Though the pastors roused some sympathy as martyrs and were legally justified, defiance
enemies in their
At
Kissy,
of the 'laymen's bishop' exposed them
to their
own congregations.
where
the people at
first
supported Macaulay, the quarrel
over church funds broke out again in June 1894. Most 510
left
the church
— and held
Church Committee (Ingham was
services in the market, the
on leave) sending them a pastor to taking the law into their
own
officiate.
Encouraged, they began
hands, stoned the parsonage and
Macaulay's adherents' houses, and barred up the church door to keep him out. The police did nothing to stop the rioters who roused the village,
drumming on kerosene tins singing 'Macaulay go go, Let us watch and pray
And
labour
till
the Bishop come.'
December Ingham returned, and went at once to preach to his supporters at Kissy. The following Friday they mobbed the parsonage, In
turned out Macaulay and his family, killed a bullock and feasted, ringing out the pastor with a funeral chime from his
own
church
tower.
At
this
moment Lewis
got a judgement for one of the pastors against
At Benguema the bishop's party and drove Thompson out. Hazeley left Wellington of his own accord to prevent a riot. Taylor and Pearce stayed put, but part of the Waterloo congregation seceded under the Rev. Pythias Williams, back from the Niger Mission, who opened a rival church, and many left Christ Church for the Cathedral. The lawless, unedifying climax of the Five Pastors' case, so long protracted, so publicized in courts and press, damaged the Sierra Leone Church immeasurably. Many seceded to the Wesleyans. An implacable the c.M.s.
But law was
barred the church,
bishop, restraint,
obstinate
set aside.
as at Kissy,
pastors,
unruly congregations,
each lacking
in
disappointed the high hopes with which the Pastorate was
Ingham blamed the C.M.s. for ever starting it: opinion in Freetown accused him of trying to wreck it. The bond of gratitude and affection linking the Colony with the c.M.s. was weakened while published C.M.s. reports ascribed difficulties at Lagos and in the Niger Mission to Creole influence. It was even decided no more Creoles be employed there to train teachers, lest their corrupting infection mar the converts' native simplicity. Thus even the c.M.s. adopted the doctrines of their enemy Sir Richard Burton. Though educated Creoles explained that their self-assertion was a inaugurated.
—
own sowing, it was not the less frowned on. by the two generations of 'native agents' bred in the Colony, Ingham went home to recruit Afro-Wcst-Indians to work up country.
plant of the missionaries' Dissatisfied
In 1894 he published Sierra Leone
after a :5ii
Hundred
Years, largely
composed
of extracts from John Clarkson's diary (lent him by the family), Sierra Leone Company reports and early mission records, with an account of the present state of the Colony appended. The century appears something of a disappointment. Yet that year died, aged about lOO, Matthew Thomas Harding, a Gola, recaptured in 1810, converted by During, baptized by Johnson, educated at Regent at the Christian Institution, the originator of the first Christian Company (p. 202), who was employed as a village teacher until 1852, when he retired with a long-enjoyed pension. However imperfect Church and Colony in 1894, the century his life spanned was a period any body of missionaries might have been justly proud of.
Quayle-Jones explained to the Secretary of State
how
important
it
Governor who, like Rowe and Hay (and, as he stressed, himself), was not afraid of exertions up country. Opinion and hint were ignored. Sir Francis Fleming, who came out in May 1892 with twenty-three years legal and administrative experience in the quieter colonies, was disinclined to exert himself in the bush. Poor health and the attractions of a newly-wedded wife tended to tether him to Freetown. Though he and Lady Fleming paid ceremonial visits to the Banana Islands and Bonthe, he only once ventured any distance up country, in March 1893 for a few days, to meet a gathering of chiefs at Bandasuma. Alldridge, who arranged the meeting, included in The Sherbro and Its Hinterland a photograph of the diminutive Governor enthroned there in full uniform on a kitchen chair, a leopard skin at his feet, and at a distance an admiring crowd. Freetown, which had seen no Governor's lady since Mrs Havelock, welcomed the gracious pacific pair. ;(^3CX) was voted to repair Government House, fallen into decay in male hands (despite regular annual grants for repair, made even in the depression years of the 18 80s).
was
to appoint a
The Flemings
entered
flowery speeches, where
up
for
whole-heartedly into
social
activities.
elevated rhetoric and lavish promises
any lack of practical content,
won
high
praise.
He
His
made
revised the
Standing Orders of Legislative Council, turning what had remained
of a council into the debates of a legislature. He strengthened unofficial representatives by replacing old Syble Boyle, bedridden since 1887, by Daniel Jarrett, the doctor's brother. in
form the
Born
in
deliberations
Freetown, educated
at the
512
Grammar
School, Jarrett in-
herited a flourishing business
from
his
Aku
recaptive father, and was,
like him, a prominent Wesleyan. Reserved and independent, he tended to go his own way without considering the movements of popular feeling,
though joining
in political agitations
when
his
own
interests
were concerned. For years he championed the claimants for damages
whom
was his father-in-law, William Cole) against Liberia and was indignant when government, no longer needing them as a weapon to fix the boundary, compromised for a sum far below the original claims. His petitions were well known at the Colonial Office and his appointment welcomed as a muzzle for a tire(one of
(pp. 363, 431),
some critic. His term of office was short. He fell ill visiting England, where his son was at school, and died in Brixton in September 1893. Fleming restored the
civil
service
examination, and, like Hay,
recommended local promotions. When Sunter died his assistant M. J. Marke succeeded as Inspector of Schools. The unified Inspectorate of the four colonies was disjoined in 1893, and Marke given charge of Sierra Leone and the Gambia with ;;{J300 and travelling allowances. The Municipality Ordinance Lewis had been preparing was passed in February 1893. The reintroduction of a house-tax under the name of rate was avoided: the Corporation was to raise money by licensing
men and
government handing over wine and spirit, canoe and other municipal licences with the responsibihty for markets, water-supply and drainage. Twelve of the fifteen Councillors were to be elected, three appointed by government. The traders, professional
Ordinance
also
vehicles, the
provided that the Municipality levy
rates if licences
did not provide enough revenue. Thus the government escaped the responsibihty of having to impose them.
With
McCarthy was given ^JoOy on condition he give up
the Colony's fmances again stable J. A.
the full Queen's Advocate's salary, private practice.
He
also acted
Chief Justice, despite Colonial Regula-
More Creole business men were appointed j.p.s;. Lewis was awarded a c.M.G. Soon after Fleming arrived Colonel Ellis reduced labourers' wages at the barracks from 15 to gd. The labourers went on strike, intimidating those who accepted 9J, and bringing out workers all over the towm. Riot threatened and Fleming swore in 200 citizens as special constables, a mark of confidence in the community of a kind government did not often show. He broke the strike by taking strike-leaders into the police at 15 3 J. No wonder the Sierra Leone Times declared him the most popular Governor since Heimessy. tions.
513
A
Bombay merchants from Cape Town visited the Colony The Mushm community welcomed them and several, includ-
party of
in 1893.
ing the firm of J. T. Chanrai and Co., were established in Freetown
by the mid-*90s. Syrians began arriving in Freetown in the late '80s, street-traders
who
brought
nicknamed
them
and sold imitation coral beads
their families,
—hence
Respectable Creoles despised them, conceiving
'Corals'.
and quite as dirty. But customers of the well-known assortments of trade-goods,
httle better than the aborigines
up country, tired were attracted by their wares. They would go anywhere, undersell anyone, and slowly began driving less enterprising rivals from the field.
While
Colony was in debt to the Treasury the accounts were audited cursorily by G. W. Cole, the Creole audit clerk, and sent to London to be scrutinized by the Exchequer and Audit Department. When the debt was paid off, and the Treasury no longer wanted them, Cole was burdened with an audit beyond his powers. Rather than appoint the
an irresponsible local auditor
(as
in the
1870's) (pp. 369, 404), the
Colonial Office got the Exchequer and Audit Department to resume
charge in 1893, ^i^d send an experienced accountant, responsible to
London, not
to the Sierra
Mrs Ingham persuaded
Leone government.
the Colonial Bishoprics'
of the large Bishopscourt grounds
Creole ladies could be trained in nursing, in Sierra Leone.
She raised
Cottage Hospital' (called
Fund
money and
still
up part where young
to give
for a Cottage Hospital,
an unqualified profession
in 1892 the 'Princess Christian
daughter of Queen Victoria's) was
after a
opened, with a doctor and three nurses from England.
It
served the
adjoining poor, largely Muslim, neighbourhood as a mission hospital as
well
as training nurses.
Government School
After the
there (daughter of a clerk.
When
1892 several
was
first
daughter,
Ida Steinwehr, a
teacher
German
trader) was taken on as a Post Office were extended to the Colony villages in had charge of post-offices. Mrs Toboku-Metzger
postal services
women
postmistress at Kissy,
disqualify, as
closed,
it
left
would
badly
in
off,
it
being agreed that marriage should not
England. Nora Mehcux, the Sheriff's youngest
managed
P.Z.'s fancy department.
514
But, though a
through the
women
most
young lady back from England who rode a bicycle was hailed as a representative of the 'New Woman',
streets
stuck to their old occupation, petty trade. Creole girls
hawking to domestic service. Some made fortunes. Mrs Phillis Mends, left a widow in the i86os, supplemented her pay as Cathedral cleaner by selling preserved fruit, and fancy goods, from her house in Westmoreland Street, and ultimately presented her sons with a flourishing business. Madam Eliza Hedd, of Garrison Street, did a large cola trade. Mammy Martin of the Vegetable Market made enough to still
preferred
pay visits
to England.
Hay's system of scattering Frontiers over the country in small groups presupposed an adequate supply of officers to go round supervising
them. But three years
was hard to recruit two were sent home
it
(one with Delirium Tremens). vised,
suitable inspectors: within the first as unsuitable,
Many
two more
invalided
small stations remained unsuper-
even unpaid, for months on end. The Frontiers posted there did chose, neither chiefs nor people daring to thwart them.
what they
Some performed Johnson, a Creole for his services
their duties
who joined
with conspicuous
the police in 1875,
success. J.
Benoni
awarded the d.c.m.
with Crawford's expedition, promoted Sub-Inspector
in 1892, mediated
among
the
Kunike
chiefs, effecting
single-handed a
had been proposed to send a punitive expedition for. the same among the Limba. But many Frontiers, given the chance to exploit, took it. Thus when Fleming tried to extend the area under jurisdiction by cession treaties he found the chiefs unwilling, fearful of the police and of losing their slaves. At Port Loko they would sign nothing new.
pacification
it
The following year he did
So Turner's Port Loko treaty of 1825 was revived (like his Sherbro with the usual promise to respect 'domestic institutions'. Feared by the people they were supposed to be protecting, the Frontiers were disliked by Creole traders whom they were forbidden to protect. A trader maltreated by a chief could not count on them for help. Nor were European firms protected: when the Palma Trading
treaty) (p. 417),
Company's Wedaro premises were
burnt, allegedly arson, the police
declined to investigate.
Captain Lendy was promoted hispector-Gcneral in 1892.
yoimg
officer
slave-traders,
of twenty-four, whose he wanted
his
first
exploit
A
dasliing
had been against
mcii to seize and free any domestic slave 515
they believed was going to be sold. The number of freed slaves began to rise. Parkes thought
dangerous to allow the Frontiers discretionary-
it
powers in cases which more than any other alarmed the chiefs, fearful of losing their slaves. Fleming, always nervous of deciding between two opinions, referred
nant
at a
them
Governor's so
Hemming was
to the Colonial Office. tactlessly
mentioning in
a public despatch that
He
domestic slavery existed in a British sphere.
indig-
decided for Parkes;
the Frontiers were ordered only to seize slaves actually in transit.
Parkes also passed on complaints of the Frontiers' misdeeds up country. Lendy took offence. Interested only in upholding the honour
of his force (already besmirched
at
Tambi and Bogo), he
resented and
ignored civilian criticism. Fleming,
who
disliked military rule
proposed introducing ^District
and was frightened of Lendy, under jurisdiction. The title
civilians in the area
Commissioner' was substituted for the undignified old
'Manager'. Garrett,
worn out by
his exertions
the Royal Geographical Society gave
him
a
up country,
for
which
medal, was invalided in
1893 and died. Alldridge succeeded as District Commissioner, Sherbro.
W.
H. Davison, Creole
j.p.
him
Colonial Office to deny
Fleming referred to him In
November
the interior.
Mafwe, was given a Commission to its terms were revised at the
rights over chiefs
as a 'District
and
their people,
Commissioner'.
1892 Parkes drew up a plan for the administration of
He proposed
responsibilities,
at
and though
investigate crimes there,
the
government assume
its
long-neglected
proclaim a Protectorate and appoint five Pohtical
Agents (or District Commissioners) to take over the Frontiers' authority with limited juridical powers.
then be gradually disbanded.
The
The
Agents'
tions,
on
Frontiers' pay.
With
would
/^300 each,
salaries,
expenses (which he put at only ;£6oo altogether), saving
political
Frontier Police
and
would be met by
the
perhaps an eye to Fleming's inclina-
he proposed Governors' tours up country (costly in
carriers'
wages) be given up and the chiefs bidden instead to an annual Durbar
on
the Indian model.
Fleming approved, attracted by
a
plan which implied rule by
suasion not force, and substituted civilian for military rule.
he disapproved of 'punitive expeditions'. But
at the
Above
all
Colonial Office
they remembered that armed expeditions had brought the hinterland peace,
and declared
that,
whether or not PoHtical Agents were
appointed, the Frontier Pohce must be maintained in
reorganized under better disciplme. 516
full strength,
but
when
it
was
realized in
that the Political Agents
London, what Parkes had not made clear, Creoles, the plan was turned down.
would be
was assumed that five suitable candidates could not be found, that Parkes whose outstanding abilities were fully recognized was unique. Hemming summed up, 'we could not depend upon them and they would be likely to get us into all sorts of difficulties'. Thus it was settled that whatever future was planned for the Sierra Leone hinterIt
—
—
land, Europeans should rule there.
Yet along the coastline, Creole Customs officers like Songo-Davies, or J. A. Cline on Kikonke Island, had long exercised the sort of power it was proposed to give Political Agents. Creole j.P.s like Davison, or those who, like J. A. Williams, had helped negotiate with chiefs (pp. 400-1), might have assumed wider responsibilities. But while the Frontier Police remained a para-military force under European officers, the battle Parkes and Lendy waged in Freetown would have had to be fought out in every
district,
with the Creole inevitably
at a
dis-
advantage.
Having promised Quayle-Jones not
Kemo
Bilale
to use
moved away. Immediately
Heremakono
as a
war-base,
the French advanced into the
and in February 1893 occupied Heremakono. French policy held a European power responsible not only for its colonies and protectorates but its spheres, a doctrine the Colonial Office was unwilling to recognize. They answered British protests with the British sphere,
counter-protest that if
Heremakono were
really in the British sphere
the Sofas should never have been allowed there.
Nor would they with-
draw, convinced that whatever British governments might
were
secretly allied
Kemo
withdrew
say,
they
with Samori against them. north-east. If the French believed in a secret
Sofa alliance, he saw in the loss of
Anglo-
Heremakono an Anglo-French
arms supply. Having lost the Heremakono-Falaba-Port Loko trade route, he determined to extend Sofa influence southwards, by intervening as an ally, in the alliance against
him. Yet Freetown remained
his
U5ual Sofa way, in existing wars.
A
Upper Moa and helped Kafura, a Kisi sub-chief, against Kai Lundu. Another, under Pokere, went to open a new road to Freetown through Koranko and Kunike, perhaps via Senehun. They found a long-standing war, arising from a quarrel after the Yoni Expedition, between two Mende chiefs, Vonjo, living in party of Sofas
went
to the
517
Kunike, and Foray, in Kono. They joined Foray, advancing with
customary slaughter through Koranko and Kunike.
When the
French advanced, Lendy was sent to investigate. Eager for active service (he had been pressing for a punitive expedition some-
where or other since 1891) he felt humihated by the feeble pohcy he had to execute, ashamed of not being able to give the Koranko protection. He begged that troops be sent. To strengthen his case he alleged that the defenders of Tambi, whom he dignified under the hitherto unknown name *the Mureties', were in arms again and had cut the Freetown-Falaba road. Fleming, with his horror of expeditions, was on leave, Crooks acting Governor.
Lendy had an
ally in
spent his time as colonel training the
ist
Freetown in Ellis, who had India Regiment for bush
West
of the usual placid garrison routine. Having won Tambi, he wanted to use his troops in a full-scale expedition, before they were posted back to the West Indies in January 1894. So when Lendy's message arrived in May he urged instant action, assuring the War Office that the rainy season never set in up country till mid-July. But as Crooks reported the rains had already started,
fighting, instead
glory and a C.B.
at
was refused. Lendy then began sending Ellis regular reports from up country, which were passed on to the War Office. Both broke regulations, Lendy in reporting to Ellis instead of the acting-Governor, Elhs in also communicating information heard in Executive Council. They stressed Sofa atrocities, and their selling captives to Susu slave-traders. Thus they felt sure of moving the British government. Lendy, who wanted sanction
to return to the regular army, even arranged with the to defer his transfer until the
still
War
Office
unsanctioned expedition should be
over.
champion of a peaceful settlement up country, stood in their way. He pointed out that his messengers went safely along the route Lendy alleged 'the Mureties' had cut. Like A. L.Jones he sympathized with the Sofas, continuing what had been the hitherto accepted policy Parkes,
of friendship with them: indeed as late as October a War Office Report was still proposing a policy based on friendly negotiation. He sent a message warnin-g the Sofis out of Kunike. Pokerc unwillingly obeyed, retiring cast to Tckuyema, a town claimed Intelligence
by Nyagua, on the Kono-Mende border. Ellis and Lendy, lest they be cheated of with personal attacks on Parkes, that he was 518
their expedition, replied in league
with the Sofas,
MusHm members
Department were Sofa spies; ElHs even told the Executive Council Parkes was their paid agent. The charges, examined eventually in August 1894, were then disproved: Parkes produced vouchers for every money transaction with the Sofas, authority for every letter sent them. But in his desire for a peaceful policy he did (as the Colonial Office noted) play down reports of Sofa atrocities committed on peoples who had been promised British that the
of
his
protection.
While Sofa troops remained grounds for
French had Heremakono.
in the British sphere the
justified complaint, if
not invasion,
as at
implement the clause of the Brussels Act against slave-trading in the interior, and to protect people entitled to protection, an expedition was sanctioned to drive the Sofas from the British sphere. Fleming returned in November to a situation unprecedented where the government in London urged a military expedition on an unwilling Governor. Sheltering behind his Executive Council, where Ellis to placate them, to
So
he delayed and hindered as best he could. instant report he replied that he was an a telegram demanding
formed
To
a protesting minority,
sending a civilian mission up country for a
an expedition was needed after
month
to discover
whether
all.
But he had to admit there was news of Pokere's having attacked Nyagua, a treaty chief. This was enough for the Colonial Office where Hemming, no longer interested in Samori now that the French seemed to be beating him, was clamouring for action. Orders were given for the expedition to start at once. As Elhs was in charge Fleming washed his hands of it, paid no attention to the arrangements, and held up its departure for a day by taking the Colonial Steamer, needed to trans-
port troops, to Tasso Island where the few inhabitants presented
and his wife with a loyal
A
young French
him
address.
infantry officer. Lieutenant Gaston Maritz,
was
sent
November
1893 from Kisidugu with a small party of soldiers, beyond the Niger source into the Kono country. He had orders to discover how far British influence ran and to make treaties with chiefs beyond it. At Waima, witlnn the British sphere as agreed in Paris, but unvisitcd by British officials, he made a treaty with six
in
south-east
Kono
chiefs, headed by Kurua Wara. Having promised protection, he joined them in attacking Tekuyema, and drove out Pokere and the
Sofas.
He
then retired north towards the Niger source. 519
Meanwhile
Ellis's expedition was starting. It was well planned in detachment went up the Rokel to delude the Sofas into expecting an attack from the west. The main body was shipped to
advance.
A
Bendu and marched via Mafwe to Panguma. Thence they set out on December the 13th, 379 regulars, chiefly ist West India Regiment, under sixteen
and forty-seven Frontiers under Lendy. Fleming recruits who had never seen action. About a thousand carriers were brought from Freetown. A supply column followed with several hundred more, impressed from the villages they marched through sometimes by arresting the chief till enough of his subjects enlisted, and flogging him if they threw down their loads and bolted, as they constantly did. They marched north-east through unmapped country seeking their Sofa enemy. The only resistance was sporadic sniping from flintlocks fired by Sofas or their Kono allies. On the 21st they encamped at officers,
wouldn't spare more Frontiers; some were
—
Waima. had heard rumours of French penetration into Kono he sent from Panguma warning the French authorities of his approach. The rumours were confirmed by the discovery of a private
As
Ellis
off a message
Tekuyema. Maritz, however, away from headquarters when Ellis's warning arrived, had no reason to suppose the British near. So when liis Kono allies warned him that a large Sofa force was encamped at Waima he hurried south again to surprise them on the early morning of the 23 rd before sunrise. Whether Maritz's scouts or Ellis's sentries fired first is uncertain. No issue depends on it for each was justified in assuming the other the Sofas. For forty minutes the firing went on. The British officers, roused suddenly in their white pyjamas showed up conspicuously in the semi-darkness: Maritz, a crack shot, picked off easily what he took
letter
for
of Maritz's picked up
whitc-robcd Sofas.
at
Two officers,
a
sergeant-major and four privates
were killed, another sergeant-major and fourteen privates severely wounded. Lendy roused his Frontiers. The new recruits panicked, shut themselves into houses, firing out wildly, and in the confusion he and two of his men were shot dead. When the firing died down, scouts went out ami returned with Maritz, mortally wounded. He made a short statement and died. Ten of his men were killed too. Pokere, meanwhile, driven from Tekuyema by Maritz, joined Foray, his ally in Kono, to attack Vonjo at Tungea, not far from Panguma. Charles Taylor, an experienced Creole Sub-Inspector in charge 520
of the Frontiers at Mongeri, hurried there with forty men. The attack was beaten off on the 28th and Pokere killed. The remaining Sofas retreated to Bagbwema where Ellis, following the trail of devastated villages, surprised and routed them on January the 2nd. The Sofas now driven from the British sphere, the expedition returned to Freetown. Frontiers remained to keep order. Foray was sent to Freetown gaol where he died. War parties belonging to Vonjo and Nyagua went on raiding Kono and Koranko towns (like de Winton's allies after the Yoni expedition), till their leaders were captured and gaoled. Sub-Inspector Johnson reported the
was dropped.
quiet, so Lendy's expedition against the 'Mureties'
The French
authorities
Limba country
beheaded Kurua Wara, maintaining he had
war against went on until 1898, when he was captured and deported to Libreville, where he died in 1900. Ellis was pleased with his expedition though his men had little real fighting to do, they showed they were capable of something tougher than garrison duties. As at Tambi he magnified their achievements dehberately provoked Maritz to attack the British. Their
Samori, fought inland,
far
from
Sierra Leone,
:
at the
expense of the Frontiers'.
Tungea
that the Colonial Office
He
so glossed over the victory at
had
difficulty in getting
Taylor
a
D.C.M.
But
Ellis's
triumph was
Canary Islands on his Death robbed him they had awaited from an expedition. Proshort. Invalided to the
return to Freetown, he died there in
and Lendy of the
glories
March
1894.
tracted diplomatic wrangles over the compensation the French govern-
ment should pay
the
Waima
victims' dependents
Belgian arbitration in 1902.
821613
521
were only ended by
XXI
WHEN
Fleming went
ill
early in 1894
it
was decided
Colonial Office that he must never return to the
at the
Colony he had been Cardew,
sent to relieve
suffered
from no
twenty years
home
him
so unwilling to rule. Colonel Frederic
temporarily, then remaining substantively,
hesitant fears.
in India, five in
North-west Frontier and Office post in Zululand.
A
professional soldier, he served
South Africa, with active service on the Zulu War, before accepting a Colonial
in the
At
fifty-five (he
was
a
month
older than Hay,
by smoking or drinking, was still equal to exertions in the bush. Within a few weeks of arrival he made a six- week tour across the Mende country to Panguma, through Waima (where he saw to maintaining the unhappy graves) to Falaba, and back by the Scarcies. While the French boundary remained unfixed there was constant risk of another Waima: both sides complained of infringements in the unallotted Scarcies areas, particularly Samu. Early in 1894 a chief invaded the French Bena country from a British base with men supplied by Bai Bureh. Cardew seized the chance to recover the prestige
three years older than Fleming) his robust frame, unimpaired
lost
through Bai Bureh's escape in 1891. Captain Tarbet, Lcndy's took fifty men to Rogballan to arrest him. He retired into
successor,
the bush,
whence he
sent a polite but indignant letter disclaiming
Promised safe-conduct, he came to Port Loko Cardew who rebuked him for letting his men fight in French territory, and ordered him to give up fifty guns. At this time Bai Burch was drinking heavily. He would start in the
hostility to the British.
to see
morning and be incapable by afternoon. Cardew, a convinced teewas disgusted. He hoped he would refuse the penalty, intending if he did, to depose and deport liim. But the guns were surrendered totaller,
witliin the stipulated time.
As he sphere,
travelled, still
Cardew considered how
best to transform a British
ruled by tcclinically sovereign chiefs, into a Protectorate.
522
Legislatively the change torate' for ^Sphere' in
land inclined
him
was foreshadowed by
substituting *Protec-
Ordinances passed in 1894. Experience in Zuluthrough chiefs, by their own
to rule as far as possible
laws, rather than try to introduce English law. Creole opinion sup-
ported him. Lewis and McCarthy,
from seeking to extend the jurisdiction of the Colony courts, welcomed the plans he outlined to Legislative Council on his return. They agreed it would be unwise to subject people suddenly to an unfamiliar, alien legal system, and looked forward with him to the gradual opening up of the hinterland by far
economic rather than pohtical means, trade providing
a
peaceful
stimulus to raise the inhabitants' standard of living.
On
Cardew found evidence of an organized slave trade in the captives taken in the Kono, Koranko and Upper Mende wartheatres, operated chiefly by Susu and Fula who carried them north. From this he concluded that all wars in the interior were waged merely to capture slaves, and that ending the slave traffic would necessarily his tour
bring peace.
So he began his task by reorganizing the Frontier Police to preserve order and suppress slave-trading. More officers were appointed, with a new grade of Assistant Lispector, at ^2S0, recruited from Army officers who had risen from the ranks, whose social and fmancial expectations were more modest than those of the directly commissioned. The Creole Sub-Inspectors' pay was raised to ;^I50, and a Medical Officer appointed,
Bishop
J.P.),
qualified at
at ^^ 3 00,
Dr Thomas Bishop (son of Thomas
Edinburgh and Glasgow.
The country was divided
into five Districts, each under an Inspector.
Outstations were reduced in
number and more
closely supervised to
check abuses. Discipline was tightened up: about thirty were dismissed,
some with prison
sentences.
learn
God Save
the
Schools were started at the District
men
to read and write; each recruit had Queen and the Lord's Prayer, sung and repeated
headquarters to teach the
the end of evening parade.
To
increase their self-respect,
pared with well-armed, well-trained French carbines, precision
were substituted
soldiers,
low
as
to at
com-
Martini-Metford
weapons, but not too elaborate for bush conditions,
for Snider
rifles.
Fisher and Randall's agent C. Tambacci, a persistent critic
of govern-
ment and of Creole officials, told the Manchester Chamber, who A. M'Carthy, it on to the Colonial O^vcc in May 1894, that J.
passed
523
whose
salary
had been
was
practice,
raised to /^yoo
investigated the charge.
ing to
on condition he give up
private
money from clients. The Executive Council M' Car thy insisted the inquiry be held accord-
taking
still
Cardew, no lawyer, was offended. Simple and he would have preferred frank, informal discussion,
strict legal rules.
direct himself,
and suspected formahties were being used to hide guilt. At length the Council found that though he had not been dishonest, he had been negligently slow in winding up his business, and shown carelessness of a kind unsuited to the senior law officer of a Colony. Cardew' s faith in Creole officials was further shaken by finding that his own confidential clerk, Jacob Lewis, had warned M'Carthy in advance of the impending inquiry. He told the Secretary of State that whatever view be taken of the strict legality of M'Carthy's conduct, he could no longer trust him as Queen's Advocate or member of his Executive Council. He also produced evidence to show he had been extremely dilatory in public business.
M'Carthy had
influential friends in
of racial
prejudice.
he did not Coast P. C.
To
as
England. At the Colonial Office
of State, Ripon, was anxious to avoid any imputation
a Liberal Secretary
Cardew to retain an officer So M'Carthy was sent to the Gold
But he could not
trust in so senior a post.
force
Solicitor-General at a reduced salary.
An
Irish
barrister,
Smyly, replaced him.
boundary speedily and end further disputes, the British and French governments signed an Agreement in Paris on January the 2 1 St, 1895, fixing a line for Commissioners to go out and adjust on the spot. It divided the Melakori and Scarcies watersheds, then followed the right bank of the Great Scarcies, branching north-east to meet and run along the loth parallel of north latitude (giving Sierra Leone its flat top). Thence it ran south-east along the Niger watershed, giving Sierra Leone disputed Kaliere, the French disputed Heremakono, till it settle
the
The
delimitation
rivers,
watersheds,
reached the Franco-Liberian frontier agreed in 1891.
was made almost parallels
—not
the people
on
on
entirely in geographical terms
political.
Samu chiefdom,
—
for instance,
the frontier had to opt for .firms
on one
was divided; side or villages
the other.
In return for territorial concessions, the French agreed not to stop traders using the traditional inland routes to Freetown,
duties
from them
at the
same
rates levied at seaports.
524
and
But
to collect
ditierential
duties, the basis
of French commercial poHcy, gradually cut
down
the
inland trade across the frontier.
Creole traders settled in French Guinea
(a
name adopted
in 1891 to
end the confusion of the 'Northern Rivers' in Freetown being in Dakar
du Sud') sometimes complained of ill-treatment. W. C. who traded regularly to the Rio Nunez with two Colony-built
the 'Rivieres Betts,
schooners, enlisted English business associates to get
with the Conakry authorities, But British trade was not driven away.
in a dispute in 1893.
him
ended by
official
his
support
death at sea
Many Creoles remained.
Paterson, Zochonis, the largest English firm trading to the north after
and Randall were wound up in 1896, had depots all along the coast of French Guinea, dividing their trade almost equally between French and British colonies, while French Company did more business in Sierra Leone than any English firm. Fisher
Colony-grown ginger was in demand in Europe in 1893. Longneglected hillsides round Freetown were cleared again. Abayomi Cole, having quarrelled with his Maroon congregation, went up to farm *Beulah Hills' on the road to Leicester where he also sold passers-by refreshments. Peter Africanus Cole, a shopkeeper in Walpole Street, farmed at Portuguese Town. French encirclement having
spoilt
hopes of the Colony's attracting
trade from the far interior, the Colonial Office was readier to hear its prosperity on agriculture (as so often adumbrated). Boundary Commission botanist, proposed an agrinear Charlotte. But the authorities at Kew advised
schemes of basing Scott-Elliot, the
cultural college
against starting with anything too ambitious. Instead a small Botanical
Station
was sanctioned
(as in
the
Gold Coast and Lagos), on the
lines
of Lewis and Vohsen's venture, but supported by public money. A farm near the defunct garden in Pademba Road was bought from French Company in 1894 and a young Kew-trained gardener, F. E. Willey, appointed Superintendent of what was called the 'Botanical and
offered to agricultural
who
applied could pass the qualifying examination.
Lewis his
Two
government scholarships were also apprentices but none of the few candidates
Agricultural Department'.
own
still
backed any plan for agricultural development, though
Christineville plantation did not pay. In January
1896 he
organized an Agricultural Exhibition in the Wilberforce Hall. stimulate
farming, rather than prize-wiiming, 525
a
To
Committee went
:
round the Colony beforehand inspecting farms and giving Lewis was helped by
his wife's cousin,
Fourah Bay College graduate in Wiltshire,
Tutor
at
who
advice.
Solomon Okagu Farmer,
a
whom he sent to an Agricultural College
was, until his death at thirty-eight, in 1897, Science
Fourah Bay College.
But the demand for ginger declined, exports sank again, and with them the old hope of basing the Colony's prosperity on agriculture.
showed the population increasing. Markers annual reports showed the number of schools and schoolchildren decreasing. In the impoverished villages many parents could no longer afford to send their children, or only let them go when there was no work at home. Teachers' salaries remained low: when government
Though
the 1891 census
managers usually reduced their contribution less than a third were certificated. Many gave
school
grants
raised
proportionately. In 1895
unexplained lessons to be learnt by rote.
The
older children were often
put to teaching the younger, so that they learnt notliing new.
Where
was
talent
so
little
rewarded there were few to follow the schoolmasters Marke's own teacher
—
of earlier Thomas George of Wellington, or John Merriman of Hastings, or Samuel Norman of Waterloo and Kissy whose sound teaching in the '60s and '70s filled the Grammar School with bright pupils and made
example
village
—
the villages nurseries of prominent citizens. Hastings, the birthplace of
many famous men,
including the
first
African archdeacons of Sierra
Leone, Robbin, Henry Johnson and Macaulay, was
Bethlehem of West
The in
known
as
'the
Africa'.
declining standard in the primary schools affected the secondary
May
1896
twenty-six candidates for the Civil Service Examina-
all
Grammar School
or Wesleyan
High School,
tion,
mostly from
The
Schoohnasters' Association urged a national system o£
pulsory education
as in
failed.
com-
England, but the Colony was too poor. The
education grant was increased in 1895 to send pupil-tcachcrs to train at Fourah Bay College where a Model School was opened, but there
was no money
government training institution. were offered for teclinical- instruction, but most school managers did little more than have the girls taught sewing. Government promised jC^oo in 1889 towards a Technical Institute if ;^6oo could be raised privately. Meetings were held, a Committee formed, for a
Special grants
but notliing came of it. ^26
Bishop Ingham re-opened the Cathedral School in top of
at the
Howe
Street that year,
master from England.
An
a
new
and brought out
illustration in his
a
building
carpentry
book shows
the boys
building the school veranda. In 1895 he raised ;£soo in England to build a Teclinical School
voted
contribution
a
on
the adjoining lot.
—Lewis,
The
Legislative Council
in the Tregaskis tradition, suspicious
a grant to a bishop's institution.
W.
F.
of by the
Lucia, an architect sent
Annie Walshe School, built it and was first principal, teaching building, plumbing and carpentry. Lewis started a Freetown Committee in 1894 to raise funds and c.M.s. to rebuild the
Colwyn Bay Institute, opened in Wales by a from the Congo to train African craftsmen,
choose candidates for the returned missionary partly financed J.
by A. L.Jones.
T. Ojokutu-Macaulay, a builder and carpenter of Egba descent in
Soldier
Street,
amounted school.
gave
his
apprentices
to technical education.
He
systematic
built Lewis's Christineville
mansion,
which
instruction
Some boarded with him his
as in a
Centenary House,
House (James Taylor's house in Oxford Street, Cummings), and built or rebuilt many churches for the u.m.f.c, his own church. At his death in 1904 few important streets were unadorned by him.
Porter's Hotel, Juliette
called after his second wife, Juliette
Customs
receipts reached
^^80,000 in 1895. After a temporary set-
by a fall in produce prices in Europe, they rose again The Colony had money to spend. For a start the Treasury
back, caused steadily.
directed
it
take over the remaining expenses British taxpayers
still
paid,
the Governor's salary and the upkeep of the Colonial Steamer.
Though European
trade benefited
first
from recovery
(p.
495),
Creole soon followed. Creole traders flocked into the pacified Sherbro hinterland in search of produce, competing fiercely, cutting out
sedentary European
rivals.
The European
factories
on the
coast or
more main
waterways became depots: produce was bought far inland. Victoria, on Sherbro Island, dwindled. Today only a grove of fruit trees and a few bricks on the shore mark the site of the former garrison and trading town. The outstanding Sherbro traders were the sons of Moses Thompson of Kissy, known as a financial genius in his day, who died young in 1877. Maximilian and Frederick Augustus, the two eldest, started in the Sherbro in 1885 as
Thompson 527
Brothers, built large premises in
Heddle Road, the Bonthe waterfront, and bought or
built factories in
the rivers. Their younger brothers Ganzevoort, Maitland, and
Colum-
bus joined them in 1892; three years later they opened a branch in
Leone firm to have its own English estabwharf and warehouses at Cline Town; their store in Wilber force Street was built from the stones of the old American mission church at Bonthe, which they bought, with the land it stood on, from the u.B.c. Generous to the poor in their old home, Kissy, they also supported the Anglican Church in Bonthe liberally, and Manchester, the
first
They had
lishment.
Sierra
a
virtually reorganized
and kept going the lapsed Anglican missions
in
the Sherbro.
As well
as
were increaswent to Europe cocoa. Rubber too was exported, extracted from the
palm produce, the
staple export, cola nuts
ingly exported, chiefly for sale along the Coast; a little to
make
inferior
vine by cutting the bark, wiping the exuding rubber v^th lime-juice
and rolling it into balls which were packed into baskets and carried to Freetown or the factories. But extracted and marketed so laboriously it could not compete in the world market with plantation rubber. A small export trade in piassava, a hard fibre used for brooms, also
grew up
in the 1890s.
Exports to the United States (hides and ginger chiefly) virtually ceased in 1896, though lumber, kerosene and a few other commodities
were still regularly imported by sailing ships from Boston or New York. German trade replaced American. During 1894 twenty-eight German ships, and another twenty or thirty chartered from German ports, were consigned to the Colony. The Woermann line ran a regular service from Hamburg. Exports to Germany, almost entirely palm kernels, rose from ^19,658 in 1889 to ^^106,555 in 1895. By 1 90 1 more was exported to Germany than to Britain. Hamburg gin was imported on a large scale; German cutlery and gunpowder supplanted British. German firms also competed with well-dyed cottons, but could not supplant Manchester.
With West African trade expanding A. L. Jones started the Bank of British West Africa in 1894, an enterprise more securely backed than previous speculative banks. The Freetown branch was in Rosenbush's former premises
on the north-west corner of Water
Though not backed by government, notes, it
it
empowered
to issue
Street.
bank-
had the credit and stability of an official institution, which became in 1898 when the government started banking
virtually
with
or
it.
528
Dr Blyden was
the
to propose a Sierra
first
Leone Railway: on
his
return fi:om the interior in 1872 he suggested a hne to Falaba. During
Enghsh speculators approached the Colonial Office for a railway subsidy; Lembcrg held a public meeting in Freetown in 1888 to rouse Creole interest. But Colonial Office policy disliked subsidizing, preferring if no private company would undertake the full risk, to build a government railway. It was felt that subsidies only encouraged concession-jobbers: a Sierra Leone dock syndicate formed in London in 1891 to build harbour works faded away after the the
8 80s several
1
promoter was refused
a subsidy.
In 1892 the Liverpool
Chamber asked government
to
make
a pre-
liminary survey. William Shelford, a railway consultant with long colonial and foreign experience,
Bly den's route from Port Loko
went
for the
to Falaba.
Crown Agents
to survey
But the government
realized
Freetown must, strategically and economically, be the terminus, and that Falaba, important in 1872, had since been ruined by the Sofas. So Walter Bradford, an engineer sent to survey in more detail in 1 894, took a route from Freetown via Songo Town and Magbele to Bumban.
that
Urged by Alldridge and Harris he also surveyed a line to bring produce from the Upper Moa to the Sherbro waterways. Neither presented insuperable barriers to construction.
Cardew reahzed during
his first tour that the
northern route missed
the areas most suitable for development. Approving of a main line from Freetown to Songo Town, with branch lines radiating eventually
over the hinterland, he preferred building south-east
all
the
Mende
country, rich in
oil
palms, rather than the
first,
across
less
fertile
parallel to
March 1895 he started on a second tour, from Songo Bo, Segbwema and Kanrelahun, on a line rouglily the coast along which, with some deviations, the railway
was
to run (though
north. In
Town
to Rotifunk,
later
it
never reached
his
proposed terminus,
Kanrelahun).
He
from Freetown harbour to Songo cost ^150,000 on a two foot six-inch gauge. He proposed raising it by public loan, interest and sinking fund replacing that for the Harbour Works loan of 1871, due to end ignominiously in 1898. As no private company would build without subsidy, he preferred government bear the cost, running it when completed as a government department, so avoiding the possible political difficulties the employees of a privileged company, exempt from official control, might cause up country. estimated that the
first stage,
Town, would
529
The
Council welcomed
Legislative
his
only Crooks, just
plan:
retiring, objected to saddling the Colony with a railway that might
never repay the cost of building and would chiefly benefit European business.
On
with
in
leave,
Chamber who were
his portrait in the
(Another was also
sold,
Cardew
August,
China
enthusiastic.
middle and
addressed
the
Liverpool
were sold in Freetown running round the edge.
plates
a train
of Hennessy.)
At the Colonial Office, the Permanent Under-Secretary was against letting a Colony so recently insolvent spend a large sum it might never recover: he advised waiting to see if railways paid in the Gold Coast and Lagos. Had the Liberals won the election of July 1895 he might have had his way. But Joseph Chamberlain who took the Secretaryship of State in the Unionist administration saw Sierra Leone not as an isolated unit to be developed by cautious makeshift, but as part of a great Empire where the experimental building of a railway, even if unremunerative, would provide experience for development elsewhere. True to the principle he expounded to Parliament soon after taking office, of developing the colonies by investment like neglected private estates, he sanctioned the building of the first British railway in West Africa.
The Crown Agents had charge of construction Shelford was their consulting engineer, but not contractor. They engaged staff, bought material and were responsible for raising a loan in London. The :
Leone government had no responsibility until the completed line was handed over. Bradford returned in November as Chief Resident Engineer. The long disused racecourse was used for railway yards, a nearby farmhouse, once William Grant's, for offices. Material was landed at Cline Town to prevent congestion at Government Sierra
Wharf The main line
curving
station
down
was
at the east
to the wharf.
end of Water
The main
Street,
line ran
with
up East
a
branch
Street with-
out encroaching on the open space at Falconbridge, then turned east across the streets, over thirteen level crossings and a bridge at Nicol
Brook, to Cline Town. Thence viaducts, steel girders
it
on concrete
Town. Eleven Orugu Bridge near
continued to Songo
pillars,
including
Hastings, over 100 yards long, had to be built across the creeks running
down from trains
the mountains. Viaducts and tracks
running
at
were designed
to take
twenty miles per hour.
Bradford was hampered by the difficulty of engaging satisfactory European staff, and keeping them m health. One of the first casualties 530
Officer, Dr Nicol Paris, a young Creole with whose foot was crushed by a runaway truck: be amputated and he died. After that two doctors were sent
was the Railway Medical a
Durham
degree,
had to from England
it
to
look
after the construction staff.
Cardew*s vigorous schemes were enthusiastically received in Freetown where a new Governor was in any case usually welcomed with joy. A Governor who was Dean Farrar's brother-in-law (and so the greatuncle of another austere Christian soldier, Field-Marshal Lord
Mont-
gomery), and read the lesson in the Cathedral, appealed to going population. his
Some European
officials,
a churchhowever, were upset by
temperance principles, which even prohibited health-drinking
at
his swearing-in.
how official religious observance altered with how the Cathedral, empty under the free-
had long been noted
It
successive Governors,
Rowe, was filled under Havelock, a High Churchman, with officials bowing to the east. But if Cardew filled the Cathedral again he was no enemy to temperate enjoyment. He and his wife entertained, thinking
attended balls at the Wilberforce Hall and danced with the Creole
Mrs Cardew organized sew
for the
poor and
a
elite.
working party among the Freetown ladies to Band of Mercy, a children's organiza-
started the
tion to foster kindness to animals.
Cardew
did not leave his religion in Freetown on tour up country Sunday morning service for the literate, another in the afternoon for the carriers, and attended both. On his first tour a stalwart young missionary, T. E. Alvarez, accompanied him, on his second,
he had
:
a
Canon Taylor Smith. The c.M.s. reverted dislike
to a
more
active policy in 1894. Despite
of Creole agents, candidates were recruited
villages to lead a 'Shall
we go
*the collegian
without conceit') started
1897
at
at
Colony
forward?' movement, to preach to the
Temne. The Rev. Allen Elba (known when Europeans started another
Ingham's
in the
at
Fourah Bay College
a mission at
as
Makomp; two
Rogberi; Alvarez started another in
Sinkunia near Falaba. The Sierra Leone Messenger was founded
in 1893 to circulate in
The Rio Pongas
England and rouse
mission,
work. what had become French
interest in c.M.s.
whose work
in
Guinea was harassed by the government's insisting all schools be run on French lines, also opened a Temne mission, at Kambia, under the Rev.
S.
Cole. 531
The Wesleyan
mission continued
labours
its
among
the
Limba
and in the Sherbro. The United Free Methodists opened a mission at Tikonko in 1892 under a European, the Rev. C. H. Goodman; the Rev.
Wilham
Micklethwaite
Freetown, son of an
who joined him
with
built a
a small mission to the
had been born
They
also
church
at
earlier u.m.f.c. missionary.
Panguma. The Holy Ghost Fathers Patrick's, in 1893,
for a while
Mende
at
preached
in at
Bonthe, St
Bamani, on the
Bum. The most
flourishing, best-equipped missions
were
still
those
affili-
ated to the u.B.C. In 1892 they opened a school at Rotifunk in the latest
American
style, surpassing
to teach anatomy,
anything yet seen in Sierra Leone, equipped
astronomy and brick-making.
Representatives of the Soudan Missionary
Movement
arrived in
Freetown from the United States in 1890 to prospect for a mission. Some were faith-healers, caught fever, and died, rather than call a doctor, alarming the medical authorities who feared they might start an epidemic. Eventually a station was opened at Tibadugu, south of Falaba, under the American Board of Missions. Like the u.B.c. they used industrial methods, planting rubber and making roads, spreading practical as well as religious instruction.
Dr
Frederick revived the missionary tradition of Zion, Wilberforce
Street,
and
Methodist Episcopal missions in 1890
started African
Mange (where
the Huntingdonians had once been)
at
and Magbele.
Bishop Henry Turner of the a.m.e. Church came over from the
and 1893 and ordained pastors in Freetown. George Decker, who had served many years as a teacher at Cape Coast, built a church in Regent Road; ultimately he left the A.M.E. Church and ran it as his own. Another, the Rev. Henry Steady, from Waterloo (whose disbanded father had been a c.m.s. teacher, then Huntingdonian preacher), became pastor of New Zion, United
States in 1891
One of them,
the Rev.
Pademba Road in 1898, known as ^Steady Church'. The Maroon congregation joined the a.m.e. Church for a while, but in 1897 united with Zion as a separate body under Frederick. Their independence was short: in 1900 they joined the Wcsleyans. The remaining in 1900,
Nova
Scotian church, the
was defunct within
a
Rawdon
decade or
Street Baptist,
still
going
so»
There were many complaints that the Freetown postal service was slack, and hints that the officials were dishonest. Cardew appointed a 532
Commission of Inquiry. It was discovered not only that junior employees were conspiring with fraudulent stamp-dealers in England, but that the Postmaster, J. H. Spaine, had abstracted over ^i,ooo. In addition he had since 1885 taken over ^1,800 from the Savings Bank, concealing his frauds by fake entries in depositors' bankbooks, relying on their inexperience or illiteracy, and on the easy-going negligence of successive Colonial Treasurers, who were ostensibly responsible. So a distinguished, honoured Creole, a Head of Department, member of a highly respected family, was arrested in January 1895 on charges of embezzlement. Though the evidence of his guilt was clear, popular feeling supported him. M'Carthy's successor had not arrived yet, so Lewis was engaged to act Queen's Advocate. As when he prosecuted the Onitsha murderers, or William Caulker, or defended Crawford, he took on the case single-mindedly, ignoring public opinion. Spaine's friends brought influence to win round the jurymen. Three refused to fmd him guilty. They were discharged amid the cheers of the crowd, and Spaine remanded for re-trial before another jury. Cardew was determined he should not escape punishment. Before the second trial opened an Ordinance was passed to allow any official charged with an offence against public property to be tried by a judge sitting with three or more assessors, chosen from the special jurors' list, who would not give a verdict but opinions, which he was not bound to accept. The jury qualification was also restricted again, and two-thirds majority verdicts in non-capital cases restored (that provi-
of wanted given). A clause copied from a Gold Coast Ordinance allowed anyone to elect to be tried by assessors except in capital cases. This could exempt Europeans from trial by a sion so regularly introduced or abolished according to the kinds
verdict successive Governors
Creolejury.
An
angry public meeting was held and
against depriving a
one individual engrossed in
community of its
to justice.
liis
case,
a petition sent to
privileges for the sake
But the Colonial Office was unmoved. Lewis,
determined to uphold the sanctity of the courts,
not only voted for the Ordinance, but helped draft to principle earned
London
of bringing
him
a popular
odium which
it.
is
This devotion
not altogether
forgotten today.
came on in October before a new jury, twoof whom could now give a verdict. Again the evidence against him was overwhelming, but the jurymen had also to consider the Spaine's second trial
thirds
riotous
crowd
outside.
One
admitted afterwards he gave a 533
false
verdict
ballot.
To
of being stoned.
for fear
avoid reprisals they gave their verdict by
Spaine v^as acquitted by eight to four, and a tumult of applause
sw^ept through the court.
government used its new weapon and brought him to trial on fresh charges, before assessors. There could be no doubt of the verdict if only because the judge who had summed up against him was still on the bench. As a desperate gesture the five defending counsel threw up the case, refusing to take part in proceedings where the accused was being tried by a prejudiced judge under an Ordinance passed deliberately to convict him. One of the five assessors refused to declare against him, but backed by the opinions of the other four, two European, two Creole, the judge found him guilty and awarded him seven years imprisonment with hard labour.
Then
the
a third time,
A year elapsed before any attempt was pality
Ordinance of 1893.
porary tion
Mayor
in
was found
elector.
made to carry out the MuniciWhen Cardew appointed M'Carthy tem-
June 1894 to arrange elections the
so
narrow
that in the
A new Ordinance was
West Ward
electoral qualifica-
there
was only one
passed widening the franchise.
The
government also agreed not to hand over public utilities until they had been put in good repair. M'Carthy having by then left, Hebron was appointed temporary Mayor. Again there was delay, over preparing Valuation Lists. Not until August the 5th 1895 was the first municipal election held.
The twenty-four candidates who stood for the three Wards, East, West and Central, were chiefly shopkeepers. Three barristers, Lewis, Hebron and Francis Dove, were also elected. To the elected twelve government added three Europeans, Dr Prout, the Colonial Surgeon, Lemberg and T. S. Buckley, Fisher and Randall's agent. Lewis, unpopular over the Spaine
Ward, Hebron,
trial,
polled only sixty-one votes in the Central
Spainc's leading counsel, 194. Nevertheless the Council
Mayor, and re-elected him in 1 896. Town Clerk at ^200. His office was J. W. Maxwell was appointed in the Wilberforce Hall, which the Charity Commissioners handed chose Lewis
as
over to the Municipality.
In
November
1895
Cardew
suggested to Chamberlain that a knight-
hood be conferred ow Lewis. Deeply impressed by 534
his sacrifice
of
popularity to principle during the Spaine
trial,
he recommended the
award (which he had not yet received himself) on grounds of personal merit as well as to honour the new Municipality. So the New Year's Honours List for 1896 included for the first time a West African Knight Bachelor, Sir Samuel Lewis. Though only fifty- two Sir Samuel was already an elder statesman, with twenty-five years experience of the courts, nearly fourteen of Legislative Council. There he consistently followed a declared policy of supporting government rneasures not contrary to his principles with constructive criticism, rather than oppose them (like many colonial politicians) as an unthinking partisan.
As Mayor he worked devotedly,
and health (already failing) to the Municipality. He attended every Council meeting, arranged where each new street lamp should go. As often, his labours earned him as much opprobrium as recognition: when the butchers were made to take out licences for their market stalls they refused to sell his family meat. But he went on speaking his mind on the Council and shut up the Councillors when they prolonged meetings with needless speeches. In 1897 he prevented them spending ^100 on a Queen's Jubilee reception where, as he observed, they and the wealthy untaxed property-owners would be handsomely entertained at the expense of the uninvited street-traders whose hcences supplied most of sacrificing his legal practice
—
the slender civic revenue.
H. Thomas was a fine example of the self-made Creole magnate. Born at Hastings of Aku recaptive parents, accustomed to go straight out from the village school to work the rest of the day on the farm, he went at fourteen to the Northern Rivers as a trader's clerk. After a dozen years he started on his own (helped by a loan from Dr Robert Smith) at Malamah Factory in the Sierra Leone River. When he grew rich and moved to Freetown he was known as Malamah Thomas. The handsome house Ojokutu Macaulay built him in East Street was *Malamah House' it was decorated with carved heads, so he was also called 'Head-Head' Thomas. Specializing cliiefly in cottons, he invented his own brand, 'Malamah Baft', patented in England, which he often visited on business or pleasure. His wife Christiana, sister of T. J. Rollings, a shopkeeper in Westmoreland Street, helped him greatly in his early days, managing the Freetown business wliile he was up country. Most of his friends were
J.
;
535
Freemasons, but not he: he would have no secrets from her. Tall,
enjoyed poor.
his
(like
and game of
his cigar
When
stead,
manner
William Grant), he dressed elegantly, and gave generously to the daughter Laura, back from fmishing school in Hamp-
majestic, reserved in
billiards,
married Councillor C. C. Nicols, a contractor in Garrison
Street, in 1896,
he hired half the houses in East Street to entertain the
Onlookers flocked in from the business was done in Freetown. guests.
villages
and
for a
week
little
In the next street, Wilberforce Street, lived his namesake (but not
Samuel Benjamin Thomas. Born at Wellington in 1833 (as he was called) was educated for the Anglican ministry at the Fourah Bay Institution. He turned to business instead, and, starting with the small capital his recaptive father had made by farming, amassed relative)
'Abukeh'
most of it in England. Frugal, even miserly, with a simplicity that was almost discomfort, shunning any kind of public office, hating to hear his wealth spoken of, he sacrificed a great fortune, investing
living
present enjoyment to the vicarious pleasure of leaving, at his death in 1901, over ^70,000. Originally he intended to
the
Church whose ministry he had nearly
Case shook
his confidence;
endow from
his estate
entered, but the Five Pastors*
money went
instead the
to
found an
Agricultural Institution.
Wealth also trickled back to Freetown from her migrant sons. J. J. Thomas, a Wellingtonian like S. B. (but no relation) who, dissatisfied with being a printer's apprentice, went to Lagos in 1867 as a merchant's clerk, then
married
his master's
daughter and prospered in business,
re-roofed the Wesleyan church in his native village and contributed to
Freetown barrister
charities.
Hebron's
He
sister
returned in 1896 to marry, as his second wife,
Rhoda, and four years
Wilberforce House, Gloucester Street. charity,
endowed
Council in 1901,
a public Ubrary,
He
was given
later settled for
good
at
contributed liberally to a seat
on
the Legislative
a c.m.g. in 1908.
Some, like T. C. Bishop, or J. E. Gooding, or the late Mr F. A.John (who died in 1956, aged 99) returned from the Niger with capital to open a business in Freetown. Cornelius Crowthcr who came back to his native village, Waterloo, in 1892 after fifteen years with the Niger
Company, soon monopolized most of the prising
and industrious, (he opened
something of the
ruthless
trade in the district. Enter-
a hotel at
Waterloo
energy so conspicuous in
S.
him he put some of his profits into firming; his among the very few in the Colony that ever paid. 536
in 1904),
with
B. A.Macfoy,like plantations
were
Even those who remained bered to help those
who
in their
new homes sometimes rememMoney was raised all
stayed in their old.
along the Coast to finish off the Wilberforce Hall.
Horton Jones,
S.
who gave up the unexciting jobs of village constable and baker at Gloucester in 1877, to make a fortune as an importer and government contractor at Bathurst,
Gambia, with eventually
a seat
on the
Legislative
Council there, contributed to rebuild the church in his native village. R. B. Blaize, an Aku recaptive's son who left Freetown in 1862 seventeen to be
Government
at
Printer in Lagos, and, having saved ^^20,
left ^soo to the Princess Dr John Randle, from Regent, who was trained as a
turned with resounding success to business, Christian Hospital.
and qualified as a doctor at St Lagos (where he married Victoria Davies, Queen Victoria's goddaughter) (p. 318). He bought up undeveloped land there which appreciated enormously, so that he could endow a dispenser at the Colonial Hospital,
Andrews, went to
practise in
charity for the poor of Regent, at
and give money
for science teaching
Fourah Bay College.
Thus Freetown's leading citizens and their relatives along the Coast displayed an air of solid prosperity. Even the less opulent would have a good house in town, and perhaps a country retreat outside at Cline Town, Ascension Towoi or on the Leicester Road (like James Taylor's Cassandra House,
Cormack's
Thomas
Garnetville).
A
Bishop's Oleander Villa or E. T.
French steamer captain
Coast said they reminded him of the
villas
who
Mc-
served on the
near Nice.
Revelations of dishonesty in the Surveyor's Department, and in the
Pay Department, another conviction Bank where Spaine's assistant, undeterred by his Frontier Police
followed Creole
in the Savings
superior's
fate,
example, contributed to dispel Cardew's confidence in
his
already shaken by M'Carthy. Not all the fault was extreme carelessness of C. B. Mitford, appointed Colonial
officials,
theirs: the
Treasurer in
1
890,
removed
in
subordinates into temptation
1
897,
encouraged dishonesty, by leading resist. But with revenue
some could not
and expenditure increasing, with the prospect of Protectorate and Railway to administer, and long-delayed public works to build,
no further risk with Creoles. He asked that in Head of Department have a European assistant. Thus the Parliamentary recommendation of 1865 to biuld up an African administration to take over government was fmally abandoned.
Cardew would
take
future every European
821613
^3y
Mm
The new
Postmaster, given the impressive
title
Colonial Postmaster-
were appointed from England. The Queen's was divided. Smyly became Attorney-General; Rudolph De Groot, the Master and Registrar, a barrister of European descent from British Guiana, was promoted Solicitor-General. The Colonial Surveyor, styled in 1896 Director of Public Works (for he did no surveying), and his department Public Works Department, was given a European assistant. Enoch Faulkner was moved from the Secretariat to be District Commissioner of the united Eastern and Western Districts at Waterloo a European succeeded him as Assistant Colonial Secretary. Moses Potts, who retired in 1896 after thirty years in the Treasury, was replaced by a European: an Afro-West-hidian accountant who applied was rejected for his colour. Parkes, however, retained his department and Cardew's confidence, rewarded with the title Secretary for Native Affairs', hi the Customs, too, Caleb Edwin, the senior official, was appointed Assistant Collector in 1895, and acted when the Collector was on leave. When he died of apoplexy in 1897 J. E. Dawson, Chief Clerk, Secretariat, succeeded. But neither was allowed to sit on the Executive Council where the Collector was appointed ex officio in 1896. Nor did Cardew increase Creole representation on Legislative Council if indeed, as some complained, they were represented at all by appointed members. When T. J. Sawyerr died in 1894, he put in T. C. Bishop (Dr Davies having refused from age and ill-health), but replaced Jarrett by Buckley, President of the Chamber of Commerce. When he resigned no one, European or Creole, succeeded. The unofficial members felt their powers lessened by a Colonial Office instruction in 1895, limiting their term to five years, after which General, and
Advocate's
his assistant,
office
;
*
—
they would have to be formally re-appointed. Lewis protested vainly it would favour the subservient, instancing James Johnson whose outspoken criticisms were believed to have prevented his being re-
that
appointed to the Lagos legislature.
Another unobtrusive but far-reaching change was made in 1896 after an Attorney-General was appointed. It became the practice for government bills to be discussed and approved in the Executive Council before he introduced them into .the Legislative. Thus debates
became
a
formal adjustment of measures already decided, rather than
legislative deliberations, the senior official
members, on
given, tending to resent criticism as a slight unofficial
made
to feel
their assent already their abilities,
they were opponents not partners. 538
the
Early in 1895 the people of Mokassi, a village in the
Bumpe
The
they maintained they w^ere unrightfully occupying.
who
referred to Sub-Inspector Taylor,
Mokassi people v^ere
was
a
Upper Bagru-
drove the people of the adjoining Bunjema from land
area,
Mende, was
acting-Governor
dissatisfied, alleging that
biassed.
who
They brought
He
said
The
Taylor, v^hose mother
their case to
also decided against
there, they consulted Lewis.
dispute v^as
decided for Bunjema.
Freetown
to the
them. While they were
he believed the villages lay within
Colony boundary, advised them to ignore the administrative decisions against them and appeal to the courts. They paid Lewis a ^12 fee, went home and drove the Bunjema people out again, alleging that Sir Sam was their Governor, and had the ill-defmed
The
said they might.
and
sent
them
villages lay,
Frontiers arrested seven ringleaders in
to Freetown:
Madam
Yoko,
in
May
1896
whose country
the
alarmed that Lewis should apparently be claiming to
apportion them, backed up the Frontiers. Lewis then applied for a writ
of Habeas Corpus.
Cardew,
distrusting lawyers*
methods, anxious to rule the hinter-
land justly, was determined not to
let
enable people to defy government.
what he conceived
He
legal quibbles
feared that if they did
be impossible to keep order up country. courts deciding that the vague areas ceded
He wanted by
treaty,
it
would
to prevent the
but regarded
beyond jurisdiction, must be ruled by English law. He was
also
as
annoyed
that people should regard Lewis, rather than himself, as Governor.
The writ, applied for on Friday the 8th, was not returnable until Monday. So he summoned Legislative Council on the Saturday to pass at
one
sitting,
an Ordinance to detain the prisoners. Lewis and Bishop
protested vainly: the official majority passed
it
against them.
Lewis's professional pride was roused, his principles outraged, at defeat this
by the executive. As
so often before, he fought
He who had
time against the government.
against the
Frontier Sergeant
on
unhesitatingly,
brought an action for
his clients
arrested them, laying
the
^15,000. Cardew answered with a bill to indenmify public officers who, in good faith, executed orders to keep the peace
damages
at
beyond the Colony's active jurisdiction. Lewis and Cardew fought out their battle
in the
Council Chamber
Lewis accused Cardew of subverting the law, and of personal malice against him. Cardew retorted that Lewis was trying to overthrow the government, and hinted that he only with the utmost
bitterness.
did so for the sake of Ins lawyer's
fee.
539
Lewis's struggle was unavailing.
— The Ordinance was
passed, at the cost
between the Governor and
The boundary by
War
his leading subject.
delimitation agreed
Commission
a joint
of an irreparable cleavage
on
was carried out K. Trotter, of the
in Paris in 1895
early in 1896. Colonel
J.
Office Intelligence Division, and Captain Passaga, his French
colleague, experienced, tactful officers, performed their difficult task
of surveying watersheds and a line of latitude through trackless bush working against time to finish before the rains.
in a friendly spirit,
They drew
their line
accommodatingly, without
insisting
on
strict
geographical terms, putting a workable settlement before national prestige.
Their
only disagreement was over
on
British sphere, but
the route
from
Simitia
claimed by the French on grounds of prior occupation. peaceably to the
—within
the
the Melakori to the interior
home governments and awarded
It
was referred
in 1898 to Sierra
Leone.
The Samu boundary,
separately surveyed to save time,
peaceably adjusted, with a fmal delimitation in 1897.
put up
all
was
also
Mounds were
along the frontier and the inhabitants told which side they
were on. Despite their friendly agreement Trotter
ments.
He
still
feared French encroach-
would be unable to stop the Senehowever much their them, they were no match for their French counter-
suspected the Frontiers
galese soldiers interfering across the frontier, for
own people
feared
and knew it. Had rivalries in the Middle Niger or at Fashoda brought England and
parts
France to war, the Protectorate would have been overrun the French chose to send in troops.
Cardew proposed
as fast as
fortifying
Karene, north-east of Port Loko, to enfilade attack through Kambia.
But the Colonial Office
hesitated to
delay, never prevent, invasion. built.
The
future (though
Not
recommend what could only
until 1901
none could read
was
it)
a
small earthwork
justified inaction
;
the
Protectorate remained an unmolested enclave within the embrace of
French Guinea.
Settling the Liberian frontier, rouglily fixed in 1886,
by the government
War
in the
Tewo
in
Monrovia being unable
country
spilt
was complicated
to rule
its
hinterland.
over into British territory until 1895, 540
when
was moved nearer
the Frontier Headquarters
the
Mano, and
stockaded bases on islands in the river were destroyed.
The frontier divided Kai Lundu's country. When he died in 1895 Cardew recognized his speaker Fabunde as successor on condition he abandon his more distant Kisi territories, and asked the Colonial Office to persuade the Liberians to give up their part of the Luawa chiefdom. Unwilling to discuss the boundary, the Liberian govern-
ment permitted Cardew
to ignore
a party of Frontiers crossed
Liberian side
Kaba
it
it,
to drive
if need be, to stop wars. In
away Bawurume,
1896
a chief on the
who was threatening Fabunde.
Sei, the
Mende
war-chief of Mando, Upper Moa, was said to
have supported Bawurume. Though he protested his innocence he was arrested, liis chiefdom was divided between Nyagua and Kai Lundu,
and he was gaoled
as a political prisoner.
The Foreign Jurisdiction Act of 1890, consolidating a series of earlier acts, empowered the Crown to exercise any jurisdiction claimed in a foreign country as if by right of cession or conquest. An Order-inCouncil of August the 28th 1895 declared that the
Crown had
jurisdiction in foreign countries adjoining the Colony.
On
acquired
August the
was formally proclaimed, as being 'best for of the people', over the territories lying on the British side of the French and Liberian frontiers. Some chiefs in this area had in the past made treaties of cession, many treaties of friendship. Others, in remote parts, like the mountainous 31st 1896 a Protectorate
the interests
Koranko country Trotter surveyed, had made none. Its limits depended on how frontiers were decided in Europe not on treaties or chiefs' consent (as has been believed). The cliief at Simitia, for instance, was not asked which government he wanted to live under. Nor was the term 'Protectorate' (used but not explained at the Berlin Conference of 1885) defined. Only a few weeks before the Proclamation, during the Jameson Raid trial in London, the Lord Chief
—
Justice observed that 'Protectorates
Sierra
vary
Leone Protectorate was what the
So the status of the government chose to
infinitely'.
British
make it. The 1895 Order-in-Council empowered
Leone Legislative Coimcil to legislate for the Protectorate in the same way as for the Colony. A series of Ordinances passed in 1896 and 1897 introduced an administration on the lines already agreed on, over an area of about 541
the Sierra
27,000 square miles (rather smaller than Scotland), with a population
Cardew, judging by the nimiber of huts he counted on
his tours,
estimated roughly at a million.
A
Commissioner at ^^400, rising to /^500, was to be stationed in each of the five Frontier Police Districts. The District boundaries were slightly re-drawn to prevent chiefdoms being divided, but did not necessarily include all the members of one people. Karene District (often written 'Karina'), with headquarters at Karene, northeast of Port Loko on the Mabole, a Small Scarcies tributary, included most of the Temne, Loko and Susu countries and the Bulom Shore. Ronietta, headquarters at Kwelu on the upper Bagru, had the rest of the Temne (including the Yoni) and some Mende and Bulom. Bandajuma, stretching from Jong to Mano, headquarters at Bandajuma, north of Pujehun, had Mende, Bulom, Vai and Krim. Panguma, headquarters at Panguma, comprised the upper Mende and Kono countries Koinadugu, headquarters at Falaba, the Koranko, Yalunka, and Limba countries. The District Commissioner shared his power with the principal chiefs, described by Ordinance as 'Paramount Chiefs'. This term, used occasionally in the past by Governors with the general meaning of overlord, now officially replaced the old style of 'King' and 'Queen'. They were allowed to go on hearing minor cases which concerned 'natives' (defined by Ordinance as aboriginal Africans ordinarily District
;
resident in the Protectorate) in their
own
courts, taking court fees,
awarding fmes and imprisonment, but not corporal punishment. Natives charged with serious crimes, or Secret Society offences, came before a court where the District Commissioner sat with
The
two or more
Commissioner sat alone to try nonnatives (referring only capital charges to the Supreme Court), cases of native slave-dealing and witchcraft, land cases betsvccn Paramount Chiefs, and cases arising from 'tribal fights'. (The word 'tribe' was not chiefs as assessors.
District
defined in the Ordinances.)
The
Commissioner was guided, but not bound, by English legal procedure. He could impose small fines and prison sentences without appeal; floggings and heavy sentences had to be confirmed by the Governor. Non-natives could only appeal to the Supreme Court in serious cases. Nor was he hampcncd by what Cardew called District
and pettifogging lawyers': coimsel could not plead in the He also had powers to settle disputes summarily, administering a rough and ready justice based on common ^agitators
Protectorate without special leave.
sense rather than legal precedents.
542
A
few Court Messengers were appointed to issue summonses and enforce court orders, but policing remained the Frontiers' responsibility. Cardew, anxious to avoid friction between administration and police, decided to
promote Frontier
officers District
Commissioners,
rather than bring in outsiders. The only exception, Arthur Hudson, a barrister without African experience sent out as a District Com-
was promoted Solicitor-General after a year up country. Thus, when District Commissioners went on leave Frontier Officers could act for them, gaining administrative experience to qualify them for transfer. Where none was available, the District Surgeon was put in charge. Appointed from England at -^350-^400, with Creole dispensers as assistants, all were, at Cardew's request, Europeans. The Frontier Medical Officer was given up, and Dr Bishop transferred to the Kissy Hospitals. Cardew also insisted the Railway Medical Officers, who would have to serve in the Protectorate, be missioner,
Europeans. If this simple administration cost
the expense of the Frontier Police,
little, its
cheapness was offset by
;;/^ 19,927 in 1896,
more than
a fifth
of the total revenue. Cardew pointed out that the Imperial government gave a subsidy to start the Bechuanaland Protectorate, and a loan to Zululand. But the Colonial Office would not ask for Treasury assistance. The Protectorate had to be fmanced locally, if need be by the Colony, which would eventually benefit from the outlay with increased trade.
Cardew
did not want to reimpose Colony taxes, or deny the Colony,
works during the depression years, the improving revenue. During his tours up country
starved of necessary public benefits
of a
steadily
he came to the conclusion that he could raise direct taxes in the Protectorate. He had seen them paid without difficulty in Zululand; a house-tax
was levied
in the
Gambia; the French
collected a three
franc poll-tax (then about half a crown) in French Sudan; the Liberians levied poll and property taxes. So as well as imposing store and spirit
on all traders in the Protectorate, he provided for an annual on houses in the Protectorate with four rooms, 55 on houses with less, to begin on January the ist 1898. Chiefs were to be responsible for raising house-tax from their subjects, with a commission of 3 J a house (Creoles and Europeans paying theirs direct), the District Commissioner going roimd with his Court Messengers, assisted if need be by Frontiers, to collect. At first payment in produce was allowed, but Cardew hoped that with trade increasing, licences
tax of 105
543
and the spread of wage-labour on railway and government works, cash would soon supersede it. Once the system was established, he estimated from the number of houses counted on his tours, an annual yield
of about ^20,000.
The Ordinances Governor and
limited Parkes's duties.
chiefs,
he was
No
longer liaison between
restricted to passing
on through
Colonial Secretary information received from the District
the
Com-
some of whom ignored him and wrote to the Colonial Secretary direct. He would have preferred to the House Tax a Poll Tax. Those who paid would have been given a disc as receipt, those who failed, put to road work. He believed many would have paid for the sake of the disc, *to show they belonged to the Government', and that taxation would have been spread more evenly instead of falling on the missioners,
chiefs.
Colony and Protectorate, so differently administered, had to be more accurately than by the vague old cession treaties. Economy demanded the Protectorate administration extend as far as possible. So Ordinances were passed putting most of the country within the Protectorate: the Colony was limited to the peninsula. Southern delimited
Koya, and the Sherbro
District
(which included Sherbro
Island,
Mano, the land between The quarter-mile coastal
Turner's Peninsula and the coastline as far as the
Jong and Kittam mouths, and Imperi). ceded to give fiscal control, were put into the Protectorate, but subject to the Colony's Customs regulations: to have made them Colony would have opened too easy a refuge for tax-dodgers. This dehmitation entailed no formal relinquishment of sovereignty over the parts of the Colony put into the Protectorate. Nevertheless the whole Protectorate was henceforth treated as one unit, under an administrative arrangement which made it unnecessary to define where the
strips
the Colony's boundaries ran. the Mokassi prisoners after the Indemnity Ordinance
Cardew released
warning to keep the peace. Lewis, however, still sought to bring their case before the courts. So Cardew included in the Delimitation Ordinance of 1896 a clause to prevent tlie Supreme Court hearing any action already pending from the Protectorate. Lewis
was
passed,
with
a
protested to the Colonial Office
though
legally indefensible,
concession allowed
where
it
was decided
was administratively
that the clause,
desirable.
—no comfort to the lawyer—was that 544
The only
if such actions
were brought in the Protectorate courts, the htigants should not have to pay double costs. Thus two legal systems adjoined. In the Sherbro District Alldridge, the District Commissioner, administered English law, unaffected by the Protectorate Ordinances, as if he were a magistrate in Freetown. Cardew chose as Assistant District Commissioner, Imperi, in 1896, not a Frontier officer but Wilham Hughes, the Creole Police Clerk, qualified not only by honesty and reliability, but by his knowledge of the Colony's laws laws his neighbour the District Commissioner, Ronietta, could ignore. So a Bulom living on the Protectorate side of the boundary was under the stern jurisdiction of an officer who could punish him summarily and tax him: on the Colony side he was protected by the safeguards of the courts and untaxed.
—
Though Garrett prophesied that the Imperi leopard murders would stop when Macfoy died, they went on. Detectives were sent from the Colony
police to investigate: one
was
said to
associated with an Alligator Society himself.
into giving evidence; three
have been formerly
They
men were convicted by
and hanged. The
press reported
teacher, a report
which
terrorized people
the
Supreme Court
one of them an ex-Sunday school
inspired a grotesque, sadistic novel, J. C.
Grant's The Ethiopian.
Cardew
deliberately kept Imperi within the
Colony
to continue
strict detective supervision. Ordinances passed in 1895 and 1896 gave government powers to imprison chiefs suspected of being connected with Leopard Societies, and made it a felony to own the knives or
leopard skins they used, or Borfima.
Two more Then
were sentenced down.
the murders died
to death for leopard
By
the end of 1897
to incorporate Imperi in Ronietta District as part
and arranged
F.
W.
to
do so
Dove, the
in 1896.
felt it safe
of the Protectorate,
in April 1898.
barrister's brother,
entering a profession,
murders
Cardew
went
educated in England, instead of
into business like his father (p. 493), traded
Northern Rivers, then
Freetown.
He was one of
the
first
1896, just before the Protectorate
was
proclaimed, he got a development concession from a chief in the
Ku-
in the
City Councillors. In June nike country and registered
it
in
in Freetown.
545
He and
Harris,
who had
obtained Gallinas concessions, then
about floating the Anglo-
set
African India-Rubber and Trading Co. Ltd., in association with a
London company-promoter, J. S. Sawrey. Cardew was thus forced to reopen the
question whether chiefs
could alienate land (pp. 491-2). Parkes again replied with precedents Naimbana's grant of 1788, and property Heddle to show they had
—
and Macfoy had acquired, subsequently disposed of as freeholds. He could have added that land in Bonthe, ceded by chiefs in 1861, was freehold, deriving from Crown grant, and that government in buying some of Harris's Sulima property (p. 432) had recognized it implicitly as his,
not the granting chief's or
Cardew, anxious
to
his people's.
prevent
foreign
capitalists
exploiting
the
Protectorate peoples, was as anxious that they exploit the untapped natural
His
resources.
1896 Protectorate
Ordinance implied that
Protectorate land was alienable, safeguarded existing concessionaires*
mineral rights in the Crown, and allowed the Governor of waste land. But the Colonial Office would not allow ^Protectorate' to mean depriving protected people of land they might have no right to part with, and giving it to absentee speculators. Cardew had to repeal the lands clauses in the Ordinance and await rights, vested
to dispose
further consideration.
Even so, speculators were attracted. The West African Manufacturing and Development Co., a London company concerned primarily with supplying Freetown with ice and mineral waters, sent an agent to the
Koranko country prise Ltd., District.
an
in 1897 to get a concession. Representatives
Irish syndicate,
Lemberg secured
got one from
Ba
rights over the
Komp
of Enter-
of Yele, Ronietta
Atlantic shore between
Ribi and Kamaranka. Early in 1898 a party from Reading, the
Development Syndicate, came
Many who
to
Mendi
look for gold in the Upper Bagru.
work Congo or
flocked to Freetown from the Protectorate seeking
engaged to go down the Coast (p. 504), particularly to the Fernando Po. Despite reports of ill-treatment in the Congo, and death lists published in the Gazette, they were attracted by service which paid an accumulated lump sum instead of a daily wage they found it hard to save. Mende particularly pressed overseas (as once into the Sherbro) F. W. Migcod published in 1908, when he had never visited Mende country, a Mende Grammar compiled from what he had :
learnt
from
carriers
and labourers
in the
546
Gold Coast.
In the
Cameroons,
where the German government recruited them, Mary Kingsley found they had introduced the Poro. Congo recruiting alarmed the Enghsh pubhc: in 1896 Chamberlain told Parliament it would stop. Soon after, Porter applied to ship labourers to build the Panama canal. Cardew disliked the exodus of labour, as he feared to depopulate the Protectorate. Nevertheless he
assumed that Chamberlain's prohibition only applied to labour for the Congo government, sanctioned it, and let C.J. G. Barlatt take labourers
Congo Railway, a private company, which he was agent for. Chamberlain was indignant particularly as Porter supplemented his Freetown source with Krumen, engaged on the Kru Coast by giving the chiefs ;£i a head. At Panama the labourers fell ill from beri-beri; some died; they mutinied and were repatriated. The American ambassador in London accused Porter of virtually for the
—
him to The Congo government
reviving the slave trade: Kruger was said to have approached
supply labour for the South African mines. terminated his employment
was severely
restricted.
be submitted
officially.
as
Consular Agent. Henceforth recruiting
Contracts to ship labour from Freetown had to
The Governor was forbidden
unless certain the local labour supply
to approve
them
was adequate, and the conditions
of service unexceptionable.
Canon Taylor Smith went
as
chaplain to the Ashanti Expedition in
1895 on board ship with the Queen's grandson. Prince Battenberg.
The
Henry of
prince died at sea, and he hurried back to deliver his
dying message to the bereaved
made him an honorary memory, raised money
The Queen
royalties.
liked
him and
royal chaplain. He, to perpetuate the prince's
Memorial building
for a Battenberg
in Free-
town.
When Ingham that the Sierra
resigned in 1896
it
Leone Church should,
other Colonies, be disestablished. to the bishop's salary.
bishop was (and,
as
still
also
like
at the
Colonial Office
Anglican churches in most
The Colony stopped
The Colonial Chaplaincy was
contributing
abolished.
But the
paid ^^300 a year to provide gaol and hospital services
Cardew
^50 was
was decided
stressed privately,
a
European
at
the Cathedral).
voted annually towards maintaining the Cathedral
was commuted for ^1,000. Though bishops were no longer appointed by Letters Patent they were still Crown appointments. Taylor Smith was chosen in 1897 to fibric; in 1906
it
547
succeed Ingham.
He welcomed
Leone Church the independent body
The
Five Pastors' case
still left
making
disestablishment as
had long purported Waterloo
it
rival churches at
the Sierra to be.
—Taylor's,
the Pastors', and Williams's, the Bishop's. Early in 1897 some of WilHams's congregation brought in Mende from Matindi, a neighbouring village long famed for sinister doings, and demolished Taylor's
chapel of ease at Kosso
Town, Waterloo. The
ringleaders
were
tried in
Freetown. There was great excitement, and the jury acquitted
against
overwhelming evidence. Re-tried, they were again acquitted. Crown and, as in Spaine's case, was disgusted
Lewis prosecuted for the
by
the verdict.
The government, with
his approval,
decided to
restrict
the scope ofjuries further.
Taylor Smith,
The
a strict disciplinarian,
combined
tact
with firmness.
Five Pastors were reconciled, and he magnanimously
a canon,
made Pearce
Macaulay an archdeacon.
In 1828 George Stephen Caulker, like
many
contemporaries in Free-
town, found himself indebted to Macaulay and Babington. So for a debt of fy9A os i id he assigned to the firm the annual rent of ^^52 is Sd, paid him by government for the Banana Islands, hi 1842 the future
Lord Macaulay sold the firm's remaining Sierra Leone assets and the rent was bought by a Commissariat officer. He died in i860, and it passed to his widow. Rowe questioned this annual payment to a widow lady in the West Indies, but as the rent seemed to have been regularly assigned, the Colonial Office let it go on. In 1896 Cardew pointed out that the original debt, allowing 5 per cent interest, had been liquidated in 1883. So the assigned payment ceased. Though the Caulkers had been given stipends in 1881 in lieu of all previous payments, it was decided that the Bananas rent, made under a special treaty, was not included, so it reverted to them, divided between the two branches.
many
of West African government to which made policy 'a coma accompanied by fits', the coma its ordinary state, the fits the activities of a new Governor, exploding on a course different from his predecessor's. Yet against the disadvantages of discontinuous policy could be set the deterioration in health and enthusiasm winch normally overtook the
Mary
Kingsley ascribed
evils
the constant changes of Governor,
548
Governor who stayed more than a short period in Sierra Leone. Kennedy, full of reforming 'fits' in 1868, by 1871 was chiefly concerned with finding another post; Hay, still energetic in 1888 after thirteen years in West Africa, had lost interest by 1891. The vigour and enthusiasm that carried Cardew happily through hundreds of miles of bush in 1894, and set him planning reforms for the Colony, administration for the Protectorate, had waned by 1897 when his services were rewarded with a knighthood. Neuralgia, insomnia,
shingles,
making him
irritability,
impute
powerful frame,
racked his
exaggerating
his
of advice, quick to take offence and law cut liim ofl^ from the senior firmly as from Lewis, and confirmed
suspicious
evil motives. Distaste for the
natural associates, as
officials, his
his inclination to rule alone.
Even the Colonial
Office
administration
torate
work out
his
plans,
(the
was not always consulted over lands
policy,
for
instance).
his Protec-
He would
then pass them through Legislative Council,
disregarding criticism and offending the public. His
Ordinance, passed without the draft being
first
first
Protectorate
submitted to London,
had to be amended three times. The Protectorate boundary in October 1896 was altered in November 1897. So his haste his plans
down
laid
to execute
tended to delay them.
Yet, if he disregarded criticism, he was flexible enough to change his
up country, when he saw flintlock guns in every village, he planned to forbid the sale of arms. On second thoughts he realized they were needed for hunting, and contented himself with mind. After
his first tour
forbidding sale in
districts officially
As were
he wanted to
a teetotaller
said to
import
restrict the sale
be so strong they could be used
Kingsley found them too
Whatever
proclaimed disturbed.
weak
their strength they
rum below
as
were
which
spirits,
to preserve her specimens
of
often adulterated. Retailers
Mary fish).
would
proof, paying reduced duty, and add pepper,
duty on below-proof
quality, but not affecting
An
Ordinance of 1896 o£ proof, improving the general question of the morality of selling
aniseed, or tobacco to give a strong taste. raised the
of trade
turpentine (though
spirits to that
spirits in Africa.
While
Colony depended largely on revenue from spirit duties no was possible. Cardew had to be content with forbidding traders in the Protectorate to retail for consumption on the the
drastic restriction
premises, or give presents of spirits to natives
Central and South Africa). 549
(a
rule enforced in
Nor
did he risk antagonizing the chiefs irretrievably
by aboHshing he had originally intended. The Protectorate Ordinances merely allowed slaves to buy their freedom for ^4
domestic slavery,
{^2
as
and declared
for a child)
that slavery w^ould not be recognized
by
law. So masters could not legally retain slaves against their will, but
were not made
to free them.
At the Colonial
Office
W.
more
over-ambitious,
who
H. Mercer,
responsible for Sierra Leone,
felt
likely
to contribute to a
little
became primarily
He
to raise opposition than revenue.
bound
suspected the argument that people are
ment would have
in 1896
Cardew's House Tax premature and to
pay
for their govern-
appeal to hitherto independent chiefs, forced
government they had not asked
for.
He and
his
colleagues urged caution.
As 1898 approached Cardew too realized he had underestimated the of collecting. During 1897 he recruited fifty more Frontiers, bring the strength to 574, including twelve European officers, five Creole sub-officers. But the District Commissioners still had only two clerks, an interpreter, and ten Court Messengers each, to collect tax difficulties
in areas averaging 5,000 square miles.
Cardew had no
fear
of active
resistance to the tax
:
he trusted
his
District Commissioners' firmness,
backed by the augmented Frontier
would overcome
As the Protectorate could not be
Police,
ruled without
money
plan a
He
his
trial.
to
passive.
pay
for
it,
the Colonial Office decided to give
agreed, at their suggestion, to
exempt the remote
Panguma and Koinadugu Districts at first, and tax only Karene, Ronietta and Bandajuma. He also exempted villages of under twenty houses, introduced a
flat rate
number of rooms (which
window
English
be taken
as 55.
tax),
and
of
55 a
house instead of grading by the
News compared
the Weekly
said a bushel
to the former of rice or palm kernels would
These concessions reduced the estimate for the
first
year to ^^8,000.
To
save expense he put substantive District Commissioners only in
the three tax-paying districts. Captain
been
at
W.
Sharpe, in Karene, had
S.
school at Radley, then after service in a militia regiment, seven
years in the ranks of the regular
he joined the Frontier Police
army
in 1894,
in India;
commissioned
in 1890,
aged thirty-four. Captain C. E.
Carr, in Bandajuma, a year younger, had also served in the ranks,
and was
several years in the
Niger
Company
550
territories before
joining
the Frontier Police in 1895. Captain E. C. d'H. Fairtlough, born and
bred in Ireland, was commissioned from the Dublin Military in 1888, aged twenty,
and joined the Frontier Police
won a D.s.o. in the Luawa man Cardew wanted. the type of fighter,
The
he
in 1894;
Academy
an intrepid
country in 1896. All three were
Ordinances, which gave Creoles a legal means
Protectorate
of collecting debts up country, also subjected them to government. District Commissioners deprived them of the immunity from punishment they had long enjoyed under chiefs. Carr's first case at
Bandajuma was
against
a
Creole,
for
flogging and brutalizing a
debtor.
Some complained
licences and restricting the sale of spirits would Loko they threatened to give up trading. But the Jong traders who made their progress to Bandajuma to pay licences, accompanied by retinues of hammockmen and porters, showed no signs of being ruined. Indeed some welcomed licences which handi-
ruin them. At Port
capped
their
poorer native
rivals.
Traditional horror of direct taxation inclined them, and the Free-
town
press, to
The rate was declared was levied on. Those who the 'Hut Tax', an emotive name which gradually
disapprove of the House Tax.
disproportionate to the value of the *huts' disliked
it
called
it
it
superseded 'House Tax' altogether. Traders, Creole and European, prophesied that the natives
would
take to the bush rather than pay, and bring trade to a standstill. T. C.
Bishop begged in Legislative Council that
it
be delayed
till
the chiefs
were more used to the new government. The Freetown and Manchester Chambers sent protests to London. But, feeling their views based more on hearsay than evidence, the Colonial Office preferred Cardew's. If they
claimed that years in West Africa gave them experience
Cardew lacked, he could retort that few European traders ever travelled beyond a few miles of the sea, while he had slept in dozens of the huts he was preparing to tax, all over the Protectorate. Indeed Cardew travelled more widely there than any previous European, perhaps than any Creole. Laing, Reade and Garrett only explored the north, Zweifel and Mousticr the route to the Niger; Hay and Rowc never left the coastal plain; Alldridgc was never beyond Luawa until 1894 when he accompanied Cardew on his first tour. 551
In October 1896 the
Department of Native
the chiefs explaining the
new
tions
Cardew had given on
first
Protectorate
Affairs sent a circular to
system, amphfying the general explana-
his tours.
Ordinance were
The
elaborate provisions of the
out in the reassuring,
set
self-
consciously stilted style in which government addressed chiefs
from the high-flown, often
(as
which chiefs' letter writers, usually Creole traders, rephed). Iriterpreted by government messengers who tended to garble a comphcated statement distinct
they scarcely understood themselves,
them.
The
Many
never heard
it
rather Biblical style, in
it
alarmed rather than reassured
read and had to rely
on hearsay
versions.
most attention: perhaps the them, as minor officials usually do
penal, restrictive clauses attracted
messengers preferred to
stress
everywhere. Instead of feeling their rights safeguarded, the chiefs
them suddenly undermined. What Cardew considered
felt
them go on hearing was construed as a threat to punish those who heard cases that ought to go elsewhere. The penalties prescribed for specific offences were taken as threats to flog, fine, imprison or deport at will. A clause prohibiting sentences of flogging on women was understood to forbid a man to beat his wife. It was believed (though not mentioned in the Ordinance) that chiefs would be forbidden to hear 'woman palavers', cases of alleged adultery with their wives, often brought only to extort money. It was even rumoured that polygamy would be put down. The lands clauses of the first Ordinance were taken as a threat to deprive them of their land, trading licences of their right to trade, the Hut Tax of their homes. They and their predecessors had long known the British government as an unexacting neighbour, sometimes alarming them with expeditions, latterly burdening them with police, but on the whole kindly, as suited the sway of a benevolent Queen. Her changed manner aroused incredulous indignation. Accustomed for centuries to receive from Europeans the benefits of trade, they could not understand why it should be restricted, as they conceived, by licences. Ready to admit that government had brought them advantages, peace and the end of certain cases in their
it
a concession, letting
courts,
pay for them. One chief was impossible the Queen should lack money when her head
the slave trade, they said
own
saw no reason
to
was on every coin. Accustomed to government's paying
and to strangers paying their landlords customs, or rent, they had no experience of paying regularly themselves. Any taxes they collected from their stipends,
people were levied at their discretion, not at fixed rates at definite
They
intervals.
mistrusted innovation.
tax for dwellings was a kind of rent
They
also suspected that
paying
which implied they were no longer
theirs.
Nor
did they
know what
authority government had to rule and tax
them. The Protectorate Proclamation of 1896 was never proclaimed up country. Most treaty chiefs had done no more than promise friendship
At Magbele, Pa Suba began
in return for protection.
to
pay back
They
his stipend, to contract
felt
degraded
at
Commissioner
District
collecting
money
out of the Protectorate.
having to share their jurisdiction with a
who had power
to punish
them, in courts
where their own subjects could have them brought to trial. The slaves whose labour they depended on were no longer under their control. Even before 1896 chiefs who had Frontier posts in their towns had found it hard to retain them, for it was accepted that a slave who held on to a British flagstaff was automatically free. Nor could they get back wives who went to live with Frontiers (and so escaped the field work chiefs' wives had to do). Despite Cardew's efforts and assurances, the Frontier Pohce were still not properly under control. Small parties were still scattered in out-stations. There was a high turn-over among officers: three died and another was invalided in 1896; two were got rid of as unsuitable in 1897. Men were constantly being discharged or dismissed. Sometimes recruits with a month's service had to be made N.c.o.s to keep up the strength.
All
over
the
terrorized chiefs protested. In
Protectorate
and people, seized
some
assumed despotic powers,
their goods, brutalized those
who
of a uniform was enough to drive Surgeon who investigated charges
places the sight
people to the bush.
them
Frontiers
A
District
Bandajuma found most admitted their guilt freely, apparently imagining they had a right to oppress. Now the chiefs felt even more at their mercy, fearing the District Commissioners, former Frontier officers, would rely on them for information, and give them against
in
support.
At Sembehun, Upper Bagru, Sergeant Edward Coker, a Tcmne of the detachment, installed his mistress Nancy Tucker, a trader from the Kittam, as chief in 1897, in succession to Rowe's old ally Humpa Rango who had died some years bcfDre. She had no comicxion with the Bagru beyond having settled there to trade, yet government recognized her. in charge
821613
^^3
Nn
At Karene
the District Headquarters
were
built
on
the chiefs' burial
ground. They were burnt down, but rebuilt on the same
site. The chief Brima Sanda o£ Sanda, having died in 1896, there was a long interregnum while the succession was disputed. Sharpe wanted a successor appointed without too much delay: after eighteen months he had a candidate of his own installed with great difficulty. Bai Koba, of the upper Loko country, by tradition king of all the Loko, was senile and bedridden. The government put in another chief to collect tax. The chiefs refused to recognize him. When Sharpe was on leave in 1897 Captain Cave-Brown-Cave,
there,
an imperious, overbearing Frontier
officer,
acted for him.
He
told the
Paramount Chiefs to come to Karene to receive the gold-headed staffs which were to be their official insignia. Bai Koblo of Marampa and Bai Fold of Mafoki never came, so he sent Frontiers to bring them by force. When Bai Foki's escort reached Port Loko the people, seeing their chief under arrest, rioted and rescued him. He was not re-arrested, but a Port Loko headman was fined for having taken part in the rescue.
At Mahera, Rokel,
the
Loko Smart family wanted
independence of the Koya chiefs
who had
to establish their
them live young man partly educated in Freetown, asked Bai Kompa of Koya to crown him chief. He refused, so Smart got in the Frontiers, and had himself crowned and officially recognized. originally let
there. Charles Smart, a
In such cases the chiefs
felt
deprived of redress, for they had
lost their
traditional channel of complaint. They could only approach the
Governor through
the District Commissioner, an
Parkes, their familiar, trusted intermediary. Those
unknown ahen, not the Bulom Shore
on
were deeply aggrieved at having to take their complaints to Karene, Koya chiefs to Kwclu, foreign countries to them, instead of going direct to Freetown.
To
such encroachments on their pohtical independence
added what long under
is
less easy to assess, fears
Mushm
influence.
progress. Smart, at Mahera,
chief there.
When
of an
Christian
may
be
alien rchgion. In the north,
missions had
was the only even
made
little
ostensibly Christian
the C.M.S. decided to send agents to Kasse in 1897
Bai Bureh tried to keep them out.
But in the Sherbro and Mende countries a generation o^ converts had grown up luider the systematic guidance of the American missions. The Caulkers and Tuckers were Christians. Baha of Mafwe, Thomas
Bongo of Lugu, Seppe of Bumpe,
all
554
joined the Wesleyans. At Roti-
who
died in 1897, was succeeded by his son Santigi Bundu, educated at the Freetown Grammar School. At Tikonko the
funk Suri Kesebe,
chief gave the United Free Methodists his cliildren to educate; at
Bo
The Rev. J. B.
W.
he
let
them
Johnson the
take a grandcliild to school in Freetown.
(the Sub-Inspector's brother), a u.B.C. pastor
Bumpe
twenty years in
River area, destroyed *devil houses' there unmolested
without people seeming to mind.
Yet some
chiefs
had reservations
If they joined they necessarily
in
welcoming the new
took a subordinate place
:
religion.
if not,
they
were cut off from an influence that might set their subjects against them. At Taiama, Foray Vong tried vainly to keep out a u.B.C. mission. Madam Yoko, so compliant to government, was deeply suspicious of missionaries, gave them land unwillingly and resisted conversion herself.
of the was the
u.B.C. missionaries, disliking all secret societies, disapproved
Poro which, whether or not
it
conduced
to 'devil worship',
strongest pohtical force in the country. Wilberforce took an active
Bundu, who took charge at Rotifunk without being properly elected, was believed to owe his position partly to mission support. The Christian Baha was officially recognized as chief of Mafwe against his people's will. So chiefs had grounds for suspecting the missions threatened their power, and could feel their suspicions confirmed when u.B.C. pastors, American and Creole, preached sermons at Shenge and Mano Bagru, telling people they must pay tax. part in politics. Santigi
Cardew altogether underestimated the opposition the Protectorate Ordinances aroused. During 1896 he travelled nearly 700 miles, telling chiefs
about the coming
He assumed
tax.
They
assented politely or said nothing.
they approved, without realizing their assent might be
dislike of contradicting, their silence sceptical conviction that the plans he outlined would never be executed. So he misconstrued the genuine horror that animated their protests, suspecting them worked up by
Creole
'agitators'.
of protest came in from the more accessible chiefdoms. 897 a group of Temne chiefs came to Freetown to send the Secretary of State a petition drawn up for them by W. T. G. Lawson. Some of their apprehensions were misconceived the lands clauses, for instance, were already repealed. Cardew was on leave, so the actingGovernor was told to explain to them what the Ordinances really enacted and why they were being taxed. Nevertheless they stayed in Freetown to await Cardew's return. In October they petitioned LegisPetitions
In July
1
—
555
lative
in the
new
system and, prompted by sympathizers Freetown mercantile community, cabled to the Colonial Office
Council against the
for a reduction in tax.
On
November Cardew
what they had misunderstood, and explained the concessions he was making for the first year of collection. But again there was misunderstanding. They imagined he said villages of less than eighty houses would be exempt and had to be told later, by letter, he had said twenty. Nor did his pointing out that it was usual throughout the world for people to contribute towards the expense of government reconcile them to the Hut Tax. *Our own true fear', they reiterated by letter after the interview, 'is that paying for our huts naturally means no right to our his return in
elucidated carefully
Country'.
South of Bonthe
name may have Yoni
lived near
the
Yoni, Sherbro Island, lived Ghana Lewis (whose
in the 1850s).
name Banka,
he secured
at
derived from the slave-trader, Louis, or Lewis,
The grandson of Kong Kuba who, under
signed Turner's Treaty in 1825 as King of Sherbro,
a stipend in 1881 as his representative.
he used the society to extend
was known often
who
A leading Poro
his personal influence.
By
man,
the 1890s he
Be Sherbro of Yoni. (Though a Bulom, his title was written *Bai' *Bey' was now discredited, though still sometimes as
;
When
of Impcri, an office vacant since 1870, was elected again in 1896 he crowned him, thereby, in accordance with customary usage, securing his obedience. Alldridge described and photographed the coronation. In February 1897 he and Francis Fawundu, a successful trader, used).
educated
at
a
Sokong, or
ruler,
an American mission school,
who had
father in 1894 ^s chief of Mano, Kittam, led a
succeeded his
group of chiefs
to Free-
Cardew explained them they would have to obey, pointing out to Be Sherbro that as he lived in the Colony he was unaflccted. On his return Be Sherbro got the Poro to prohibit the sale of produce to Europeans or Creoles. When D. F. Wilbraham, Master and Registrar, acting District Commissioner for Alldridge, remonstrated, he explained they were boycotting trade because they were dissatisfied with prices, disliked licences, and had no labour, as they were losing their slaves. The traders felt sure these excuses hid a plot to drive them and the government from the Sherbro. town
its
to protest against the Protectorate Ordinance.
provisions and told
556
As an inhabitant of the Colony, Be Sherbro could not be summarily arrested, but an Ordinance was drafted to detain him if necessary. Two of his supporters were convicted for fining a woman who had ignored the Poro and sold a Creole fufu. The embargo was then given up. To prevent it being revived, an Ordinance was passed making the use of Poro, or anything similar, to restrain trade a criminal offence. Thus the Poro chiefs lost the control over produce they had previously had power to exercise.
While the embargo was in force Hughes, alone in Imperi, heard that Sokong had gone to the Mabanta country to try and enhst the chief of Mokele in a special Poro. He reported that there were signs of a planned outbreak against the Protectorate Ordinance. But Wilbraham was sceptical: 'It is not likely', he minuted, 'that Bey Sherbro, Sokong or anybody else would resort to actual arms to enforce their views.' the
557
XXII CARDEWmany
preferred not to harrass his District Commissioners
with too
exphcit orders, relying
carry out the pohcy he outlined.
how ness.
lieu
84
to collect tax, only asking
them
to
He
on
their initiative to
them to decide combine patience with firmleft it to
Each was sent a 56 lb. bushel measure to take the produce paid in of cash, a further concession, as the traders' normal measure held
lbs.
Fairtlough was on leave; the District Surgeon,
Dr Hood, who had
only been out since February 1897, was acting in Ronietta
He
District.
December telling them to come and pay. Madam Yoko, faithful to the government which consistently protected her, and Charles Smart, who owed government his position, obeyed. Nancy Tucker, not yet formally installed, said she would pay when she was, and did. The rest refused. Hood took some Frontiers to Taiama, seized cattle belonging to Foray Vong, who then paid, and distrained on some Creole traders' property. Smart told the doctor his Paramount Chief (and enemy) Bai Kompa of Koya had forbidden his sub-chiefs to pay, and had sent his second in command. Pa Nembana, to say that if he did they would kill him. So Captain H. G. Warren, the Assistant Inspector at Kwelu, went with Smart to arrest the two chiefs for intimidation. Bai Kompa said he was ill and retired to bed at Romangi. Warren, a fierce little Irishman, dragged him out forcibly, not without difficulty as the elderly chief sent a circular to the chiefs in
and heavy. He refused to be taken to Kwelu. Warren, uncertain whether Romangi was Colony or Protectorate (the delimitation left the Koya boundary vague), realizing he might have acted illegally,
was
large
him go to Freetown. When Cardew received Hood's
let
Frontier being
Moore,
thrown
reports,
which
also
On
a
into the river at Mokassi, he sent Captain S.
a Frontier Inspector since 1894, to take charge
returned.
mentioned
imprisonment: he wanted to
till
Fairtlough
Moore gave Nembana twelve months flog him too, but Cardew would not let
Smart's evidence
liim.
558
at Kwelu. Among them was Fula Yoni war-chief who, having served seven years as a Mansa, a former pohtical prisoner, was not going to risk again annoying the government. He told Moore secretly that the Yoni Paramount Chief, Bai Sherbro of Yoni, had sworn them not to pay tax. Moore promptly put the principal chiefs in gaol: he had made them
He
assembled the Ronietta chiefs
leave their 6—7,000 followers outside the town, across the river.
only released them
when
He
they promised to pay, and kept several at
Kwelu until they started.
demanding letters, summoned the Bandajuma Mafwe, and told them that, however poor, they would have
Carr, instead of sending chiefs to
at least to make a token payment. They asked for a week to consider. While he was waiting he heard that Dr Arnold, the District Surgeon, whom he had sent beyond the Moa to warn people to pay, had been mobbed by an angry crowd. The doctor then invalided himself to Freetov^i where Cardew accused him of malingering. He resigned and went home. "When the chiefs met again they said they were unable to pay. Carr, who had already learnt they had decided in advance to refuse, arrested five, and took them to gaol at Bandajuma. Though the town was filled with their followers, the arrested chiefs allowed no resistance. As the District seemed so disturbed, and arresting cliiefs did not bring in tax, Cardew telegraphed for permission to send a company of the 1st West India Regiment to Bandajuma. He instructed District Commissioners to get in three months supplies of rice to their Head-
of arms in the anyone found carrying them
quarters, issued a Proclamation forbidding the sale
Protectorate, and gave orders to have
disarmed. Several
Bandajuma
to get the tax taken
chiefs
off.
were
Cardew
in
Freetown making
sent for
Tikonko, and told them to go back and to, and went home. Francis
Fawundu, however, declined
Momo
start collecting.
to
a final effort
Kai Kai and Sandi of
go with them
Both promised to see
Cardew,
questioning not only government's right to tax, but whether, under
made with Havelock in 1883, he was subject to Cardew was not going to argue about the nature
the treaty his father
government at all. and extent of British sovereignty he considered all inhabitants o{ the Protectorate British subjects. As Fawimdu went on denymg he was :
559
British,
Cardew deposed him. The Colonial
legal point, later
upheld the administrative
Office, dubious
about the
only suggesting that
act,
if
he
submitted he might be re-instated.
The chiefs imprisoned borrow the money from
tion then started. Early in
needed
—
Bandajuma began paying some had to and were released. Tax collecFebruary Cardew decided troops were not
at
P.Z.'s agent
—
after all.
Sharpe, back from leave early in January, went to collect tax at Port
Loko on February excused themselves
the
as
5th.
The Creole
traders,
summoned
first,
being only tenants: he replied that the Ordinance
required occupiers to pay, irrespective of ownership. They then told him they were ready to, but had been warned by the chiefs that the first who did would be murdered. The Alikali of Port Loko was lying paralysed; a regent Bokari Bamp, was acting. Sharpe told him and the other chiefs to undertake
not to molest the Creoles. Bokari declined, saying that tax for their houses, they
would
explained the difference between tax and rent.
Sharpe detained
Bokari
him
He
still
in custody over the following day, a
declined, so
Sunday.
argued it was not for him but for Bai Foki, their overwhether tax should be paid. Sharpe however held him and
also
lord, to say
his chiefs personally responsible for
them
if traders paid
refuse their landlords rent. Sharpe
again. After
much
obeying.
On Monday
he gathered
persuasion they agreed half-heartedly not to
hinder Creoles from paying. But the assurance was so half-hearted the it. When Sharpe had them up in court they and jeering at him. Frontiers were sent to distrain on their shops, but found they had removed their goods, leaving bundles of worthless rubbish; when they were opened in court the Creole women crowed with delight. Unable to collect, Sharpe fmed thirty-
Creoles dared not rely on
still
refused, laughing
eight for tax-evasion and contempt.
Again he demanded the chiefs promise not to molest the traders, and start collecting themselves. As they still refused, he arrested Bokari and four others, sentenced three to twelve months, two to fifteen months imprisonment with hard labour, and shipped them into a boat for Freetown gaol. As at Mafwe, the arrested chiefs told their people not to
resist.
Like
Moore and Carr (who wrote from Bandajuma
the chiefs to
know
if the arrests
were 560
legal),
after arresting
Sharpe was determined to
uphold authority without being hindered by formahties, wanted. But where
his colleagues
as
Cardew
detained chiefs until they promised
to pay, he sentenced them, under the Protectorate Ordinances, to the
ignominy of hard labour in Freetown. Nor did the grounds for conviction amount to much more than disobedience, reinforced by the opinion of Sub-Inspector Crowther, long in the District, that they were bad characters. Once they were gone, the Creoles hastened to pay, and apologize. Sharpe remitted or reduced most of their fines. Then, again at Crowther's suggestion,
unconnected with
he appointed Suri Bunki,
a rich
Port Loko trader,
either ruling family, to act as regent
and
collect
tax.
Bai Bureh of Kasse remained aloof from government after the attempted 1894 (p- 522), drawing his stipend, but treating the District Commissioner with reserve, even contempt. Aged between fifty and sixty, of powerful, dignified build, his health was unimpaired by the heavy drinking that made Cardew dismiss him as a worthless drunkard. His influence and reputation extended far beyond his comparatively unimportant country. It was rumoured at Port Loko that he was in arms and meant to attack. The alarmed inhabitants, determined not to pay tax to the arrest in
usurping Suri Bunki, started moving away, taking the palsied Alikali
with them. Sharpe was convinced that until he put
down
Bai Bureh,
believed government's principal opponent, the tax paid.
So he sent him a message, ordering him to start hoping to provoke him to open defiance
—
whom
he
would never be collecting imme-
—
and wrote to of Frontiers to go and arrest him. A Frontier lance-corporal took the letter but was turned back by his men, who said they had orders not to let any government messenger pass. diately
Cardew
Sharpe
for a reinforcement
later affirmed (but the lance-corporal denied) that
he returned
met Bai Bureh, who had refused to take the letter, and threatened Sharpe's life. But whether Sharpe believed the awaited saying he had
defiance had taken place or not, his plans were already made, even
explained publicly to the people at Port Loko.
On
the
17th Tarbet
(who
failed
to
and his office baggage and ;^200 in tax-money, set
forty-six Frontiers, Sharpe
561
arrest staff,
oti
Bai Bureh in 1894), and sixty carriers with
along the Karcne road,
at Romeni, the Frontiers going off to Mahera, where Bai Burch was beheved to be, the noncombatants going on to
proposing to divide
When
Romeni they found of armed men who said they were there to elect a king. Sharpe went with an escort to get news of Bai Bureh. He began talking to a man (through his interpreter, as he knew no Temne) when they closed round him. Alarmed, he seized the man to bring him away. When he resisted he struck him on the head with his metal-tipped cane and brought him to the lines by force. The people, now thoroughly excited, began shouting, warning the Frontiers not to advance on Mahera. Sharpe and Tarbet realized they must change their plans. Many of their men were new recruits; Captain Hastings, the Assistant Inspector, had only been a few days in Africa. They decided to escort the baggage together along the Karene road, and postpone Bai Bureh's arrest. A jeering crowd followed the retiring colunm, not touching them, but surrounding them, mocking their cowardice. After a bit Tarbet could stand no more, halted the rearguard and ordered them to fire a estabUsh a base near Karene.
they reached
it full
volley.
A
few
fired back, then, as the Frontiers fired again, dispersed
with some As soon as the Frontier advance-guard heard firing they broke ranks and rushed to the rear. The carriers, left unprotected, threw down their loads and took to the bush. When the column re-formed casualties.
had to carry the loads. When they reached their intended base, they were in no state to take the offensive. Instead they marched on ignominiously to Karene. Shots were fired at them from the bush but Frontiers
none were hit.
A
Bureh had eluded capture. Rumours circulated that the Scarcies chiefs were supporting him-and were preparing to attack Port Loko, where only six Frontiers remained to protect Suri Bunki. At Karene Brima Sanda, an unpopular government nominee, could provide no allies, and was himself a likely victim. Cardew decided to get help from the Army. On February the 24th Major Norris (who had won a D.s.o. as Bai Bureh*s ally at Tambi) with six officers and ninety-two men of the ist West India Regiment, a seven-poimder gun, a Maxim and 500 carriers left for Robat, Great Scarcies (lest their landing at Port Loko be opposed), and marched to Karene. The town was empty. Brima Sanda third time Bai
562
and the Creole traders were sheltering in the barracks. Norris took over the District and proclaimed martial law. Less confident of the Frontiers' abilities than Cardew, he decided against staying in Karcne, as arranged, while they pursued Bai Bureh again. Instead, ignoring Sharpe's protest, he marched his column to Port Loko to secure the line of communication. On the way they were attacked; two officers, six men and twelve carriers were wounded.
They
Romeni and two
retaliated, shelling
other towns, and burning
nine villages, before reaching Port Loko.
There the
six Frontiers,
by rumours, had decided to A young mission
frightened
enforce Cardew's order to disarm the people.
employee refused to give up his sword a Frontier struck him with his rifle-butt and killed him. The incensed relatives set fire to the Frontiers' house; neighbouring houses caught too. As there had recently been a bad accidental fire, half the town was in ruins. Suri Bunki deserted his uncomfortable post for Freetown, was captured escaping, and eventu;
ally killed.
Norris encamped at the c.m.s. station on a nearby hill. The church was taken over as a hospital; Miss Sarah Hickmott, a spirited young missionary from Brighton, nursed the wounded. Early next morning they were attacked, but repulsed the attackers easily. Later in the day reinforcements arrived from Freetown, escorted by a naval launch which shelled Old Port Loko, by the wharf, where armed men were gathered. A drawing of the exploit appeared a few weeks later in the Daily Graphic.
Thomas Chadwick, Freetown kept carrier pigeons, to
agent for G. B. Ollivant and Co.,
with the first news of them now for military use. So a miles from Freetown to Karene in an
forestall business rivals
caravans from the north.
He
despatch could travel the sixty
lent
hour when Norris asked for a reinforcement it arrived next day. Norris wanted three companies, one for Port Loko, one Karene, one to attack Bai Bureh. Cardew felt he exaggerated the danger. Under ;
Colonial Regulations the officer hostilities,
but
Cardew with
to take charge rather than
commanding
his years
of active mihtary
Colonel Bosworth,
seen action. Conceiving the
the troops
campaign
ist w.l.R.,
directed
service tended
who had never
in police rather than military
terms, he preferred the lightly-equipped Frontiers to the regulars, with
and equipment, and sent only one company. Cardcw's interference. But when the reinforcing company marched virtually unopposed to Karcne Cardew felt
their
mountainous
stores
Norris was enraged
at
563
He
Loko and telegraphed to London nearly was quelled. that the rebelhon During their first attack Bai Bureh's men exposed themselves to fire. At least sixty were killed. This taught them to fight from cover, firing out suddenly at the columns marching, distended with carriers, along the narrow bush paths. They were mostly armed with trade guns, useless in open fighting, deadly if fired at close range by an invisible enemy, even if only loaded with slugs stuffed into empty cartridge cases picked up in the soldiers' tracks. When Sharpe left Karene, which had been attacked almost daily, for Port Loko, his escort was again opposed. He and Cardew now realized the Frontiers were ineffective. So another company of regulars was sent from Freetown to Karene through the Kasse country, destroying towns. Meanwhile a column went from Karene to fetch stores Norris had left at Robat, but was forced back with an officer killed, seven men wounded. It then returned to Port Loko, firing volleys into the bush all the way, expending a mass of ammunition, but answering Bai Bureh's strategy of ambush. On the 19th Bosworth went to take charge at Port Loko, to end the futile marching and countermarching, and take the field against Bai Bureh. About 600 carriers had been collected at Karene so he sent a company to collect them. On the way it was attacked not by an enemy firing with only foliage for cover, but from stockades. Two officers were badly wounded, thirty men killed or wounded. On their way back two more officers were wounded, and they retreated to Karene. Bosworth set out at high speed to relieve them, dashing past the stockades without stopping to attack, till, stricken with heat apoplexy, he collapsed and died. Night fell, an officer was killed; not till after midnight did the demoralized rout reach Karene. A day or two before, Colonel J. W. A. Marshall who had served in several West African campaigns arrived from England. He assumed command at Port Loko on April the ist, taking the last of the troops, leaving the Navy to protect Freetown until two more companies arrived from St Helena. His exhausted, discouraged officers despaired of putting down Bai Bureh before the rains. Fever combined with defeat to lower their resistance. The three senior officers were ill, 230 of 600 soldiers disabled by wounds or sickness. Smallpox had broken out among the carriers. With casualties so high, it was hard to recruit more. Railway labourers were taken. Tcmnc could not be relied on: Cardew would not let
justified.
ordered Sharpe to Port
564
Norris ask Bai Yinka,
who was
were unwilling. Without
loyal to government, for help.
carriers the
paralysed. Like European troops they
West
Mende
were and bedding,
India Regiments
moved with
tents
from headquarters on carriers' heads. For some time the War Office had considered recruiting a force of West African regulars. Cardew, who tended to exaggerate the helplessness of the West India Regiments, recommended raising a lightlyequipped force, living off the country, independent of carriers, like the Frontier Police and the French Tirailleurs. When the news oftheKarene campaign reached the War Office, Lord Wolseley, Commander-inChief, remembering the Mende who had served under him in Ashanti in 1873, sent Colonel E. R. P. Woodgate, an experienced staff officer, to take charge of operations, with a cadre of officers for a temporary West African Regiment, to be recruited from the Protectorate, to help eating rations brought
put
down the rising.
Marshall cheered his dispirited officers and started an offensive. the loth he had control of the Karene-Port
Loko
By
road, and could send
columns into the Kasse country. Opposition was fierce and stubborn. The stockades were built of palm logs embedded in the ground, tied with creeper, with laterite boulders along the base. A trench was dug inside where the defenders lay protected, firing through loopholes. Groups of stockades were built close to the road, invisible to the marching column, enabling the defenders to fire out suddenly and concertedly. Bai Bureh enforced discipline, as at Tambi. His men fought like experienced soldiers, withholding
was
useless;
seven-pounder
could only cut their
way
bush to take them in the
shells
fire
until ordered. Frontal attack
broke on the boulders. The attackers
laboriously through the thick surrounding
flank.
By
then the defenders would have dis-
appeared along the network of paths cut behind, leaving the soldiers the
empty glory of taking
a deserted fort.
As they always took their satisfaction of knowing
dead and wounded there was not even the
whether any casualties had been inflicted. One stockade taken, there was often another a few yards on, sometimes twenty in eight miles. All through April and May Marshall's column went round slowly destroying them, and burning towns, till resistance gradually slackened.
The c.M.s. had three European agents at Rogbcri, north-cast of Port Loko and about twenty Creoles dispersed 111 villages. The Temne 565
mistrusted the Europeans, particularly after the troops
Port Loko Mission. So
when
encamped
at the
they tried to leave they were brought
back to Rogberi and, though not ill-treated, made to stay. The Rev. William Humphrey, c.m.s. Secretary and Principal of Fourah Bay
Loko to get in touch with them. him not to go nevertheless he set off until turned back. Still he was determined. A week later he set out again. After a few hours he met some men who, perhaps taking him for a soldier in his white sun-helmet, fired at him. His carriers ran away and left him arguing with them, trying to convince them he was a missionary. But they refused to listen, and hacked him to pieces. Tills unpremeditated murder took place without Bai Bureh's knowCollege, hurried to Port
Norris warned
;
ledge and against his will: though suspicious of the c.m.s., he agents unmolested.
A
few weeks afterwards he
near Karene, explained he had had no part in colleagues an escort to Freetown.
explaining he had
asked
(let
He also
no quarrel with
left their
sent for Elba, stationed
it,
and gave him and
his
gave him a message to Cardew
the English, that he had never been
alone refused) to pay tax, and had not taken arms
till
his
people were fired on.
Soon
after,
Marshall took Rogberi and brought away the remaining
missionaries; those at Port
vanished.
The American
Loko
left too, their
missionaries in the
congregation having
Rokel
also retired to
Freetown.
The Freetown
Tax, dropped the subject
Loko
traders
prices
began to
of the Hut rumours of disturbances began. The Port
papers, having signified initial disapproval till
brought alarming news; trade with the war-area ceased; rise. By March rice was 125 a bushel, the price it normally
Both papers pointed out that their advice had been neglected, and suggested the Hut Tax be reconsidered. Everyone blamed Cardew. Women gathered outside Government House and held a prayer-meeting, processing roimd the garden wall, singing hymns, praying that a miracle soften the Governor s fetched towards the end of the rains.
hard heart.
Cardew,
who had from
the tax, not only ignored their machinations.
affecting influence.
the start assumed the Creoles
them but blamed any
He ascribed He told the
would oppose on
failure in his plans
the shortage of carriers to their dis-
Colonial Office that
was put down and the ring-leaders 566
when
arrested, a Special
the rising
Commission
a
would have
to try
them,
as a
Freetown jury would never find them
guilty.
The Creoles were as suspicious of him. When, on March the nth, he made Legislative Council a statement on the causes of the rising, firmly blaming Bai Bureh as the aggressor, the Weekly News, after thanking him for the
first
(indeed only)
accept his view unreservedly.
Bureh*s message,
it
gave
his
When
statement
official
war-report, declined to
Elba arrived in April with Bai
more
credit than Cardew's.
With no official news, wild rumours spread: more than once the Temne were said to have invaded the Colony. A series of inflammatory articles in the
Weekly News presented the war
as the struggle
of Might
—
and Right, with Bai Bureh 'fighting fearful odds' like Horatius Freetown oratory. The rising became 'The
figure often recalled in
Cardew War'. The despite
its
Sierra
Leone Times aspersed Cardew regularly, and,
contempt for aborigines, showed open sympathy
traditional
with *Our Mahdi'.
Short messages occasionally
by
from Renter's Freetown correspondent, amplified their Liverpool correspondent,
English papers at the end of February. serious,
and ascribed
it
to the
suffering, representatives
They
began appearing in the presented the
war
as
Hut Tax. Alarmed by reports trade was
of the Manchester and Liverpool Chambers which they had always
resolved early in April to ask that the tax,
opposed, be repealed. Later in the
month James Marcus, who
for years
had done
a small
but flourishing cash trade in Freetown, arrived from the Colony, and
gave The Standard an interview, blaming government for disregarding
few days later, was demanding Cardew be recalled for wantonly provoking a war. To these commercial outcries Mary Kingsley, embattled in a letter to the Spectator, added the unfamiliar argument that taxing huts was contrary to the principles of African law, which held (she maintained) that if people pay tax for something it is not theirs. Though, as her critics observed, she had never visited the Protectorate to see whether an abstract 'African law' was valid there, she offered a plausible reason why the Hut Tax was feared and hated. Those at the Colonial Office who had only agreed hesitantly to the tax felt their doubts justified. Mercer proposed it be reduced once the rising was suppressed. Chamberlain agreed; as the news deteriorated, he the traders' warnings. Truth, a
5«57
debated following the traders' advice and repealing it altogether. Cardew's too sanguine hopes, his interference with military operations, turned them against him. Mercer imputed to liim, quite wrongly, the of flogging those who refused to pay tax, alarming Chamber-
intention lain
who
disliked corporal punishment.
So when Michael Davitt, turning from the wrongs of
his
own
oppressed Ireland to those of a distant Protectorate, inquired about the
Hut Tax in Parhament, Chamberlain replied it was only an experiment which would be reconsidered once peace was restored. On May the 3rd he drafted a telegram for Car dew that the traders' criticisms showed a new pohcy must be introduced. On the 6th he asked him to consult with his Council whether they should not proclaim that as
soon
as
the insurgents laid
down
arms, the tax
would be
revised or
suspended.
the Ronietta chiefs were collecting tax. When Bai Kompa complained to Cardew of Warren's having kicked him, he was warned to start collecting too. He promised, and was told to go to Kwelu and
Meanwhile
report to Moore.
He
failed to
appear at Kwelu: Charles Smart seized another chance
to discredit him. *a
He wrote
to
Moore
that Bai
Kompa was
gathering
host of men-in-arms', and was in league with Bai Bureh. Early in
March Moore set out with Smart and forty Frontiers; Fairtlough, back from leave, joined them. They marched about looking for Bai Kompa, shots were exchanged, several Koya people were killed (at least one, it was said, in cold blood), and two towns burnt. There was no Frontier casualty. At the end of a fortnight they had still not found Bai Kompa, so they returned to Kwelu where Moore handed the District over to Fairtlough.
Smart then accused another enemy, Alimami Sena Bundu, of disand suggested to Fairtlough that Fula Mansa be invited to help against him. Early in April Fairtlough, Warren, Smart and fifty Frontiers, with Fula Mansa and his Yoni, marched through Koya again. Fairtlough reported that they were constantly attacked but always beat off their assailants. They killed at least fifty-eight, and burnt at least ten towns; not a single Frontier was hurt. The Yoni did most of
loyalty,
the fighting, rushing ahead, plundering, burning, carrying ofl
and children. the
Bulom
When
Shore. Bai
Kompa
sent
568
^30
tax
women
Bundu had left for money from Ins Inding-
they reached Foredugu, Sena
place,
but Fairtlough, unimpressed, appointed Fula Mansa to act
Chief of Koya and collect tax from the terrorized people. As no system of tax-collection was laid down, Fairtlough collected as he thought best. Fula Mansa levied from most of his new subjects, but some paid to a Creole trader who went round with a Frontier
empowered to collect. Sub-hispector Johnson sent Frontiers through the Ribi country and got /^450 in about a fortnight. Sergeant Coker helped Nancy Tucker collect. Some chiefs raised the money escort
themselves and brought or sent
When Cardew tax, old
(
the
Thomas Neale Caulker
Many
of his subjects
martyr.
Rumours
Shenge
visited
Aunt Lucy
it
first
•
in
u.b.c. convert
that he
still
Kwelu. 1896 and explained the coming
to
must
thought him
filled the
descend from the interior.
among the Caulkers) told He remained silent.
refuse to pay.
William a were paid war would Caught between fear of war, and of a a usurper, his cousin
country that
if tax
—
government which refused to listen to their fears for Moore told them no one would dare to bring war again the people warned the chief against enforcing tax. He, loyal to the government which had appointed and upheld him, determined to. Two Frontiers were sent to help him. They went ruthlessly through the chiefdom, demanding instant payment, tying up those who refused till they paid, or burning their houses, exacting tax even from small, exempted villages, so
—
raising ^^300, but also bitter hatred.
R. C. B. Caulker, reinstated at
Bumpe
in 1895 after exile in the
Gambia (p. 474), at first forbade his people to pay, then changed his mind and began collecting. Cardew believed him associated with Bai Kompa, and he was gaoled at Kwelu. There he admitted that, though he paid government
^10
tax, he had sent jTjo out of reach to Koinawere attacked in a village in his country, so the fiery Warren went with twenty men to repeat Fairtlough's Koya exploits, firing at any gathering that seemed hostile and burning villages. They were said to have shot down a man who refused to give up his sword, and burnt a woman inside a hut. Thus by the end of April Fairtlough had collected over ^2,500, chiefly in cash, from Ronietta.
dugu.
Two
Frontiers
Bandajuma Captain C. B. Wallis, a former militia officer just out from England as an Assistant hispcctor, helped Carr collect. Traders were made sub-collectors to store m their factories the produce which,
In
8^1613
569
00
was chiefly paid in this District. Frontiers went round where to send it. At Wedaro, on the Moa, two Gallinas traders, Gbese Kai and Lamin Lahai (a protege, perhaps relative, of John Myer Harris's, educated in England) opposed the tax till Carr made them collectors. Then they collected eagerly, measuring rather than cash,
telling the chiefs
produce
By
in their
own
large measures, not government's.
some only
the end of April Carr had raised ^2,624,
He
after dis-
There were complaints of Frontiers and sub-collectors misbehaving. As in the other two
traint.
tried to supervise collection himself.
man was said to have been killed for not giving up liis Nor were chiefs allowed, as he had hinted at Mafwe, to make a
Districts, a
sword.
token payment only: those
who
did were sent
away
for the rest.
Without active resistance, which he told Cardew he did not expect, the District was uneasy. When the Rev.. Charles Goodman returned from leave to Tikonko he found people, normally friendly, reserved, unwilling to carry his loads.
Panguma, heard reports that a party of Sofas, still lurking beyond the border, were preparing to invade Luawa. Ignoring orders to remain on the defensive, he crossed into Liberia with Fabunde and drove them away. No tax was payable in Panguma yet it too was disturbed. Blakeney heard that Nyagua was summoning chiefs to secret meetings. Two Frontiers who attended in disguise reported he was asking them to help him drive all white men from his country. Armed men were seen in the bush; arms were found concealed at Kenema. Blakeney threatened Nyagua with arrest, and he agreed to his people giving up their arms. Captain Blakeney, the Frontier Inspector in charge
Wallis went to Gambia, on the Small the factory of
M.
Z. Macaulay,
village, thirty years in the Sherbro,
chiefs
brought in their
arrested,
tax.
Bum,
J.P., a
at
to collect tax.
trader, originally
who was
He
stayed at
from York
a sub-collector.
The Jong
Gberi of Gbonge, one of those Carr had
only brought part, so Wallis detained him
till
the rest
was
paid. Hearing a neighbouring chief had refused, he sent some Frontiers to arrest him. They fired, the people resisted, seized a Frontier and killed him. Next day Adolphus Dick, another chief Carr had arrested,
who had
a ship-building business in the
commg. 570
Jong,
warned Wallis war was
Next morning, Wednesday, April were
at breakfast,
The
Frontiers,
built
on
the 27th, as Wallis and
who
slept there,
rushed to the factory, which being
the usual Sherbro plan, three ranges of buildings enclosing a
square, with the river as the fourth side,
ghastly figure staggered after them, his
Macaulay
they heard sounds of war from the adjoining town.
was
both terribly gashed with mortal
child,
easily defensible.
A
Mr James, a Creole trader, carrying cutlass
wounds. The
Anglican catechist and other Creoles in the town were being slaughtered. Wallis sent Macaulay to Bonthe with the surviving children,
and prepared to defend the factory with
Ins
women
and
twenty-five
by a few Creole traders. Attack was easily beaten off. The attackers were chiefly armed with clubs and cutlasses; only a few had guns. But the ill-disciplined Frontiers fired wildly, and by Saturday ammunition was running short; messengers sent to Bandajuma for help were captured and killed. So as night fell, they withdrew quietly by canoe, taking Gberi with them. Not for half an hour did the attackers realize they had gone. Then the excitement of plundering and burning the factory, followed by a heavy thunderstorm, prevented pursuit, so Frontiers, helped
they reached
The
attack
Mende and
York Island unmolested next morning. on Gambia was no isolated outbreak; the whole
Gallinas countries
Sherbro,
were being suddenly, without warning,
given over to slaughter and destruction. Those
who
planned the rising
had used the Poro as a cover to ensure secrecy, swearing their adherents on a 'One Word' (in Mende *Ngo-yila') oath, which gave but one choice obey or be killed. Once the secret groups were sworn,
—
rise simultaneously, judging perhaps by the phase of the moon, or by giving each chief a certain number of stones, with orders for him to throw away one a day, and rise when all were thrown. When the day came, messengers went through the country with a burnt palm leaf, the final signal. Bumpe in the Upper Mende country was believed to have been the centre of the conspiracy. In some places *Bumpe' wa3 used as a password: a trader at Lavana took off liis hat and boots, put on a country cloth, and escaped detection by shouting it
they waited to
when
challenged.
All aliens, European or Creole,
were the appointed victims, also employed or had educated, even, it was said, any man in trousers, any woman in a dress. A few were spared, warned in advance, or liidden, by native friends or wives, at least one for a bribe; a man was killed near Shenge for having helped Creoles escape. Jolni Mannah, a trader long at those closely associated with them, their wives, those they
571
Mokassi,
who was
held in a law case in 1895 to be a British subject,
even joined in and helped murder a Frontier.
Such were exceptions. The accumulated grievances against governtraders, and unpopular chiefs, broke in a wave of fury, to sweep out for ever all taint of alien influence. Every wrong was recalled even the memory of Mende labourers recruited for the Congo, who never returned: captured Creoles awaiting death were mockingly told they were being sent to the Congo. The body of a Frontier officer buried at Bandasuma, was dug up arid burnt, as if to rid the soil of pollution. Encouraged by news of Bai Bureh's success and tales of his supernatural power, they envisioned driving the Europeans into the sea. But they had no Bai Bur eh to lead or discipline them. They fought ment, Creole
—
as a disorganized,
rapacious rabble, incapable of sustained opposition,
but formidable in a sudden offensive against unsuspecting opponents.
As they rushed from town to town offering the alternatives ofjoining them or being killed, they gathered support from those eager for plunder. Primarily a Mende rising (and often so-called), Vai, Bulom, Loko, Mabanta Temne joined in, from taxed Protectorate or untaxed Colony alike. So did the scattered communities of Susu and Fula, to fight or their traditional part in war buy slaves.
—
—
Creoles, scattered in the factories and villages they in for a generation,
were
utterly defenceless.
had been
About 100 were
settled
killed in
Bagru country alone. The u.b.c. mission at Mano Bagru, run by Creole agents, was destroyed: the Rev. C. A. Clemens and the Rev. Joseph Hughes were killed; the Rev. Samuel Morrison took refuge in the bush with his son and died of exposure. Wilberforce escaped, but his mother and sister, making for Bonthe by canoe, were seized and hacked to death. The neighbouring traders suffered similar fates. At Gbangbatok, Musu, the aged chief's daughter, incited her decrepit father and sons to kill two Frontiers and a trader. At Gbambaia the the
chief killed at least twenty-four himself.
The mland stations of the u.b.c. were occupied by American misThe flourishing Rotifunk mission was staffed with six, the Rev. and Mrs Isaac N. Cain, Rev. A. A. Ward, Miss Hatfield and Miss sionaries.
Archer, both quahficd doctors, and Miss
Mary
Schcnk.
Ward was
in
Freetown with the Mission boat when rumours o( the disturbances reached them, but in a country where American missionaries had so long lived unmolested, even during the wars of the '70s and '80s, they had no reason
to fear.
572
Yet on
The
May
war raging
the ist the
all
round
three Frontiers stationed there had fled. Santigi
with government, hid in the bush. Without
hammocks
upon Rotifunk. Bundu, identified
fell
their boat, unable to get
for the ladies, the missionaries set out to
walk
to
Freetown
but were turned back to Rotifunk. There they were seized and stripped,
Miss Schenk was raped,
all
were hacked
to pieces
with
cutlasses,
and
their mission buildings destroyed.
At Taiama the American missionaries, the Rev. and Mrs L. A. also tried to leave and were prevented. Foray Vong promised them protection, then handed them over to be slaughtered on the rocks
McGrew,
by the River Taia. At Yele in the Kittam a new Wesleyan church was to be dedicated on the 27th. The war gathered round, waiting for the service to begin. J.
A. Williams got word of
threatened the
it,
packed pastor and people into boats,
Mende boatmen with
and made them row
his revolver,
to Bonthe.
Few were
so fortunate. R. T. Collier,
who had
traded longer in the
Sherbro than any other Creole, was captured at Bahol, with his son and Willie Lewis, a nephew of Sir Samuel's; all were murdered. Those taken in this area were brought first to Tihun, to Chief Vandi, who would then let the captors take them back again to their plundered factories and kill them. At Koronko, higher up the Kittam, the factories
were destroyed and two Frontiers
killed.
Joseph Matthew Tilley, the
Anglican catechist in the KLittam, eighteen years in trade there, was killed,
with four other Creoles,
Queen
Messe's request. At
the
Roman
at
Bamani
Hahun;
wife was spared at Company's factory and
his
the French
Catholic mission were destroyed, but the mission agents
escaped.
no were set upon, and their murdered bodies thrown into the sea. The government boat, sailing unsuspectingly down the Kittam with mails and ^1,000 from the Sulima sub-treasury, was forced ashore by canoes at Koronko;
The conventional boundary of Colony and
Protectorate was
protection. Creoles trying to escape along Turner's Peninsula
the police sergeant in charge their
way
was
killed,
but two constables
forty miles along the shore, and
by canoe
made
to Bonthe, to
money intact to Alldridge. A young Mancimian, W. R. Leech, trading at Mopalma on his own, who was on board, also escaped. At Sembehun Sergeant Coker and his Frontiers beat off attack. Then, sending Nancy Tucker under escort to Kwelu, they escaped by boat down the Bagru to Bonthe with the Creole traders, repellmg deliver the
573
But where Frontiers were stationed in isolation they were powerless all over the country they were done to death by those who had long awaited a chance of revenge. Mafwe was attacked on the 29th from Bumpe. The Frontier detachment barricaded themselves into a house belonging to W. R. Allen, a trader from Wilberforce, with Creoles gathered from the neighbourhood. They defended themselves until kerosene was poured round and ignited, to burn them out to be butchered or seized. The wild assailants were even said to have driven their own children .into the flames, because they attended the Methodist school and learnt English. Allen and the Christian Chief Baha were taken to Bumpe and publicly slaughtered. Some women and children were spared and sold as slaves. Only one man, Emmanuel Cole, from Wilberforce, who planted coffee at Sumbuya, escaped into the bush. His child Lemuel, enslaved, sold eventually to Susu, only returned to the Colony in 1930. Panic-stricken refugees poured across into Bonthe, where Alldridge with his twenty years' experience of the Sherbro was utterly bewildered by the sudden rising. As part of the Colony, Bonthe had no Frontier garrison, only sixteen policemen, four of them sick, with nine rifles between them. A German steamer unloading cargo on the 28th was sent to Freetown to report their plight. As before, Cardew was inclined to belittle the danger. Conceiving the rising in terms of the Karene war, he was reassured by hearing that the Mende attacking Gambia were ill-armed, sent only thirty soldiers, and twenty half-trained Frontier recruits, and told the Senior Naval Officer he thought any hostile canoes.
;
serious rising in the Sherbro unlikely.
At the
first
news, Alldridge sent five of his precious policemen with
Dr Jarrett by
boat to Imperi to reinforce Hughes, whose apprehensions
were being so cruelly fulfdled, and bring away Miss Mary Mullen, an American missionary alone at Momaligi. Along the river banks they found corpses and burnt factories, but no sign of the kindly, modest Hughes whom the Sokong had carried inland. There, after imprisonment and torture, he was killed; liis wife and clerk were murdered too. At Momaligi Miss Mullen was sitting calmly awaiting the attack, already gathering, wlicn Jarrett arrived and saved her. Her American colleagues at Shenge also escaped: the Rev. L. Burtncr in successive journeys took about 450 refugees in the mission boats to the Plantains, whence they went to Kent. G. M. Domingo (author of 77/e Caulker Manuscript) got
with the Rev.
J.
away by boat from Bompctuk
A. Evans, the remaining American. 574
When
a
Customs
launch arrived from Freetown, with a few pohcemen, to protect Shenge, they found the mission premises empty and menaced.
They
ammunition ran out, then escaped to their boat. The attack on Shenge was led by Alexander P. Doomabey, whose Bulom surname commemorated the notorious wickedness of his father, former chief of Mando. Educated by the u.b.c, he had been their accountant and a candidate for orders, but quarrelled with them, and bore them a grudge. So throwing ofFcoat and trousers, he assumed ancestral war-dress, and led the party that 'sacked the mission and put up a fight
killed
its
till
their
remaining adherents.
Under cover of the
general massacre, the Caulkers enacted a family
drama. Burtner tried to persuade Thomas Neale to escape with him to the Plantains but he preferred to await retribution in his
There
liis
own chiefdom.
cousin Francis, the hanged William's brother, was revenged
on the slave-born usurper he was captured and put to death. Meanwhile Alldridge's compound was besieged by terrified people he could do nothing to help, crowding into the empty protection of defenceless government buildings. At night the fires of burning factories flared from the mainland; the church and Creole shops across the water at Bendu were in flames. Fearful of attack by water, they also dreaded Be Sherbro might take them in the rear. A steamer arrived on the 30th with Cardew's meagre reinforcement and left with as many as could stampede on board. Alldridge summoned Be Sherbro, whom he believed behind the rising, and sent him to Cardew with, a frantic letter describing their desperate state. Scarcely had the steamer left, on May the ist, when a more welcome craft appeared, the gleaming trim of H.M.S. Blonde, sent by Cardew, who now realized the danger. H.M.S. Alecto followed. H.M.S. Fox went on to Mano Salija where five European French Company and Palma Trading Co. agents were gathered with about ninety Creoles, protected by Chief Njehu, who refused to join the war. Other Gallinas factories had been abandoned: a police sergeant and two men defended Sulima for two days but were ultimately forced out. Mano Saiija was easily defensible, but there was no garrison. The Fox began taking the refugees ofl'in boats till the sea grew too rough. For another night they remained on shore, protected chiefly by the ship's searchlights, winch alarmed their surrounding assailants. Next day they walked along the shore to Cape Mount, where the Fox, after ;
shelling the
French
Company
factory to prevent
picked them up. 575
it
being looted,
Though
the
Mende
massacres started on the 27th, Freetown people
horror when the refugees arrived from Bonthe on the 2nd of May. When on the 3rd a report came in from Waterloo that the Mende were advancing on the Colony, they were panicstricken at their defenceless plight. The three naval ships were in the Sherbro; the Colonial steamer had followed them with troops. Of 400 soldiers left in Freetown seventy were invalids, 186 recruits in the new West African Regiment, the half-trained countrymen of the advancing enemy. Mende and Temne servants were scattered throughout the city, and settled in large communities in the suburbs. Cardew telegraphed for a 1st class cruiser and a battalion of European troops but could scarcely hope they would arrive in time and sent 100 soldiers to Waterloo by the newly-built railway to meet the invaders. The Creoles, alarmed at seeing the military records being carried up from the Commissariat to the barracks, and the soldiers' families ordered in for protection, feared that when the attack came the mihtary would retire to Tower Hill leaving them to their fate. They petitioned to be allowed to form a Volunteer Corps. Cardew agreed, but, distrustful of their loyalty, remembering their sympathy for Bai Bureh, put in European officers only James Taylor, as Mayor, was made an honor-
only realized their
full
—
—
:
ary captain,
Dr Renner, Medical
Many would-be
Officer.
Volunteers, reciprocating his distrust,
when
they
saw that under the Volunteer Ordinance the Governor could send them out of the Colony, declined to enlist. Lewis set an example by joining as a private, but other professional men preferred unarmed slaughter by the Mende to subjecting themselves to Cardew. For two days hysteria reigned. A meeting of the Church Finance Committee broke up in disorder at the news that the Mende had taken Hastings and were advancing. Invaders were said to have landed on the Atlantic beaches and be gathering in the mountains. A police sergeant had to be sent to Kent to stop people attacking the canoes full of refugees from the Sherbro, whom in their panic they took for the enemy. The nurses and patients from the Princess Christian Hospital were moved for safety to the Aimie Walsh School; European missionaries patrolled there and at Fourah
Bay
College, with
rifles
lent
of the Mende and Temne in the eastern suburbs. Mende at Congo Town were beaten up by crowds, and the police had to intervene to prevent a general attack on them in Freetown. On the 5th the Fox and Alccto returned, leaving the Blonde to guard
by government,
for fear
Bonthe. Woodgate, back from Port Loko, decided 576
that,
with rein-
forcements from the
West
India
Regiment
could be safely countermanded.
at
Lagos, European troops
News came
in
that
Fairtlough,
besieged at Kwelu, had beaten off attack.
Next day Cardew and Woodgate went by train to Waterloo, where the Railway Engineer, W. R. Howell, had raised a Volunteer Corps. They found that the Mende, far from threatening the Colony, had not crossed its borders; Songo Town, deserted by the Creole inhabitants, was empty. A detachment was sent to secure it. By the end of the week Freetown had calmed down, though people were still nervous. When a ist class cruiser, H.M.S. Blake, arrived it was rumoured (and for years repeated), that Cardew had summoned her to take the Europeans on board, and then blow up the city. Even the presence of six naval ships in the harbour could not quiet fears of a sudden Mende rising within the Colony. Sensitive and mistrustful, the Creoles held a protest meeting when an Ordinance was passed to detain without trial those suspected of complicity in the rising, because it applied to Colony as well as Protectorate. They felt their loyalty slighted,
without reflecting that to apply
it
to the Protectorate only
would enable the guilty to escape to the Colony. Not until the end of the month when a naval contingent was marched smartly through the streets
was confidence
restored.
Not the least of Cardew's worries were Chamberlain's telegrams warning him that the Hut Tax must be reconsidered. As soon as calm was restored, he called Executive Council. They agreed that the need for revenue, and the moral principle of the right to tax, made it impossible to abandon direct taxation. He telegraphed their opinion to London, then composed another telegram, again justifying the tax, and denouncing those he believed responsible for
its
being resisted
— the Creoles.
Even in 1896 he had suggested them as scapegoats to be blamed for any resistance (p. 555). Now he accused them of inciting the natives not to pay, and fomenting disloyalty in the press. The English trading interests, whose views impressed Chamberlain, he declared selfish and biased. Against them he produced missionary opinions that the Hut Tax was not the sole cause of the rising. His telegram arrived on May the 9th, the day Sierra Leone was being raised in the House of Commons. Mercer brushed it aside. Chamberlain was impressed. When Davitt had finished deriding Cardew as a criminal lunatic, quoting Marcus and Mary Kingslcy, he answered on 577
^he lines the telegram suggested.
He
mind
open about the Hut Tax, promised to send a Special Commissioner of hiquiry as soon as the rains stopped mihtary operations, defended Cardew, and repeated his unsubstantiated accusations of the Creoles and their declared his
still
newspapers.
During May, when news from Sierra Leone was published almost from all over the Empire filled the English papers. As if wild tongues loosed drunkenly with sight of power at the Diamond Jubilee had provoked immediate retribution, there were reports of risings in the Gold Coast, the lower Niger, Somaliland, Swaziland, Borneo, and among the Maoris; wars were being fought in Uganda and the Sudan; there were riots in Jamaica, suspected cannibals in New Guinea, and threats of war with France over the Niger frontier; Captain Marchand was marchmg towards Fashoda. daily, disturbing accounts
All
demanded Chamberlain's
the Sierra Leone despatches
cumbered
his desk,
we need
decision. If we
among not
marvel
at his
mastering
the mass of detail that daily en-
feel surprised at his seizing
on ready-
—
made solutions first the traders', then Cardew's. The despatches in which Cardew expanded his
telegrams, and the
advocacy of Lord Selborne, the Parliamentary Under-Secretary, who upheld Cardew, convinced liim that the brutality of the Mcndc rising prevented any immediate concession over the Hut Tax.
He
decided
whether to retain it or not. The spread of war to country where tax had already been paid, in any case weakened the traders' argument that the people to await the Special Commissioner's report before choosing
were only It
resisting taxation
and would stop once
it
was abolished.
supported Cardew's argument that the tax was the pretext, the
real
cause the chiefs' resentment at the loss of their power. interests was lessened by his Chadwick of G. B. Ollivant admitted of gunpowder to natives who were subsequently
Chamberlain's sympathy with trading hearing from
Cardew
having sold lOO
lb.
that
it up country. A Creole clerk in the Coaling Co.'s Kissy had sold a native a 50 lb. barrel. Neither had troubled to
found taking Street shop
inquire
who
their
customers were.
During the panic at Bonthe it was found that the European firms had large stocks of powder, far more than the 100 lb. they were restricted to by law. The Powder Magazine returns showed that during the latter half of 1897 nearly 50,000 lb. of gunpowder were withdrawn for sale up coimtry; Cardew was quick to note that Marcus, who told the press he had seen war coming, was among the largest vendors. 57«
He and Chamberlain wanted to prosecute Chadwick and the Coahng Co. clerk for selling arms to the enemy. But, to confirm Cardew's poor opinion of lawyers, the Colony law officers shied at an action based on the complicated law of treasons. While they delayed the witnesses vanished. it
Chadwick was paid and thanked
for his pigeons,
which made
harder to prosecute him. Eventually the cases were dropped.
Cardew charged
the Creoles with having directly incited the natives,
individually and in the press, against paying tax. easily believed files
than proved.
prosecution. Criticism
hostile articles,
scrutinized the
but nothing to warrant
was veiled, mockery rather than
attack,
nowhere
Cardew's accusation of constant direct incitement.
Nor was said
The Attorney-General
of both newspapers, finding
justifying
The charge was more
it
certain
how
far
they circulated
among
those they were
have inflamed. Creole traders certainly disseminated
to
their
contents up country: in 1896 the Sierra Leone Times published a letter
about a Creole reading aloud from a chance copy to people in a remote part of the
was
in
Bumpe
them
if
Weekly Newses in
But proving
River.
Many
chiefs
they wanted to: Sena
could doubtless discover what
Bundu had
a
bundle of old
his house.
real
Cardew could not
incitement
elicit.
demanded
direct
evidence
—which
Certainly if the press encouraged Bai Bureh
must have been indirectly. Elba reported that no one in his camp could read English: a note picked up saying 'Road clear to Karene' was it
supposed a peace-offer.
Nor
could he easily prove that
(as
he wrote to Chamberlain) 'almost
without exception every trader in the Protectorate' had incited the natives not to pay. Despite his urgent promptings, District
missioners could only convict four
testimony.
The charge
—one
against another
Com-
purely on Fula Mansa's
was having rebuked
a
mission
agent for collecting because tax-gatherers are denounced in the Bible.
Three were charged at Kwelu with having sold Temne arms. Two were released for lack of evidence. The third, H. N. Ring (who had said tax-gatherers were unchristian) was given twelve months' imprisonment. He had to be released after two, as the charge had been wrongly brought.
No
Port Loko trader was prosecuted though their
gunpowder
in January, contained
only empty barrels
arrived in March. Reports that a to to
stores, full
when
of
the troops
Waterloo shopkeeper had sent arms Taiama proved baseless. T. C. Bishop, whom Cardew was preparing denoimce to Chamberlain for selling powder to the enemy, could 579
show
that
all
he had sold since the Proclamation forbidding
sale in the
—though he,
like other
Protectorate was for blasting in the
Colony
shopkeepers, had sold large quantities up country in
1
897.
Despite lack of evidence Cardew*s plausible charges were accepted
unquestioned
at the
Colonial Office.
Though Chamberlain asked condemn unheard
proof, he and his subordinates were ready to
convenient scapegoats so long disciples.
Sympathy
vilified in the
for
the
pages of Burton and his
for massacred Creoles could be henceforth
tem-
pered by the reflection that they had brought retribution on themselves.
when Cardew
pressed his attack into suggesting that half-educated
Creoles were unfit for free institutions and a free press, praising the
French for keeping their democratic principles for
home consumption,
even Chamberlain, the champion and prototype of the half-educated,
seemed inclined
to assent.
In June the Jury Ordinance arising out
came
before Legislative Council.
It
a non-capital offence could be tried
Attorney-General saw
unanimity
fit.
if dissatisfied
Injury
with
of the Waterloo Riot
(p.
548)
provided that anyone charged with
by
cases, it
a
judge and
assessors if the
allowed the judge to demand
a majority verdict. Lewis,
who had
changed his mind; he was absent from the first and voted against at the third. His and Bishop's protests Chamberlain was unmoved by a petition enclosed in a
originally approved,
two
readings,
were
vain.
despatch where
Cardew
attacked the Creoles viciously. Trial by jury
ceased to be a right in non-capital cases, and
became
a privilege
depen-
dent on the will of government.
From
April to July the Sierra Leone Times published for the benefit
of the English press a series of violent leaders against Cardew. Fox Bourne, of the Aborigines Protection Society, used them for an article in the Fortnightly Revieii^, with an account of hundreds being shot down in the Karene District (where Marshall's troops could seldom be sure they had shot anyone at all), hundreds more dead from starvation. Like Cardew, he believed the tax to have been only the pretext for the rising,
An
but saw
as the
underlying cause oppressive government.
Weekly News of April the i6th recalled, as a contributory cause, that the Frontiers were often runaway slaves, recruited and trained in Freetown, then sent back to their homes to tyrannize article in the
580
— over their old masters, a complaint made in the Temne chiefs' petition against the Protectorate Ordinance. The writer brought no evidence
of any
particular Frontier's having oppressed his old master, but
a plausible charge against a force
were posted, Sierra
if possible,
it.
was
where many were runaways and men
where they understood the language. The
Leone Times repeated
press; Davitt raised
it
it
in six leaders;
it
appeared in the English
Cardew admitted there might well have been
when it was true. The Sierra Leone Times, and Fox Bourne,
cases
provoked by
also alleged the rising partly
appointed
Cardew's having
Commissioners. However inapplicable such
inexperienced
District
Sharpe,
a description to
Fairtlough or Carr, officers as experienced as any European the Colonial Office
was
likely to recruit,
it
doctors. Frontier officers just out
fitted
some who
from England, or
them
acted for
unfitted for civilian
duties.
Some of
these charges
were repeated
in an
anonymous pamphlet,
The Last Military Expedition in Sierra Leone, published in Liverpool. Purporting to be written by an Englishman twenty years in Africa,
was the work of a young Creole clerk in the Secretariat, A. B. C. Merriman-Labor. Blyden took them up too. At the suggestion of his friend A. L. Jones, an opponent of the Hut Tax, he put them to the Colonial Office, proposing they return to rule by chiefs, as in Rowe's day, a proposal that, as Cardew observed, ignored the events of the two preceding decades, and Rowe's own unheeded protests. As a good churchman Cardew found clerical champions to justify his ways to the public. Bishop Taylor Smith put his case in the Church Missionary Intelligencer, and in a rather indiscreet letter, published
it
without
his consent, in the Sierra
Leone Messenger.
He
implied the
were instigated by those who wanted to restore the slave traffic Cardew had suppressed. He dismissed the Hut Tax as a cloak used by chiefs trying to revert to ancient savagery. Without giving grounds to risings
connect Bai Bureh with the slave
traffic,
he described him in
a letter,
which Chamberlain quoted in Parliament, as a drunken slaver. Thus it became more difficult for Cardew's opponents to decry his policy on humanitarian grounds.
Bishop Ingham,
still
smarting from
articles
in the
Weekly News
during the Five Pastors' case, wrote to the Times supporting Cardew's denunciation of the Freetown press, maintaining that without Creole incitement the chiefs
on the other
side,
would never have
risen.
A
few
letters
appeared
but the episcopal champions, reinforced by a cor581
respondent's article supporting Cardew, convinced The Titnes, which
accepted their view until the Royal Commissioner should report.
When
Cornelius
May
arrived in England in August and wrote asking
from his Weekly News to justify no reply from the editor or from the
the Times to quote a single passage the charge of incitement, he got
by now
indifferent public.
Kwelu was hard
to defend, about fifty scattered villages
Frontier lines straggling through, the chief's
town
with the
adjoining head-
by Fula Mansa and Kongoma of Kwelu, Fairtwith seventy Frontiers, beat off the first assault on lough and Johnson, May the ist. It is said that after it failed the McGrews were murdered quarters. But, helped
at
Taiama
it
;
was believed
that so long as they
were
alive
Kwelu could
not be taken. Nancy Tucker took refuge there on the 6th, and next
day there was killed,
easily
The ill-armed, disorganized men; only one Frontier was
a fierce assault, also repelled.
Mende were no match
for Fairtlough's
few wounded. Johnson, sent out with a detachment, drove them from Mokassi, where they were encamped, and and
a
killed their leader.
Fairtlough was joined
by four gold prospectors from
the Bagru,
who, caught unawares, escaped through the bush. Edward Monger, the fifth, fell ill on the way and stayed at Bunjema where chief Yayi, who promised to protect him, promptly killed him once his companions had gone the only non-missionary European to perish in the Mende
—
massacres. Fairtlough sent his
Mansa was
killed,
Yoni
allies
to attack
Bunjema; Fula
but they took the town, returning triumphantly with
Yayi's head, the only trophy the plundered prospectors could take
home
to Reading.
Meanwhile Woodgate was leading a column, chiefly of his newly West African Regiment, from Songo Town to relieve Kwelu. They crossed the Ribi on the 13 th on rafts built by the Railway Engineers; Howell was badly bitten by an alligator. They were assailed on the march from stockades but with opposition very different from Bai Burch's. A few rounds from a ramshackle seven-pounder gun with most of the screws missing, frightened the defenders away raised
—
without even hitting the stockade.
Guided by Santigi Bundu, they entered Rotifunk and buried the Woodgate was nervous of going on widi his half-trained men, particularly as the few European gmuiers had fallen missionaries' corpses.
582
and waited for a West India detachment before going on to Kwelu. Then, joined by Fairtlough with his Frontiers, 500 Yoni and 150 Mende, he marched on to Taiama.
ill,
From
the west
bank of the Taia, they looked
across to
what was
believed an impregnable stronghold, a group of clustered mud-walled
towns.
A
seven-pounder
shell dispersed the
bank, but
when
river,
just fordable at the
still
defenders gathered
on
the
the Yoni, the advance guard, began rushing across the
opposed them with
rifle fire,
end of May,
with volleys. Once the Yoni were following, there was
group of Fula, or Susu, covered their advance with about twenty Frontiers a
until the Frontiers across,
no more opposition; they could devote
their
energies to looting and burning, and pursuing fugitives.
Later in the day the troops crossed over
Queen's Birthday they held remaining
tovvois.
a
by canoe;
as it
was the
ceremonial parade before burning the
Woodgate then returned to Freetown, while Fairthis Frontiers to Panguma to fmd out what had
lough marched ofl'with
happened
to Blakeney.
The force sent to Bonthe on the 2nd was commanded by Colonel G. G. Cunningham, who came out with Woodgate, an experienced officer
who had
served
all
He
over Africa.
established a base near Mattru,
whence he could march to rehcve Carr at Bandajuma. Armed boats from the Blonde made punitive excursions up the river, burning towns, silencing opposition
The
with the Maxim.
troops were fired at as they
went up
the Jong: a European
sergeant-major was shot dead. But the ancient brass cannon, loaded
up with old range.
iron,
which the Mende
The column was ambushed
few yards' narrow paths but the assai-
used, often missed at a
on.
the
bush after firing. When they built a stockade at Route they used corrugated iron sheets from the plundered factory roof which bullets penetrated easily. Cunningham's worst enemy was the heavy rain which drenched them almost daily. On the 17th they encamped at Mafwe, with its hideous spectacle of
lants retired into the
two days later by a large army from Tcmne, the Mende fought in the open, exposing themselves to fire. Over 100 were killed before they were driven off. A party attacking from the rear were forced back into the river, where
charred corpses, to be attacked
Bumpe. Unlike
the
the soldiers shot
down
commented
a
young
about sixty
as
they tried to cross. 'Grand sport',
officer in his diary.
583
Detachments from Mafwe then destroyed stockaded towns nearby. after a struggle in which an officer and six men were wounded.
On June the nth Bumpe was taken, When
the
Mende war
started,
Carr was away in the distant
Dama
country, leaving Captain Eames, a newly-joined Assistant Inspector at
Bandajuma. The news took four days to reach him; it was another three before he reached Bandajuma, an hour before the war. The first attack was easily repulsed, but a second, on May the yth, lasted ten hours. The government buildings were built at a cross-roads, not easily defensible, and the defenders harassed by refugees. Yet in all the fighting no Frontier was killed, only one wounded. After the yth there was no further attack, but Carr was cut off until the 22nd when a party sent by Cumiingham relieved him. Momo Ja had originally refused to pay tax and been arrested by Carr. Nevertheless, after his release, he and Kai Kai would not join the war and their towns were attacked. Carr sent Frontiers to help defend Pujehun. Kai Kai helped defend Bandajuma, and they joined Cunningham. When the war reached Tikonko on May the 2nd there was the usual slaughter of Creole missionaries, though their wives were spared. Goodman managed to escape into the bush where chief Sandi, who dared not openly oppose the war, sheltered him secretly. Disguised as an old woman, he returned to the town where he was detected, stripped of all but his underclothes and marched to Bumpe. At his trial a chief pointed out that he was not a government man and should, as a missionary, be treated as a woman and spared, like the Creole women at Tikonko. So, alone of the missionaries who fell into hostile Mende hands, Goodman was not killed. He was kept safe, first in Bumpe, then as the soldiers approached, in the bush, and handed over unharmed
Goodman's
when Cunningham
fate
emboldened
asked for him.
his colleagues to
maintain later against
of Christian missions
that the
Mende showed no
animus towards missionaries
as such,
and that
critics
primarily, as
When
the
some
war
alleged, a religious
war spread
their rising
particular
was not
against an alien faith.
Gbcse Kai and Lamin escaped
to the Gallinas,
with the Creoles over the river into Liberia. The Superintendent protected them, but not their property,
So
their
stop
goods were looted and sold
Tewo
people joining the plunder. 584
the war cross over after it. Cape Mount. Nor could he
lest
at
Among
the refugees
was J. K. Rogers Mannah
(later P.
C. Mannah-
Kpaka) a Gallinas chief's son, educated at the Grammar School, then in government service and business. He wrote to tell Cardew what was going on; a naval ship went to Monrovia to protest. The Liberian government apologized, and agreed to let an expedition be landed at
Cape Mount. Frontiers were sent, accompanied by Mannah, Obese Lamin, and Njehu (who had saved Salija), and his followers. Kai, They met little resistance: only at Bahama was there a fight. East of
Twenty
Moa, Ja and Kai Kai restored order (or, as their enemies said, waged a private war with official support). By August the Gallinas the
and the District Surgeon could begin arresting those suspected of murder. By the end of October French Company had rebuilt
was
quiet,
their store at
Mopalma.
Although Nyagua submitted in April, Blakeney, still mistrustful, him in May, and held him prisoner in Panguma. On June the 4th a large force came to rescue him; for twelve hours Panguma was under continuous fire from their guns and two old cannon. Another attempt was made on the 7th, the besiegers advancing with logs to
arrested
build a counter-stockade to attack from, but the Frontiers dashed out
and dispersed them. After that there were no more attempts. On the 23rd Fairtlough arrived, having fought his way from Kwelu, and four days later a relieving force, sent by Cunningham, which had advanced unopposed from Mafwe. Fighting was still going on to the north, where the Kono
were attacking the Mcnde, in revenge for Mende aggression after the Sofa campaign. But Blakeney had no fear wliile food and arms lasted. His garrison was strengthened, the soldiers returned to Mafwe, and Fairtlough to
On
Kwelu
taking
Nyagua with him.
the Karene front Marshall slowly infiltrated north-east of Port
Loko. Stockades delayed
his
advance, snipers harassed the careless.
Major Donovan, A.s.c, whose cheerful efficiency did much to improve morale, was fatally wounded, running to pick up a wounded hammockman. There was a fierce struggle at Rowula, skilfully defended by Alimami Sattan Lahai. After May the 13 th when Lieutenant Ricketts, ist W.I.R., was shot dead on the way to Romcni, attacks 82161
585
pp
on
communication gradually ceased. By the end of May all through the Kasse country destroying stockades, and, despite Sharpe's protests, burning towns and destroying stores of rice; he is said to have destroyed ninety-seven towns and villages. Still the lines of
Marshall had gone
he could not capture Bai Bureh. Bai Foki of Mafoki was giving Bai Bureh support
—only,
it is
said,
because the troops had burnt some of his towns. Marshall marched
through
his
country, destroying
more towns, and opened
the road to
Falaba which he had closed.
The aged Bai Simera, long mistrusted by government, was in gaol Kwelu. Some of his sub-chiefs, enraged against the Rokon Loko, killed Pa Kombo, Charles Smart's brother, who had been collecting at
and blockaded the river. Marshall destroyed the middle of Jime they submitted.
tax,
Pa Suba,
who had hoped
to contract out
their towns,
and by
of the Protectorate, was
believed to have planned to boycott trade late in 1897.
Warned
he submitted, paid Sharpe his tax and took no part in the war. Suluku of Bumban, rumoured hostile, sent Parkes loyal messages, offering to mediate with Bai Bureh.
officially,
The onset of the rains prevented further offensives. Marshall withdrew most of his troops, leaving a well-provisioned garrison at Karene which resisted attack, and made only small sorties. Elsewhere fighting died down: an expedition sent by sea to the Bumpe River marched back to Freetown via Kwelu unopposed. A fmal, unsuccessful was made on Panguma after Fairtlough left. An alarm at Songo in
assault
Town
August, turned out to be the railway labourers striking for more
pay: by September an
army
officer stationed there
had
his
wife with
him. District
Commissioners began rounding up the ringleaders. Naval
launches sent up the Imperi creeks burnt towns unopposed. Alldridge,
burn the crops too. This Cardew where the worst outrages had been conmiitted should be razed to the ground and, like Carthage, never rebuilt Bumpe, where the Mende war was said to have been planned, Taiama where the McGrews, and Gbambaia where bellicose after his fright,
wanted
to
prohibited, but gave orders that the towns
—
Hughes, perished; Rotifimk he spared, also, at
Goodman's
request,
as the u.B.c.
intended to return,
Tikonko.
But for Bai Bureh, still at large, the war was virtually over. Yet though Cardew offered /^loo reward for him and £$0 for Alimami Lahai, they remained hidden. Bai Bureh is said to have offered jQs^o 586
for
Cardew.
how
No
wonder
strange tales were repeated of his powers,
he could Uve under water, or go about invisibly, or as an animal. first worthy of the name the British govern-
Already the war, the
ment had fought in Sierra Leone, had cost the lives of six officers (including deaths from disease) and twelve men, with thirteen officers, seventy-three men (including Frontiers) severely wounded, and carrier casualties estimated 137. It was said that Bai Bureh was being suppUed with arms by the French, but when Cardew investigated the reports he found them groundless. Indeed the Governor of French Guinea, apprehensive war might spread over the frontier, did all he could to stop arms being taken across.
Woodgate and Cardew decided the first objective, after the rains, must be capturing Bai Bureh. After that, columns would be sent through the whole country, converging on Panguma. The haphazard assumption of the Protectorate on the cheap had inclined many to see their new government as a remote District Commissioner and a few Frontiers. The expedition would demonstrate its overwhelming power. By September over 800 Protectorate men had enlisted in the West African Regiment to
fulfil their
warlike ambitions under government's
orders (like the Scottish Highlanders
iments after 1745). India
The
It
who
joined the Highland Reg-
was proposed they carry out the march, the West
Regiment staying
to garrison Freetown.
suspension of hostilities enabled Chamberlain to send the promised
Special Commissioner, Sir
who had
David Chalmers,
served nearly ten years in
West
a retired Colonial
judge
Africa, including Sierra
Leone, where he was Queen's Advocate, 1873-4. Appointed primarily to investigate the causes
of the
rising, particularly the allegations
Frontier brutahty, Creole incitement, and the effect of the
he was stered
He
also to report generally
how
of
Hut Tax,
the country should be admini-
and financed.
on July the i8th. The Creoles greeted liim as and deliverer from Cardew. The Kissy Road Traders' Association arranged for the shops to be shut; vast crowds welcomed him, and conducted him in triumph to Porter's Royal Hotel in Wilberarrived in Freetown
their saviour
The newspapers urged people to come forward to prove the Creoles loyal, and show the rising caused solely by the Hut Tax and how it was collected. The news of his arrival spread up country; chiefs came from Karene District to give force Street, taken over for the inquiry.
587
Queen for sending him. For the next three and months he and his secretary, M. E. Wingfield (a nephew of the Permanent Under-Secretary at the Colonial Office), sat taking evidence from over 270 witnesses, volunteers who thought they could contri-
evidence, and thank the a half
bute to his knowledge, or those he
The two
summoned
as likely to.
Temne and Mendc, demanded different judicial The casualties Bai Bureh's men inflicted were chiefly in war: only Humphrey, Suri Bunki, Pa Kombo and perhaps John risings,
treatment.
Taylor, a Creole said to have been killed for spying for Sharpe at
Port Loko, were murdered. Chamberlain, unwilling to prosecute for levying war against a tax which might be found inequitable, was
doubtful whether any but the authors of these murders should be
brought to
trial.
Cardew decided
then proclaim an amnesty for
all
to wait
till
Bai Bureh was captured,
but those guilty of specified offences.
The perpetrators of the Mende massacres had to be punished quickly and firmly. Rather than leave them to the dilatory Supreme Court, the Colonial Office sent a Deputy-Judge from England to go round with a panel of assessors trying capital cases. G. A. Bonner, a barrister practising in the Midland Circuit, appointed Deputy-Judge, fications easily
left
early in
September for Kwelu.
To
his legal quali-
he added exceptional physical strength which carried him
through bush and rain on
his
long
legs,
while the court
officials
lagged behind in their soaking hammocks. The acting-AttorneyGeneral prosecuted, there were five Creole shopkeepers
as assessors,
but no counsel for the defence,
as the Freetown bar declined to accept what they considered the inadequate fee offered. Bonner himself
tended to be the prisoners' counsel, ready to
condemn
acquitted prisoners
their
as
he found the
assessors
countrymen's murderers. Twice
whom
only too
at least
he
they found guilty on what he held insuf-
ficient evidence.
After the
Kwelu
session,
an English
solicitor
was engaged
for the
defence; less robust than Bonner, his health broke down after two months and he was forced home before the trials were finished. The court sat at Bonthc, at Bandajuma, Bonthc again, returning to Kwelu for a final session, ending on December the 19th. Bonner heard 233 cases, sitting for six
evidence.
or seven hours a day, weighing the horrifying
Much of it was
massacre of the
first
brought by women, for
after the general
days orders seem to have been given to spare them, 588
to
sell
or use as slaves.
but Bonner
by
Many of the accused admitted their
guilt readily,
refused to accept their plea, insisting each case
He
eye-witnesses.
be proved
convicted 158, recommending to mercy those
who had
merely carried out their chief's orders as subordinates. Executive Council confirmed the sentences on ninety-six, commuting the rest to imprisonment. Those hanged at Kwclu, Bonthe, or
Bandajuma, included the leading Bumpe chiefs, the Sokong of Imperi, Alexander Doomabey, Foray Vong, and the Rotifunk missionaries' murderers.
So many hangings (Cardew only reported eighty-three officially) had the sound of a vindictive Bloody Assize in England. Yet the number of executions was far less than that of murders. Renter's correspondent guessed a thousand murdered. Even the lowest estimate, counting only the Creole
names pubhshed
in the
Freetown newspapers, must be
remote areas, or dissociated from their nearly 300. Many relatives, can have had no such memorial, nor do the lists always specify children. To them must be added natives killed for befriending, living with, working for, or being educated by them, unpopular killed in
chiefs,
and those
killed to repay old grudges.
Chalmers, a crochety Scottish lawyer, inevitably roused Cardew's from gubernatorial tyranny, he was only
antipathy. Hailed as a saviour
too ready to play the part assigned him, return Cardew's
presume the government hostile, and hindrance to the smooth running of called for hidden,
he implied
it
dislike,
see deliberate sabotage in his enquiry.
Was
deliberately withheld.
any
a report
he
Did Cardew and
Bonner object to his bringing convicted prisoners awaiting execution at Kwelu to Freetown for interrogation, he imputed an intention to thwart him.
Cardew was as suspicious of him. Bai Bureh sent a message through the Temne headman in Freetown asking Chalmers to mediate between him and government. When Chalmers tried to, Cardew declared it an attempt to subvert authority behind his back. He would have been even more indignant had he known Chalmers was writing privately to Wingfield advising against the proposed march through the Protectorate.
He
resented Chalmers paying so
much
attention to
Lewis, whose evidence, given, as he had later to admit, in no partisan
over thirty pages of the printed report. Chalmers interrogated witnesses privately, without binding them by
spirit, filled
589
of evidence; he allowed hearsay,
rules
to get uninhibited answers,
trusting to his judicial experience to discount prejudice. In the last
fortnight of the enquiry Cardew, alarmed
by the number of what he
conceived disaffected, even suborned, witnesses, insisted the acting-
Attorney-General attend to cross examine.
On November own
case.
But
the i6th, a
on
already,
the Colonial Office that his
could
tell
him would
methods used
campaign.
A
mobile
it
before Chalmers sailed, he put his
mind was made
alter his
to collect
Late in October the
week
the nth, Chalmers
had written privately to
Hut Tax and
conviction that the
were the
sole causes
of the
West African Regiment resumed it
was equipped
the
rising.
for
the Karene
but with dis-
force, dressed like the Frontiers,
tinguishing fez tassel and badges,
Cardew
up, that nothing
bush fighting
as
Cardew wanted. Alimami Lahai of Rowula surrendered. weeks small detachments went out seeking the elusive Bai Bureh, fired on occasionally from stockades two soldiers were Just before they started,
Then
for three
—
—
wounded destroying the remaining villages, until November the i6th when at last he was taken. The circumstances remain uncertain. The official account describes him being pursued and captured by Sergeant B. Thomas (who was rewarded vdth the d.c.m.). The unofficial, describes how the fugitive killed,
nine
chief emerged
from the bush, and shouting
to the soldiers not to fire,
gave himself up with the words 'De war done done'.
He was
taken to Karene: his portrait, sitting scowling in gaol,
sketched by an
officer,
appeared soon after in the
Illustrated
London
News, As he had committed no murder, Sharpe and Cardew proposed
Bonner try him for treason, so obliging the Colonial O&ce to what had never been clearly defmed, the legal status of the Protectorate and its inhabitants. that
consider,
The Crown Law
Officers held that treason could be
committed,
only within the Queen's Dominions, or by British subjects; that the Protectorate, under the Foreign Jurisdiction Act,
was
'foreign'
Bai Bureh, owing no allegiance to the Queen, could not treason. This decision, directly contrary to
inhabitants of the Protectorate
were
that
Cardew's belief that the
British (p. 559),
to try him. histead he was dctauicd by Ordinance had considered Chalmers's recommendations.
S90
;
commit
made until
it
impossible
Chamberlain
Despite Chalmers's warnings (taken up in England by Fox Bourne)
Bureh was captured, three columns moved out from Freetown to show the flag throughout the Protectorate. Woodgate was invalided home (returning within a few months to Africa to perish at Spion Kop), so Cunningham commanded against 'military promenades', once Bai
the largest force yet seen in Sierra Leone, 995 troops, under fifty-six
with 4,295 carriers. Before they left, Fairtlough reported rumours that Kwelu was endangered by attack from the Kisi country, where Fabunde's enemies were gathering, reinforced by Nyagua's son Mogbe, and some Sofas. An advance party proved the alarm exaggerated with Fabunde's help officers,
;
they dispersed the invaders.
Thomas Clements, an
n.c.o.
Among
the few Frontier casualties
from the Banana
Islands,
who had
was
fought
intrepidly with Fairtlough in the Kisi country in 1896.
When
the three
columns converged on Panguma
in February 1899,
they took the offensive into the Kisi country, and broke up the coalition
of Fabunde's enemies. They then marched back to Freetown along different routes. By March there were few parts of the Protectorate where the might of British arms had not been displayed; seventy-eight Europeans, more than had ever assembled in the Protectorate, met at Kanrelahun. They covered 2,629 miles, mapping often very imperfectly
When
as
they went country
known.
were advancing peaceably they and welcomed them there was none of the opposition Chalmers prophesied, nor any mass flight into French Guinea or Liberia. The leaders were mostly imprisoned, or hanged, or (like old Bai the people realized the troops
lost their fears
:
Kompa) had died. An amnesty proclaimed for all but the murderers of Humphrey, Suri Bunki and Pa Kombo, allowed those in hiding to return unobtrusively. So, with a speed and ease that in niid-1898 could scarcely have been imagined, the
In
Hut Tax War ended.
December Chalmers went home
Until
it
to
Edinburgh
appeared. Sierra Leone questions were
though the newspapers
still
to write his report.
deemed
sub judice,
printed occasional partisan comments.
Chamberlain, in reply, sent the press a report by Fairtlough upholding
Cardew, thus rousing the Chambers of Commerce to protest at a breach of official impartiality. In January 1899 Mary Kingsley pubhshed West African Studies, which contained an indictment of the Hut Tax and the Crown Colony 591
system. Traders* grievances, so often vague or contradictory, or plainly
of
were
set out convincingly with constructive remedies kind they seldom formulated themselves. She proposed the
self-seeking, a
Colonial Office be swept out of West Africa, replaced by a Council nominated by the English Chambers of Commerce, responsible directly to the Secretary of State, a parliament of business men who would free the country from the shackles of 'governmental hindrance'.
Chamberlain, with
his
business background,
took her
seriously,
corresponded with her about alternatives to the Hut Tax, and seemed ready to seek advice from the Chambers.
He
insisted their complaints,
which some permanent officials considered impertinence, be fully answered, not choked off with perfunctory replies. He conferred with their representatives
about the Hut Tax in
May; he
agreed, against the
permanent officials' advice, they see Chalmers before he went out. Yet their proposals came to little more than complaints of government expenditure and excessive taxes, echoed in Freetown by the Kissy
Road
Traders' Association
who made
similar complaints to
Chalmers.
Yet while the Chambers were declaring government was spending too much, they were objecting to Cardew's proposal to pull
down
the
ruinous bonded warehouse instead of rebuilding it for their benefit at public expense. Early in 1899 they brought up the great hardship jury
imposed on Europeans in Freetown. Investigation showed that Chadwick, one of the three complainants, had served only three times in five years, the others once, that Bonner, anxious to have some European assessors at his assize had chosen all three, but they had refused. Only at Bonthe did he find a European trader public-spirited enough to sit. Thus, even at a time when they were complaining that trade was so disturbed they had nothing to do, Mary Kingsley's service
'heroes' preferred to avoid civic responsibility.
Cardew pointed out that
had opened the
that
it
was government, not European
interior, contrasting his
own
trade,
forward-looking
policy of developing the Protectorate with their sedentary
myopia
which saw no further than the annual balance-sheet. He recalled how the Colony had been starved of revenue for schools, public buildings and sanitation for twenty years to gratify trading interests, retorting on the Manchester Chamber that they welcomed millions being spent to home, but grudged every penny to improve a country
build canals at
whence they diew such
profit.
592
Unlike the Sofa Expedition, an ^Imperial' war, proposed in London, where the Colony only bore part of the expense, the Hut Tax War
was purely Colonial. The cost, nearly -^50,000, chiefly from Army funds, had to be repaid by the Colony in amiual instalments (not paid up finally till 1905). In addition, traders and missionaries, crippled, often ruined, by their
demanded compensation. French Company claimed ^13,676 for their eight Sherbro factories, the Palma Trading Co. -^12,028 for their three, their entire Sierra Leone establishment. Lamin Lahai claimed ^6,937, and many smaller traders smaller amounts. Twelve of Thompson Brothers' factories were destroyed. The u.b.c. asked, through the American Embassy, for over ^17,000, the u.m.f.c. for ^3,150. The total compensation claimed greatly exceeded the Army's bill. The Chambers of Commerce pressed the claims, but the Colonial Office, backed up by the Crown Law Officers, disclaimed responsibihty. It had long been held that traders and missionaries went to remote places at their own risk, that government only had to compensate when proved negligent. As negligence was not shown, the claims were rejected. Ex gratia payment to missions was also refused, lest invidiously compensating some lead the rest to demand it. Yet where government was adamant, a chief complied. At Robethel, the Soudan Mission in Marampa, the missionaries went off leaving their property in Bai Koblo's care. He let it be plundered. When they complained, his sub-chief Pa Suba collected £120 from his people and losses,
paid
In
it
to
them.
December
the Colonial Office telegraphed to defer collecting tax
month until Chalmers reported. But the District Comwent on getting arrears still due for 1898. Whatever the people felt, they paid without murmur. £6,241 was raised for 1898. Add ^i,7Q0 for produce and cash destroyed or looted, and Cardew's estimated ^8,000 was realized (p. 550), enabling him to answer with monetary evidence the argument that the people were too poor to pay. He toured the pacified areas and reported them quietly rebuilding their villages. When the month was up, any arrears left for 1898 were waived. Then collection for 1899 started, sanctioned provisionally, pending Chamberlain's decision on Chalmers's report. for 1899 for a
missioners
Chalmers's draft reached the Colonial Office
at the
end of January,
an uncompromising indictment of Cardew's government and the 593
Hut Tax. Chamberlain
felt he could scarcely reject the conclusions of a Commissioner he had chosen himself, unless they were proved partial or unreliable. As Cardew's views were ignored throughout, he was allowed to comment on the report before it was published, and went on
leave in
March
to put his case.
Major Matthew Nathan, who as a young officer had superintended fortification of Freetown, attracted Chamberlain's notice as Secretary of the Imperial Defence Committee. He wanted to transfer to the Colonial Service, and was seconded temporarily to act Governor while Cardew was in England. One of Bai Bureh's guards, a Temne in the West African Regiment, tried to help him escape from Karene. In February he was moved to Freetown gaol. At the Colonial Office, as in Freetown, there was general sympathy for a fighter who had opposed heavy odds cleanly and bravely when his incarceration was reported in the English press Cardew was warned he must not be treated as a felon. Chamberlain urged Nathan to release him if possible. Cardew too favoured releasing him once future policy was settled. Nathan moved him and Nyagua from gaol to arrest in a house in Ascension Town, near the lodging of King Prempe of Ashanti, sent to Freetown as a political prisoner in 1896. Crowds flocked to see the famous Bai Bureh. But despite popular feelings and Chamberlain's the
:
Nathan decided against sending a leader so much identified government back to a country recently at war, with where his return might be ascribed to official weakness rather than wishes,
resistance to
magnanimity. Nyagua he was readier to release, to quiet Panguma, disorganized in his absence, till he heard he was sending surreptitious messages to liis people, who were in fear that he would punish them on his return for letting
in
him be
Freetown
against him,
him
captured.
in
May
Be Sherbro (Ghana
was believed
either, lest
Lewis), gaoled
on
arrival
1898 without any defmite charge being proved so powerful that
Nathan opposed
releasing
he again disturb trade.
by Ordinance as political prisoners to the Gold Coast (whose government accepted them as Sierra Leone Prempe). They left on July the 30th for Christiansborg, each with a wife and an All three were deported
attendant.
Nyagua
died there in 1906,
Ghana Lewis, 594
despite
vam
appeals to
;
have him to
end
his
about 1912. Bai Bureh was allowed back in 1905
released, in
days peaceably in his
own
country.
Sharpe sentenced Bai Foki and AlimamiLahai to
ment
fifteen years'
imprison-
and others alleged, but not proved, implicated, to imprisonment with hard labour. These sentences, which Sharpe submitted, and Cardew approved, before the prisoners were tried, had to be disallowed when the Law Officers' report on Bai Bureh was for levying war,
received. Instead, the two chiefs were detained in Freetown gaol by Ordinance Nathan decided to keep them there until convinced their countries were quiet. Bai Kura Hari of Tinkatupa, convicted by Sharpe on slender evidence, and similarly detained, he released after a few months. Bimba Kele of Mokele, twice acquitted of murder by Bonner, but detained by Ordinance, died in gaol in July.
Nathan paid short visits to Ronietta and Karene Districts. Where Cardew had seen busy villagers rebuilding their homes and paying tax, he saw large devastated areas and wondered whether the inhabitants, even
if willing,
could
raise the
tax-money. Discharged
about using the tenuous authority of their former to oppress
and plunder.
He
swarmed employment
carriers
official
suspected Frontiers and soldiers of looting.
Defeated in war, the people dared not
resist
and took to the bush
at
the approach of a uniform, seeming to expect oppression. In Masimera blackmailers terrorized victims by threatening to denounce them for the murders excepted from the amnesty. Yet Creoles returning were enraged at seeing those who had plundered them or murdered their friends walking about freely.
Nathan tried to restore confidence in government: at Kambia he shook hands with 300. The West African Regiment was moved out of the towns into miUtary lines under stricter discipline. He persuaded the unwilling
Cardew
to let the
sullen in the bush, return
Taiama people, hidden frightened and
and rebuild
their
town, instead of leaving
it
desolate for perpetuity.
The Creoles welcomed Nathan, if only because he was not Cardew. Though he thought poorly of them, he concealed his opinions and endeared himself to them: in
later years
pacification as well as fortification.
595
he was remembered for
In June there
was
a riot in the
Freetown
streets
between
men of the
A pohceman was killed. Memories of the Mende massacres revived. Mobs attacked the soldiers, and beat up Mende and other immigrants. The Regiment was marched up to Kortright Hill, stoned by the crowds as they went. Respectable people were horrified, if only because they feared reprisals in the Protectorate. Nathan and Lewis walked through the streets together dispersing crowds. Yet the tactful ease with which Nathan restored order was tempered with firmness: he refused to let the military authorities yield to mob violence and move the whole West African Regiment up country.
West
African Regiment and the pohce.
The war held up railway
though the railway played its part Waterloo. In December 1898 the first stretch, Freetown to Songo Town, was handed over to the government complete with rolling stock, stations and telegraph. Nathan opened it formally to traffic on May the ist. This first stage brought new life to the eastern villages, raising land values and enabling the people to send produce easily to Freetown. But there was no hope of its paying. So the construction engineer went on with the next stage, to Rotifunk, wliilc the third was surveyed to Bo, where it was hoped to tap rich natural resources and recover the outlay on building and maintenance. building,
in operations, transporting troops to
Parkes's post
had become an anomaly: Nathan had
to give special
orders upholding his right to see District Commissioners' reports.
His health was failing. Yet, weakened by chronic nephritis, he still went on writing reports on subjects only he understood. He was too ill to accompany Nathan up country. On August the loth he died,
aged thirty-eight.
With
the death of this outstanding public servant
all official
connex-
ion between Creoles and chiefs was severed. His department was
wound
up, and the last vestige of equal partnership between European
and educated African
Chalmers's report appendix, 682.
in the
filled
He came
development of the Protectorate
evidence,
the
Kingslcy's conclusion, that the
Hut
eighty-two folio pages, to
Mary
ceased.
596
his
Tax was wrong
and had been forced unjustly on people too poor to pay. He accused the government of collecting by force, giving many instances of Frontier cruelty. He brought what were less charges than insinuations against the District Commissioners of suppressing in
itself,
He
evidence, and using needless violence.
implied
when a young man was shot dead by the Frontiers District, though Moore in his evidence had denied suggested for the outbreak
and
restrictions
on
—that the
slavery,
or that
it.
All other reasons
chiefs resented the loss
was the
it
independent peoples encroached on by alien rule at least
Moore was present at Mabobo, Bumpe of power
inevitable rising
—he
brushed
once in contradiction to the evidence quoted. Witnesses
upheld them, largely officials and missionaries, he passed over or prejudiced.
The
He proposed
as
of
aside,
who
ignorant
Creoles and their press he acquitted of all blame.
Hut Tax be
that the
abolished, the Frontier Police
cut to a small garrison force, even disbanded, and that chiefs rule, as
Rowe had
suggested, with District Commissioners as advisers.
quate revenue to fmance
this
Ade-
reduced administration he considered
could be raised by the Customs without direct taxes.
Cardew's reply, dated
As
May
the
so often before, he justified the
show
answered him point by point. Hut Tax. He brought evidence to
ist,
the chiefs aggrieved at their loss
of power. Overlooking
his
having told the Liverpool Chamber in 1895 that slave-dealing was it deep-rooted and
virtually extinct in the Protectorate, he declared
the chiefs resentful at
taken
its
him unawares, but
being checked.
He
admitted the rising had
reiterated his conviction that the Creoles
were behind it. Like Chalmers he twisted the evidence to support his case: he said, for instance, that Chalmers's argument that tax was believed expropriation had been elicited purely by asking leading questions, ignoring a spontaneous answer by Parkes. He justified taxing without consent on grounds of expediency. He answered Chalmers's charge that tax was collected by illegal means with the argument that the law it was collected under was his own Protectorate Ordinance which had been carried out as he wanted. Admitting some charges against the Frontiers, he recalled the improvement in discipline during his governorship, and praised their courage and loyalty during the rising, when fifty were killed, seventy-three wounded. He angrily repudiated the insinuation against Moore. Here Chalmers, in his anxiety to discredit the government, spoilt his own case by accepting evidence unsifted. Had he examined it 597
more
might have found that there was indeed a Frontier officer at Mabobo when the young man was shot, not Moore, as supposed by witnesses to whom one imfamiliar white face and uniform was much as another, but Warren, whose wild foray through the closely he
Bumpe
country in March
(p.
569) he overlooked entirely. Careful
might have provided him with a damaging charge against government; instead he laid himself open to the equally damaging charge of gross prejudice and unfairness. Cardew proposed the tax be not only retained but extended to the Colony. Agreeing the Frontiers be kept under strict discipline, he could not agree they be reduced. Ready, as always, to rule through the chiefs as much as possible, he felt they must be controlled by District Commissioners to prevent them warring, or oppressing their subjects, recalling that Rowe, whom Chalmers quoted, had worn liimself out in vain efforts of persuasion. But he suggested they be made fully responsible for collecting tax, as indeed he had always intended. Chalmers's hope of raising more indirect revenue he declared illusory. Cardew's despatch was no mere apologia it proclaimed a positive policy. While Chalmers and the traders, Creole or European, were satisfied with preserving the status quo as cheaply as possible, he envisioned the development of the Protectorate by a civilization and commerce whose worth he was sincerely convinced of. Chalmers, who never visited the Protectorate, wanted chiefs to go on ruling in the old way Cardew wanted an administration fit for an era of economic expansion stimulated by railways and development companies. While traders grudged official expenditure on development he, in 1899, looked forward to metalled roads carrying motor traffic through the Protectorate. Thus whatever Cardew's mistakes in executing the makeshift policy a long tradition of government parsimony forced on him, he could not be blamed for lack of vision. With these two documents before him. Chamberlain could no longer treat Chalmers as a judge, but as an advocate in a case he must judge investigation
:
:
himself. Disinclined at
first
to risk facing Parliament to justify his
damaging to government, made by his own nominee, he was recalled by his Parliamentary Under-Secretary to rejecting a report so
seeing the sistently
Hut Tax
in a less parochial context. Selbornc,
sighted enterprise
who
con-
poHcy the kind of fargovernors had hitherto had little chance o^ pur-
defended Cardew, sensing
in
his
suing, stressed that only direct taxation could raise revenue to develop
the Protectorate.
He
prophesied that 598
if
it
were abohshed
in
Sierra
Leone ies,
it
could never be introduced into the other West African Colon-
for the people
Bonner,
would have
who saw
learnt the lesson that resistance pays.
of Cardew
Freetown (but seems advocated his views on his
a great deal
in
only to have called once on Chalmers), also still anxious for compromise, sug-
return to London. Chamberlain,
Hut Tax, but Nathan advised weakening government's prestige by even a change of name. Early in May Chamberlain asked representatives of the Chambers of Commerce to a conference, apparently the kind of cooperation Mary Kingsley wanted. There he told them what Cardew reported, that the tax was being readily paid. Without discussing whether it should ever gested the tax be retained as 'tribute' not
against
have been levied, he asked them to consider the future, emphasizing that to abandon it would be taken as a sign of official weakness. A. L. Jones agreed that, much as he disliked the tax, it would be dangerous to give
it
up.
Having
The Chambers grudgingly silenced them,
it
was
assented.
easier for
Chamberlain
to repudiate
Chalmers's report, though he stalled off questions in the House until July the
nth
before presenting
it.
The
first,
and thinner, volume con-
tained the report, Cardew's reply and evidence, and Chamberlain's
own
damaging Chalmers outevidence. Chamberlain's despatch, without repudiating right, upheld Cardew. The aspersed officers were vindicated, the Frontier Police exonerated, the Creoles given a cold verdict of Non Proven. It stressed particularly Cardew's references to slavery and slaveconclusions;
dealing,
the
second
Chalmers's voluminous,
which Chalmers ignored,
to silence humanitarian critics.
Volume was debated on August I
volume
II
the 3rd, the last day of the session;
appeared after Parliament had been prorogued. Only one
member spoke
against
it:
events in the Transvaal distracted attention
from Sierra Leone. Chamberlain embodied his despatch in a long speech, enlivened by a touch of tragic drama. As he spoke, a message was handed him with the news that Chalmers, who had returned broken in health by the labours he was repudiating, had just died.
599
XXIII THE
Chalmers Report roused
interest in
little
England.
The
Times upheld Chamberlain, Ingham swelling the correspondence
columns with a note o£ praise. The trading interests, having backed down at their Conference, could only grumble. Nor was their compliance rewarded. When, encouraged by Chamberlain's expressed wish to consult them, they asked that, even if Cardew's policy be approved, he be transferred, they were told not to meddle with the Secretary of State's
Some washing
affairs.
opposition newspapers denounced government for whitea discreditable scandal.
An
article in the Nineteenth
Century
defending Cardew provoked an angry pamphlet from E. D. Morel,
of her late husband by Lady Chalmers. Mary by the Chambers of Commerce, turned saddened from what she believed a betrayal of justice. Yet Cardew pierced her armour, went, as she said, like an early Christian thrown to the lions to beard her in her den in Kensington, and showed her that his policy, however wrong she might believe it, had been honestly conceived and
and
a bitter justification
Kingsley, abandoned
executed.
The Hut Tax War stimulated Wallis to publish The Advance of Our West African Empire in 1903, with a lurid tale of his own experiences, and an account of the Bai Bureh campaign (which he took no part in), condensed from the despatches printed Alldridge included in his 1
in Chalmers's Report. T. J.
The Sherhro and
90 1, an exciting chapter about the alarms
chiefly valuable for his descriptions
Its
at
Hinterland, published
Bonthe, but the book
of the country and
its
is
inliabitants,
based on his long experience.
Foreign observers drew their a pamplilet cities in
the
own lessons. A
exposing the hypocrisy of
Congo
Belgian professor wrote
a nation that
but hushed them up in
war an
its
condemned
own
colonics.
atro-
Emile
of a fatal flaw in British West African policy which, obsessed with the bcHcf in its own civiHzing mission, would not see that the chiefs must fear, hate, and try to throw off^ the alien rule imposed on them. Baillaud, writing in 191 2,
saw
in the
600
ilkistration
would vindicate them, have their oppressor expelled, even perhaps have some control of raising revenue vested in their Chamber of Commerce, were shattered by what the
The
Creoles' hopes that Chalmers
Sierra
But
Leone Times called the
*slap in the face'
was held
having learnt that criticism
of Chamberlain's decision. disloyalty the newspapers
renounced comment for resigned despair. The Lagos Record taunted neglect of duty. They merely awaited passively the return of a Governor who despised and mistrusted them. The City Council, unable to raise enough revenue by licences, had
them with
began in April 1899. So when Cardew returned in October and began preparing a Colony House Tax Ordinance, he decided rates could be considered taxes and left to introduce rates in 1898; collection
Freetown out. In the Protectorate, chiefs could let their people gather tax produce
on any waste ground: in the Colony villages, the soil was technically Crown Land, where encroachment was forbidden. So, though a uniform 55 per house was levied, reductions or exemptions were liberally granted.
The Ordinance
also expressly stated that
used to benefit the part of the Colony
Cardew
was
it
revenue be
raised in.
constituted elected village boards to suggest suitable public
works, but refused them the responsibility of carrying them out.
Government
still
preferred not to notice that most villages had been
When Chalmers asked three government could be introduced
virtually self-governing for generations.
senior officials whether municipal there, they declared
Having
it
impossible.
learnt the danger
Cardew gave
of taxing without adequate warning, It was printed in draft in
the Ordinance full publicity.
from London as early as 1836 (p. 215), revived from time to time (particularly by Fleming), but normally neglected. The Solicitor-General published a pamphlet schooling the people in the virtues of tax-paying. But they had learnt their lesson; there were not even angry letters in the papers. Despite Chamberlain's apprehensions, direct taxation was extended to the Colony without the Gazette, a practice enjoined
riot.
Yellow
fever remained quiescent in
Freetown
lower than in again in the 821613
after the
outbreak of
among European
officials was mortality European rose But the Gold Coast or Lagos.
1884; for another decade the death rate
'90s.
Sixteen died in
March 1897 during 5oi
a fever
epidemic
Qq
which Dr Prout, the Colonial Surgeon, ascribed to the exposure of malarious soil by railway building. In 1899, at Front's instigation, government leased the old Mixed Commission building from the Spilsbury family as a European Nursing Home. Staffed from England with nurses suppled by the Colonial Nursing Association started in 1896, forts lacking in a strange
it
gave invalid Europeans the com-
community: Lewis and A.
S.
Hebron
(ap-
pointed to Legislative Council after Bishop died in 1898) approved of it. If the medical authorities could tality
keep check on the health and mor-
of the small European population,
many
Creoles escaped them,
preferring the ministrations of druggists or country doctors. diseases but births is
and deaths, were incompletely registered so that
impossible to estimate Creole morbidity
were
diseases
Not only
many
intestinal or malarial;
statistically.
The
it
prevailing
died after paralytic strokes.
The early deaths of the prominent (p. 472) seems to point to a low expectation of life, but without adequate statistics one cannot tell whether a tendency among leading Creoles was characteristic of all. Nor is there any standard of comparison with expectation of life among the Protectorate peoples. The censuses taken deceniaUy from 1871 were also defective. The categories ^Liberated Africans
and
their descendants',
and
^Natives',
were loosely interpreted. The census areas varied from decade to decade. No account was kept of Creole emigration along the Coast. Thus demographic pronouncements were bound to be inaccurate and subjective.
In
ing
1
897 Prout reported on public health in Freetown, quoting alarmworked out from the incomplete registers of births and
statistics
deaths.
The annual
death-rate, averaging i'8 per cent in English cities,
he estimated 2*9 per cent. Infant mortahty he put ascribing
it
chiefly to
at 40 per cent, incompetent midwives and improper infant
Cardew assumed
proved that the Creoles were dying out. When the 1901 census showed the population had increased, the Registrar-General could only suppose immigration from the feeding.
his report
Protectorate to account for
accepted
this
it.
interpretation
Many, including some of defective
statistics,
Creoles, readily
and assumed
a
decadence by no means proved.
In
London,
in
1896,
Dr
Patrick
Manson propounded
the theory,
hitherto only tentatively suggested, that mosquitoes carry malaria.
602
Meanwhile in India Major Ronald Ross was trying to prove it. In August 1897 he found malarial parasites in the stomach of an anopheles mosquito, answeriug those who for centuries had 'questioned the winds and waters vainly' for the causes of malaria. The heavy casualties from disease during the Ashanti War had shown Chamberlain the importance of tropical medicine. He appointed
Manson
Colonial Office Medical Adviser and, at his suggestion, per-
suaded the Treasury to give grants for a London School of Tropical
Medicine and a Malaria Investigation Committee. raised
from Colonics
likely to benefit: Sierra
School provided courses
for
Money was
Leone gave
>(^300.
Colonial Service doctors
as
also
The
well
as
sponsoring research.
A. L. Jones, not to be outdone by London, promised /^350 a year for a Liverpool School of Tropical Medicine. Other business men subscribed; in 1900 R. B. Blaize of Lagos gave
Mary
^soo
m
memory of
Kingsley. Ross was appointed a lecturer and, in August 1899
brought
team to Freetown to seek anopheles and devise ways of
a
fighting them.
Malaria was raging
Regiment
at
at
Wilberforce
;
the barracks built for the
hospital walls, providing a
theory.
He
West
African
anopheles, gorged with blood, covered the
ready-made experiment to confirm
his
discovered that while non-malarial mosquitoes breed in any
on the ground, near was no need to drain the
water-container, anopheles breed only in puddles
human
habitations. Thus he realized there swamps of Africa, empty of people (and so of anopheles), or teach whole population hygiene, that it was enough to drain built-up areas
vast a
and sweep up, or
He
also
which,
disinfect, street puddles.
recommended gauze window
after his years in India,
and suggested houses be
screens,
and mosquito
he was astonished to fmd so
built in the
liills
little
nets,
used,
for Europeans.
This suggestion, rejected in the past for the expense, though acted on by the Arrny, and the missions (Roman Catholics, c.m.s., and u.B.c. had houses on Leicester Peak), was made more practicable by the railway: Cardew proposed a branch line from Freetown to above Gloucester. But at the Colonial Office it was still thought too expensive. E. E. Austen, a dipterologist
Until then
years later a
Ross, solved the
which killed ofi horses, by fmding a tsetse was believed there were none in Sierra Leone. Two doctor from the Liverpool School discovered a trypano-
mystery of the fly.
who accompanied
'loin disease' it
603
some as
in the blood
of
a patient in the
Gambia, proving
it
a
human
well as an animal infection. In Havana, in 1900, self-sacrificing
experiments in the U.S.
Army
fever mosquito-borne. So the
Medical Department proved yellow
new
century opened with the pros-
pect of medical research dispelling the sinister reputation of
West
Africa.
May 1898 that nearly every chief was concerned Yet of twenty-two appointed in 1897 to share jurisdiction with the District Commissioners in the tax-paying Districts, not more than six were implicated. With peace restored, those loyal to government returned to power. Madam Yoko and Nancy Tucker now waged private wars of their own; Momo Kai Kai encroached on his neighbours' land with impunity. Chiefs government could rely on were confirmed or installed in the centres of the Mende rising. Madam Yoko's and Nancy Tucker's chiefdoms were enlarged. Despite orders to give up outstations, Nancy was allowed a few Frontiers to protect her. When Kwelu was condemned as unhealthy in 1899, and District Headquarters moved to Cardew
declared in
in the rising.
Moyamba, Madam Yoko
followed, to build her
having been destroyed in the war), and get
Bimba Kele was Milton Strieby,
replaced
town
official
there (Senehun
protection.
by Bangali Margai, whose brother, educated
a successful trader
at a u.B.c. school,
had
helped capture Doomabey. Wilberforce became chief of Impcri, the first Christian pastor to be a cliief; he renamed his town Toso, Victoria. Lamin Lahai became chief of Sulima. The Bumpe chiefdom went to James Canre baCaulker, cousin of
the luckless Richard
Madam
who
died in Freetown gaol in 1901. At Shenge
Sophia Ncale Caulker (who for her manners, appearance and
respectability has
been compared to Queen Victoria), representing by
line, by marriage the Ba Tham, succeeded her husband and cousin the murdered Thomas Ncalc. Though Ins murderers were known, and some of his relatives called for justice, they
birth the
Ba Charch
were never punished. Chiefs' courts opened again
in
1899, slightly restricted in scope.
Rules for collecting tax defined (what 1898)
which
chiefs
were responsible
was not
clearly laid
for collecting,
down
in
and what rebates
should be given. Thus Cardew's policy of using the chiefs to help administer the Protectorate was restored. 604
As Nathan foresaw, the tax for 1899 was below Cardew*s estimate, only -^19,364, not -^25,000. But in 1900, extended over the whole country (except remote Koranko) -£30,045 was paid, almost all in cash, justifying his contention that whatever objections were made to the Hut Tax, the people were capable of paying it. Nor did he have to take road labour in lieu of payment wliich Chamberlain suggested, but
which he considered Despite
this
again, trade
imports for
kind of forced labour.
a
apparent testimony to the Protectorate's being settled
was
disorganized.
still
Army and
Huge Customs
receipts disguised
railway, and traders re-stocking looted stores.
The value of exported produce was
in 1900
^40,000 below what
it
nearly -£100,000 below.
was
in 1897, in 190 1 Traders kept up a rearguard action against the tax. E. D. Morel denounced it regularly in West Africa, started in London in 1900 to
The European manager of
voice trading views.
Enterprise Ltd cir-
Yoni plotting to avenge their defeat in 1898 (when they had in fact fought for government). Troops had to be sent to Rotifunk to calm the railway construction engineer. Questions were asked in Parhament. When Frontiers at Karene mutinied against an officer who confmed them to barracks, the English press assumed culated stories of the
another war was starting.
Cardew, suspecting them dehberately manufactured, pointed out how little there was to fear from people defeated, disarmed and forbidden to buy arms. Chamberlain brushed
But such alarms proved
illusory.
aside Parliamentary criticism as *almost ancient history
.
Cardew's five-year term expired towards the end of 1900. Antrobus, summed up his career in a minute of
Assistant Under-Secretary,
epitaph
No
:
post
outstanding amid mediocrity, he relied too
was vacant
for a
retired into private life
Governor
and died
much on
so dangerously
thirty years in peaceful island colonies,
repeal.
But
He began
endowed. He
in 1921.
The arrival of his successor. Sir Charles King-Harman, against the tax.
himself.
a civihan nearly
brought renewed
press outcries
the Colonial Office forbade his even considering
touring the Protectorate at once. Loyally received
everywhere, he was soon convinced there was no fear of another rising. The despatches about his tours were printed for Parliament to show
how
down. Deprived of Parkcs's knowledge, Port Loko as until recently a and Bai Bureh as the tool of a gang of Port Loko
the country was settling
he included some strange ^central slave mart',
lore, described
slave-dealers.
605
The
facade of peace and order concealed violence and corruption.
Despite Chamberlain's orders that the Frontiers be kept under control they were
still
strict
allowed to go out registering huts and helping
chiefs collect tax. Outstations, ostensibly abolished, continued.
Away
from their officers there was no one to check how much tax they demanded nor how they collected, any more than in 1898. In Ronietta they were foimd to be burning villages. Everywhere there was bribery, extortion, petty tyranny. Many whose towns had been destroyed in the war rebuilt them away from the roads to elude the Frontiers. The chiefs, too, as tax-collectors with a commission on takings, had every incentive to exploit. install loyal chiefs,
When
put in their
District Commissioners, anxious to
own
nominees, they seemed to their
subjects not lawful rulers but tax-gatherers
masquerading
as chiefs.
of chiefs demanding presents as well as tax, or collecting two or three times. The Koya people were said to have paid Hut Tax, then been made to pay a Farm Tax. The influx of
The Freetown
labourers
press
from
had
stories
the Protectorate
was believed swelled by refugees
from chiefs or Frontiers. During the 1890s the Colonial Office considered amalgamating the West African military police forces: Cardew was inclined to disapprove,
lest it interfere
with the Frontiers' police
duties. In 1899, after
Lugard had raised the West African Frontier Force to resist the French on the Niger, an Inter-Departmental Committee recommended they be merged, to serve primarily in the Colony they were stationed in, but ready to move in a crisis to another. The officers would have military rank, but the force be Colonial, under the Secretary of State's control, each unit paid by its own Colony. This plan was carried out in 1901. But before November, when the Ordinance was passed constituting the Sierra Leone Battalion of the West African Frontier Force (as the Frontier Pohce became), King-
Harman determined
to
make
it
a purely military body.
He relieved
the
of police duties and put them into barracks like soldiers. The Court Messengers, increased by 100, took over policing. To meet the expense, 100 Frontiers were disbanded, the increased efficiency regular drilling gave, making up for loss of numbers. Even so, the Sierra Leone Battalion cost over ^20,000 a year. The Court Messenger Force, directly under the District Commissioners' orders, was formally constituted by Ordinance in 1907. Many abuses in the Protectorate could be ascribed to the lack of administrative officers. District Commissioners were given Assistants
Frontiers
606
in 1899, but while the
Only
South African
War lasted
it
was hard
to recruit.
Fairtlough remained of the original District Commissioners.
Sharpe
moved
to the
more congenial solitude of a remote Northern slack, was made to resign. Inexperienced
Nigerian station; Carr, grown doctors or Frontier ofEcers often diverted energies until 1904,
when
Commissioners
still
had to take charge. Personal bickerings
from administration to long paper-battles. Not was complete, could District
the full establishment
begin
supervising
tax-collection
adequately,
and
preventing chiefs exploiting their people.
whom King-Harman excluded from adminiCardew, resented the District Commissioners* powers which virtually deprived them of legal safeguards, hi 190 1 when the Protectorate Ordinances were revised, the Bar Association petitioned to allow appeals from their judgements. Lewis put their case to Legislative Council with a restraint that proved his contention that criticism need be neither selfish nor disloyal. King-Harman, aware that District Commissioners sometimes used Creoles up country,
stration as firmly as
'crude and peculiar procedure' in court, sympathized, but rather than subject
them
to appeals, established a Circuit
Court under
a puisne
judge, leaving them only magisterial jurisdiction.
Relieved of a judicial burden they were unqualified give
more time
to administration,
and
for,
they could
to gaining the confidence
of
people necessarily mistrustful while they had far-reaching arbitrary jurisdiction.
They could become more
the advisers Chalmers had
wanted, and were instructed to understand and help their people
as
well as rule them.
Apart from
raids
from the
Kisi country across the Liberian frontier,
was was moved to Daru, on the Moa, nearer the disturbed area. The frontier was finally settled in 191 1, delimited in 1912. The Liberian government gave up their part of the Luawa chiefdom (as Cardew had suggested) in return for part of the Gola forest, further south, and -^4,000. The details of the adjoining frontier with French Guinea were adjusted in 19 12. the Protectorate remained peaceful. In 1905 a military expedition sent against the Kisi; in 1906 the w.a.f.f. headquarters
During the depression years there was no money repair, public buildings in
Freetown. 607
When
to build, scarcely to
revenue increased in the
1
many were
890s
worth
scarcely
repairing. Plans
were drawn
for a
grandiose administrative block in Westmoreland Street; Ginger Hall,
property out Kissy Road, which had belonged to
a European trader Freetown family, was bought as a site for a new prison. But Protectorate and Railway expenditure ate up available funds all that could be built was a new Customs House, and a wing to the Post Office. The Secretariat was patched up and not rebuilt until 1925. The dilapidated old gaol remained in use until a new one was built at the end of Pademba Road in 1914. It was then a
in the 1830s
and passed to
his
:
pulled
down
to extend the Hospital.
Freetown saw a view not very Wallis, or Major Mockler-Ferryman, in his Visitors to
the familiar picture of disease
mocks the beauty of
houses, squalid huts,
change in
little
tumble-down houses
still
different British
from Burton's.
West
Africa,
in grassy streets,
gave
where
the surrounding landscape. Half-built
disfigured the
main
streets.
Nathan, finding
twelve years' absence, had an Ordinance passed,
his
with Lewis's approval, enabling the Municipality to compel owners to
improve properties. But only the town centre was affected. The outlying areas were excepted on the grounds of hardship to the poor. Continuous building stretched from Brookfields and King Tom to Granville Brook. The land between the regularly spaced streets to the east (the lines of the Nova Scotian country allotments) was crammed with houses and shanties full of immigrants from the Protectorate. Some crowded into ^accommodates', roughly built sheds let out to as many as they would hold, yielding the owners a rental which may have helped reconcile them to the influx of 'unwashed aborigines'. But they were still kept at a distance, nor was there much interest in missions to convert them to Christianity.
market in Kru Town Road in 1899, but was little revenue for much municipal hillside east of Fort Thornton was set open improvement. Part of the aside at the time of the Diamond Jubilee for the Public Works Depart-
The City Council
even
after rates
ment
were
Park with bandstand and benches. The handed over to the Municipality unfinished, and
to lay out as a Victoria
work was
ill-done,
not fmally opened
An
built a
levied, there
till
1900.
city, where water was was delayed by disputes over how it should be managed. Cardcw, convinced the City Council would be incompetent to run it, wanted government control, the Colonial
adequate water-supply for the expanding
only laid on to the central
Office, the City Council.
parts,
The Crown Agents' 608
consultant spent over
two
years considering plans.
Not
until
December 1901 was an Ordin-
ance passed empowering government to build waterworks at the Colony's expense; when finished in 1906 they were handed over to the Municipality to administer and maintain from water
rates.
The Municipality was too much identified with rates ever to become popular. As a taxing body it had to bear the opprobrium of a people who had grown up celebrating annually the abolition of taxes. But except
when
times were bad and people looked round for a scapegoat,
or during election time, the citizens tended to ignore it. Though the Council gave individuals a chance of exercising official responsibility,
they seldom
felt
they were supported by
more than perfunctory interest.
—
was elected mayor Philhp Lemberg, whose long residence and marriage made him an intimate In 1900 and again in 1907 a European
member of the community.
In 19 12 he retired to
England where he
died in 1914 after having spent forty-nine years in Freetown, fifty-one
on
the Coast.
who was
Only
three Europeans beat his record
—Magnus Smith,
Leone by 1824 and died there in 1876, at least fiftyJohn McCormack, fifty-two in Sierra Leone, fifty-seven on the Coast, and Major W. J. Ross, a retired army officer who settled down and married at Regent, who spent over sixty years on the
two
in Sierra
years,
Coast, the
last
forty-one unbrokenly in Sierra Leone.
Alimami Haruna of Fourah Bay died in 1892. Some of the MusHm community installed his son Gheirawani to succeed him; others, mistrusting his youth and European education, chose an older leader,
Suleimana Johnson. The
rival factions,
Jamaat and Tamba, worshipped
law over the ownership of the mosque. Amid this strife the Pratt's Farm school declined. Nathan, interested in Islam, wanted government help for Muslim education. He persuaded the Foulah Town and immigrant Muslim communities to start schools, promising a grant if they were efficient. Blyden helped stimulate interest and planned an institute of higher Muslim learning. This was more than government would pay for, but in 1901 he was appointed apart,
and
in 1899
went
to
Mohammedan Education to Gheirawani's party won the lawsuit
Director of
supervise schools. in
1901, but his opponents
remained unreconciled, and the Fourah Bay community divided. died in 1903, his rival Suleimana in 1905.
609
He
After Ronald Boss sent out
Dr
left
Stephens and
considered draining effective.
building
Freetown, the Malaria Investigation Committee
Dr
Christopher. Less sanguine than he, they
would be
expensive, laborious and perhaps in-
They found anopheles breeding on the hillsides, proving that houses there would not protect the inhabitants, unless they
were segregated from those already infected. Leicester and Gloucester were as much malarial reservoirs as Freetown. They could only recommend Europeans to keep away from carriers, particularly at night when anopheles came out. Their report disinclined the government from spending money on drainage. Many, including Prout and the Army medical authorities, were sceptical of Ross's theories. Ross complained angrily of Chamberlain, so ready to encourage medical research with fine phrases, so sparing of practical help, hi 1901 he organized another expedition from the Liverpool School to see whether purely sanitary measures could reduce infection in Freetown. King-Harman, unconvinced by the mosquito theory, nevertheless gave help. By April 1902 Ross could claim breeding-places had been reduced ninety per cent. But he explained that for permanent success government must continue his work. At the Colonial Office it was felt that his having failed to exterminate the anopheles completely (which he had not set out to do), vitiated his conclusions. His report only circulated one day, and was 'put by' (the Colonial Office formula for filing a document away) without being sent up to Chamberlain or the Under-Secretaries. In Freetown KingHarman and Prout declared his work inconclusive, and too expensive to continue.
To
sanitation they preferred segregation.
Stephens and Christopher's report had revived the plan to
move
hills. King-Harman proposed a railway to a plateau up between Wilberforce and Regent, well away from malaria-contaminated villagers, where there was room for about 100 houses. The line would go from Water Street Station along Westmoreland and Sanders Streets, through Brookfields, and would also
Europeans to the
7-800
feet
serve Wilberforce barracks.
While
the South African
War
dislocated the
London
stock market,
the Crown Agents had delayed floating the Railway Loan; they were fmancing the railway themselves by advances at interest. KingHarman suggested the extra expense be added to the loan capital.
So the ^1,250,000
^47,000
for houses.
raised
Work
included
;£ 3 9,000
started in 1902.
for
a
Hill Railway,
Components
for
wooden
bungalows, mounted high off the ground on iron girders, were sent 610
from England, and the Congo Stream dammed for a By April 1904 the Hill Railway was opened, and the first bungalows finished. King-Harman hoped business would follow up the hill. But by the turn of the century independent European business men had nearly vanished from Freetown; almost all were employees. Though the Liverpool Chamber urged the Hill Railway, its members declined to let their agents profit by it. Only the Cable Company built a bungalow there. The commercial firms let their employc^es stay where they were, so widening the existing social gulf between them and officials. The European population was steadily swelled by the officials Cardew introduced, by more business employees, as trade expanded, and by wives. The 1891 census gave 210 settled Europeans in the Colony, thirty-three of them women; the 1901, 351, forty-nine women. As their numbers grew, social life became increasingly segregated by colour. The events of 1898 deepened the cleavage. Bonner depicted' in his diary a European society not entirely segregated, for Africans were entertained regularly at Government House, but selfsufficient, where even the gregarious had no need to cultivate acquaintprefabricated special
water supply.
ances outside their
own
the Europeans seemed
circle.
A
Belgian traveller noted in 1899 that
withdrawn
into their
own
society.
The news-
papers deplored the widening gap.
While lived in a
all
were neighbours
flat
in Freetown, while the
Chief Justice
over an undertaker's warehouse, the Colonial Secretary
bound Eurogroup was isolated in the hills with wire fences and threatening notices to keep out the other. Thus the hidian model of a racially stratified society was introduced into Sierra Leone, not shamefacedly as required by prejudice, but openly as dictated by medical science. Yet even science had to yield to comfort. Each European was allowed an African servant sleeping on
in the battered old Secretariat,
peans and Africans.
neighbourhood
They broke when one
interests
racial
the premises, and had to pay the price principle exacts in occasional outbreaks
The railway
line
from expediency
of malaria.
reached Rotifunk and was handed over to the Railway
Department in March 1900. The next lap, to Bo, was finished in October 1902 and a third begun to Baiinia. King-Harman and Shelford continually held out before an uneasy Colonial Office the bait of a really rich palm belt at the end of the line. Baiima was reached in 611
1905; a final extension, a tramline to the Liberian hinterland,
build after the efficiently
Colony
was opened
stage,
with
its
Pendembu in 1908.
many
to tap the produce of Comparatively easy to
viaducts,
work
progressed
once the engineers got into their routine. There were few
labour disputes, unskilled labourers could be recruited in the Pro-
was lower than on any other West African railway. Even so, enormous administrative expenses brought construction and running costs far above the initial tectorate at lod a day,
and the
cost per mile, ^4,316,
estimate.
Once even the intermediate stages were open for trafhc the wealth Cardew had foreseen began to pour in from the Protectorate. Palm produce was increasingly sought
after in Europe: glycerine was from palm oil to make explosives, margarine manufactured from kernels; soap and lubricants were in growing demand in an era when more and more self-respecting mechanics tended machines.
extracted
After 1901 export figures rose again. In 1904 they at
1897
level, in
1909 more than doubled
with exports worth over
^i^
it,
million.
in 1912
last
surpassed the
more than
Customs yielded
trebled
it
^^ 102,969
^301,140 in 1912. Hut Tax proceeds rose steadily at a rate of about ^2,000 a year. During the South African War speculators on the London Stock
in 1900,
Exchange, unable to deal in public
was
^kaffirs',
turned to
offered millions of pounds
West
worth of
Africa. In 190 1 the
shares in over 300
development, chiefly mining, companies in the so-called *West African Jungle'.
Those
who
held concessions hoped to profit. But the Colonial
Office, always less enthusiastic than
Protectorate, gave
Cardew about developing
the
company-promoters no countenance. In 1902 the
long delayed Concessions Ordinance was passed, hedging round con-
whether share-pushers or genuine entrepreneurs, with so drastic they were virtually choked off.
cessionaires, restrictions
With the return of peace the *Jungle' balloon burst abruptly. F. W. Dove, whose Kunike concession had been recognized before the Ordinance was passed, found his London associate meant to exploit him, not Kunike, and liis company collapsed. Thompson Brothers who had obtained twenty concessions, chiefly in the Koranko country, to restore their heavy losses in 1898, foimd them worthless. Only John Myer Harris, who disposed of his concession to a syndicate during the 'Jungle' boom, may possibly have made some money from the unexploited wealth of the coimtry he had been so long associated with, to retire to Maida Vale where he died in 1909. 612
The Concessions Ordinance avoided the vexed Not until 1927 was
the status of Protectorate land.
the preamble of an Ordinance, declaring ties
who
it
question of defining a phrase slipped into
Vested in the
tribal authori-
hold such land for and on behalf of the native communities
concerned'.
So those
who wanted to do business in the Protectorate were restrict-
buying produce and retailing imported goods. overcoming what fears they had of returning to where their brethren had been slaughtered in 1898, went back to the Sherbro or followed the railway line. After T. J. Alldridge retired in 1905, he made a tour up country (described in A Transformed Colony, published in 19 10) and was amazed to see Kissy Street apparently transplanted in places almost unknown to the Colony a decade before. Missions too resumed the work interrupted in 1898. But the trains that opened up the Protectorate brought Creoles competition of a new kind. European firms, once content with factories on the river-banks which enterprising Creoles could cut out by pushing inland, began opening agencies along the line. Where all were engaged in the same trade, those with large capital could squeeze out ed to the old
Many
fields,
Creoles,
the small.
They could advance
monopoly
a chief big credits to get a
of his produce, or send out smartly uniformed agents with presents to attract custom. Competition forced the price of kernels up, of goods
down. The firms, buying in bulk, could afford to undersell the small Goods ordered by train were retailed at Freetown prices or less,
trader.
so
the Freetown shopkeeper lost Protectorate customers.
Creoles,
at a disadvantage up country, conscious many District Commissioners disliked them, even, they suspected, set the chiefs against them in a deliberate policy of Divide and Rule, felt further victimized at what seemed the commercial conspiracy of Europeans and natives against them.
politically
Street trading
brought the Syrian 'Corals'
profits to set
shops or take them up country to buy produce, and
Like the early recaptives (who had also started
combined
to
buy wholesale or
small fortunes to take
competed mistrust rivals
(as
who
home
as fiercely against
many
as street traders)
they
one another gain to the Turkish Empire. Creole traders prevented
as against outsiders:
mutual
them cooperating
against
slowly undermined them. Property-owners began letting
Syrians the larger business premises: Kissy Street Syrian.
in
cut prices.
at auction, helping
one another
lamented)
them up
sell at
The
grew
increasingly
cola trade passed into their hands. Cola exports rose
613
immensely, from ^60,351 in 1902, to ^276,473 in 1912, but by then went through Syrian hands without profit to Creole middlemen.
European firms in Freetown did a growing retail trade, offering lower prices than Creole shopkeepers. Mail-order firms, sending catalogues from England, or advertising in the newspapers, took custom from local tailors and shoemakers. Shoes were sometimes sent to England for repair. The market in house-property, the only reliable local investment, was depressed by the building of Hill Station which .removed good tenants.
Though
were European firms and Syrians
there
houses,
better-class
investors lost
the
secure
official
to take the
tenancies.
As
revenue increased, the government tried to give up renting altogether,
and buy or build houses in Freetown for those whose duties prevented them moving up, grouping them if possible in islands of sanitary segregation.
Trade was booming, revenue coming in as never before, but the Colony's inhabitants found themselves growing steadily poorer, without prospect of recovering their commercial prosperity.
Towards
the end of the century the English medical authorities began
raising their
quahfying standards
:
when medical
services
were expand-
The Colonial Office West Africa. To attract
ing everywhere the supply of doctors decreased.
found
young mated
it
increasingly difficult to recruit for
doctors, the
West African medical departments were amalgaon the lines of the old-established
in 1902 in a unified service
Indian Medical Service.
The West African Medical
Service
old settled colonies, but of the
new
was conceived not in terms of the where an immense
Protectorates,
gulf separated the inhabitants from the small, largely
European population.
It
was decided
socially ineligible for the semi-military
country.
It
was
also
argued that
official or
mihtary,
to exclude African doctors, as
mess
senior officials led
life
up
many Europeans disliked being attended
by an African. Sir William MacGregor, Governor, Lagos, himself a doctor, objected to sacrificing the African medical profession to the social feelings
European
officials.
But the Colonial
Office,
however unwilling
of to
introduce openly racial distinctions of a kind never expressly formulated (though
sometimes acted on), was convinced that good candidates
could only be attracted to
a segregated service.
614
Henceforth doctors of
by government were paid at a over even the most junior Euroseniority they nor had lower pean. Dr Renner acted as head of the Sierra Leone Medical Department for the last time in 1902: for his remaining eleven years service African African (or Indian) parentage employed rate;
parentage debarred him, though as a special concession to age and experience he was allowed the higher rate of salary. Fair
words
in Legislative Council prevented the full force
of
reorganization being generally realized in Freetown until 1909,
this
when
White Paper was issued in England explaining it publicly. By then protest was vain: a people long justly proud of its sons' medical prowess had to submit to seeing them denied recognition. a
Cardew's policy of appointing Europeans to senior
by
his successors,
retired
slowly squeezed out Creole
Europeans replaced them.
A
posts,
officials.
continued
As they died or
European displaced J. E. Dawson
head of the Customs in 1900; when Enoch Faulkner died in District was amalgamated administratively with the adjoining
as assistant
1908 his
part of the Protectorate under a European District Commissioner; as the
were brought in. Sub-hispectorwere given up: Benoni Johnson and A. B. Davies served just long enough to hold commissions in the w.a.f.f., but were pensioned in 1902. About fifty Creoles were embodied in the w.a.f.f., but rules against wearing boots, and the lack of opportunity offered to education, discouraged them from enlisting there or in the West African Regiment. The Colony Police too was recruited increasingly from the Protectorate. So by 19 1 2 those who looked back only twenty years saw a revolution in the public service. In 1892, Creoles held eighteen of some forty senior posts; in 1912 the service had so expanded that there were ninety-two such posts (excluding the w.a.f.f. and the Railway Department) but Creoles only held fifteen, five of which were abolished senior printing staff retired Europeans ships
within the next five years
as their
holders retired.
Burton's views prevailed: visitors went on repeating his strictures unthinkingly.
The
old
tales
of
juries victimizing
Europeans were
repeated long after juries had been shorn of their powers. Writers
on echoing disapprovingly
from Reade's Savage Africa at a they had ceased to. Observers Harry Johnston) spent only a few days in
country where blacks
rule,
who
Sir
(like
Burton, or
went
the sneers
long
after
Freetown, were ready to pontificate about African education being only a veneer through which latent savagery kept bursting. 615
This curious myth, so grotesquely at variance with what
less
pre-
judiced observers might have seen of law-abiding Creole respectability,
was widely
believed. Grant Allen embodied it in a popular short story. The Rev. John Creedy, about an African clergyman who, after marrying an English girl, reverts to barbarism. Lord Wolseley described in his
memoirs how the Rev. Thomas Maxwell renounced Christianity on deathbed and sent for a Tetish man*. But Maxwell was still alive, in retirement near Kissy, when the book appeared, and his lawyers made Wolseley pay for the libel. his
If legal proceedings could expose particular libels, they could
eradicate a
myth
persistently repeated (for
Sierra Leone, published 1916),
were
as
ready to think
ill
Httle evidence (p. 602).
had
nor
in
Newland's
dissipate ingrained prejudice.
of Creoles
Even
example
not
People
them decadent, and on as sometimes adopted what
as believe
missionaries
originally been an anti-missionary cry without seeming to perceive
that vilifying
Sentimentalists
their
own
who
creation
admired
made
pagan
who
humanitarians like E. D. Morel
their
or
labours a mockery.
Muslim
picturesqueness,
followed Blyden in deploring
the Europeanization of Africans, swelled the chorus, until
could write in 191 1 in
his
Languages of West Africa,
*it
Migeod
cannot be dis-
guised that the majority of Europeans view with disfavour the pro-
duct of their
own
civilizing influences'.
This disfavour was exhibited in quaint
official
dress in the pro-
of a government school started in 1906 at Bo for chiefs' sons or nominees. Here the doctrines of Blyden, Burton and Rousseau united uneasily to inculcate the dignity of labour while esche^ving the indignity of becoming educated. The boys were to retain what was deemed their native simplicity of mamiers uncontaminated by pretensions to intellectual superiority. Creole schoolmasters were excluded: spectus
Englishmen, styled 'Education Experts', did the teaching in a school wliich turned a contemptuous back
on
a
century of
West African
education.
on a tradition that had borne so rich of educated Sierra Leoneans, in the Albert Academy, founded in 1904 in Freetown, where Protectorate boys were taught in contact with the Colony, not in artificial isolation. Nor was the fundamental weakness of government's scheme unpcrceivcd. Abayomi Cole prophesied in the Weekly News that those Europeans who preferred the pliant obedience of unsophisticated natives to the It
was
left to
the u.B.c. to carry
a fruit in three generations
pretensions of educated Creoles,
would soon 616
find themselves rearing
of educated much.
a class as
whose pretensions they would
natives
dislike quite
In May 1903 Sir Samuel Lewis, for two years in constant pain with what proved to be cancer, gave up public and private business to which, despite illness, he had remained unremittingly attentive, and went to England for treatment. At Manson's advice he was operated on, but
died shortly afterwards on July the 9th, and was buried in Acton
cemetery, aged fifty-nine.
No
one replaced him in Sierra Leone. J. J. Thomas and Malamah already past their prime when appointed to Legislative
Thomas were
Council. Alfred Shorunkeh-Sawyerr whose originality, eloquence, and legal attainments,
seemed
people
by
as a leader;
ment had ceased For
after Lewis's
to
to
mark him
a successor,
never inspired the
the time he reached the legislature, 191 1, governpay much attention to Creole members* speeches.
death almost
all
vestige
of
away. Debates became increasingly public endorsements of
members were allowed
policy where the unofEcial
faded
real partnership
little
official
more than
protests.
came to realize that a government which moved its seraway bodily, and recruited outsiders to fill senior posts, was becoming utterly estranged from them. New laws, even if for the public good, were received with mistrustful hostility by people who, mistrusted themselves, grew ready to impute evil motives even to Creoles
vants
new policy (for new it was, whether became gradually plain, they began to look back with nostalgia to the days of Queen Victoria under whose kind sway, they believed, it would never have been permitted. Vainly the Freetown press poured scorn on a government which well-meant benevolence. As the
expressly formulated or not)
but spurned the edu-
encouraged education (even
if half-heartedly)
cated. Vainly they called
un-Christian, un-English (for as British
it
When
subjects Creoles could fairly
judge of
Duke of Connaught
Freetown, bringing a message from the
King
to
*my
visited
that, too).
in 1910 the
Colony of Sierra Leone' (the Colony condemned unheard in 1898 for disloyalty)
ancient and loyal
Colonial Office had
the the
words, however gratifying, could not but ring sadly in the ears of those Sir
whose ancient
loyalty
was
so
little
regarded.
Samuel's death at fifty-nine exemplified again
mortality went on cutting 821613
down
how
untimely
proniiiicnt Creoles at an age
5jy
R
when r
5
their
office
The average
hfe-span of the
v^hen Lewis died, was seventy-five, of the previous cabinet
(Rosebery's) seventy-seven.
T.
J.
many more years of members of Balfour's cabinet, in
contemporaries in England could expect
service.
Yet
his colleagues in Legislative
Sawyerr, Daniel Jarrett and T. C. Bishop, died
fifty-three
Council
at sixty-one,
and forty-eight.
Parkes, in
government
Farmer, in education, Macfoy, in
service,
business, all died in their prime. Principal Claudius
Two
men
May
died in 1902
whose voluntary labours the community owed much died in 1901, James Taylor, aged fiftynine, S. H. A. Case aged fifty-six; Ojokutu Macaulay followed at fifty-eight in 1904. Nor did those whose work took them to other parts of the Coast fare much better Dr J. F. Easmon, N. H. Williams, J. R. Maxwell all died under fifty, J. A. M'Carthy, Dr Spilsbury, under at fifty-seven.
public-spirited
to
:
sixty.
The Anglican lived
on
clergy were reputed longer-lived.
in retirement.
The two
Maxwell until 1906 when he died
at
senior
eighty-two,
Nicol until 1907, at eighty-four, each predeceased by several children. The Rev. John Campbell who retired from being Assistant Colonial Chaplain in 1886 drew his pension until 1906. clergy lived to
1909
less
Though the Methodist Marke retired in
conspicuous ages, the Rev. Charles
after fifty years in the ministry,
and before
published his useful Origin of Wesleyan Methodism
his
death in 191
in Sierra
Leone.
J. Macaulay and Bishop James Johnson, ordained together in 1863, died within a few months of each other, the one aged seventy-nine, the other seventy-seven, in 19 17, relics of the era when a great future in Church and State seemed open to Sierra Leoneans. Add the extra years these clerics achieved to the lives of some of the early dead, to Sir Samuel Lewis and William Grant, Dr Horton and Dr Robert Smith, Principal Quaker and Principal May, and that future might have been realized. Expectation of life among educated Creoles, apparently less than among educated Englishmen in England, was probably greater than among the Protectorate peoples. Yet some Creoles were ready to assume the contrary. The blighting of their hopes seemed to confirm what Blydcn preached, the inevitable degeneracy awaiting those who substitute the corruptions o£ Europe for the manners and customs of
Archdeacon G.
the African interior.
Blydcn
retired in 1906 but
remained
in
Freetown, and died there on
February the 7th 191 2. In 1907 he pronounced the Creoles' epitaph 618
in a
of leaders
series
in the
Weekly News,
later
published as a pamphlet,
men mere fortuitous exceptions to a fatal of degeneracy which doomed them all. Consigned to failure by their own prophet, the outstanding example of a Europeanized African, soaked in European culture (which, strangely enough, never infected him with the degeneracy he declared his friends could not hope to declaring their distinguished
rule
though he practised none of the native customs he said could alone save them), it was no wonder if they gave themselves up to escape,
despair.
Denied hope
for the future, they could only look
back to
a
Golden
Age, the vanished era of Queen Victoria and of the departed recaptive
and Creole
giants.
Thus, for example,
at the
20th anniversary cele-
brations of the Leopold Educational histitute in 1903, a
doubly pathetic past
from
as issuing
from young
lips,
a present without prospect
of
boy
in a speech,
apostrophized the glorious a future,
ending with the
piteous cry, *Alas, poor Africa'.
home and in the abroad. More copies of
Discouraged
at
Protectorate they
sought
still
which kept exiles in touch with their homes, were sold outside the Colony than in. An old lady who died at Hastings in 1909 with one son in the Camer00ns, another in the Congo, was typical of many in the increasingly deserted Colony villages. Creole dispensers and nurses easily found employment along the Coast. Ojokutu Macaulay's old pupils built houses in Lagos or Warri. Creoles were employed as marine engineers, like E. N. Boardman with the Niger Company, or Christian Luke in the Southern Nigerian Customs, or Festus King at Dakar. They flocked into Northern opportunity
the Weekly News,
Nigeria, as formerly into the older colonies, to furnish literate office staff,
otherwise lacking. If the government there found them
liking
it
they were restricted to subordinate posts. ships
The
little
to
its
as at
home
judgesliips, the
head-
could not manage without them, though there
of department, Creoles had once held were
now
reserved for
Europeans. Enoch Faulkner's sons, for example, dispersed, two to
Northern Nigeria,
a third
with the Telegraph
Company
to St
Thome,
but were shut out from the seniority their father had had. Hated, despised,
as
they often were, they were yet indispensable, the
unrecognized vehicle by which not only British rule but trade, education,
and Christianity were conveyed to West and schools which must have closed without
Africa. In the churches
mercantile counting-houses and government
offices,
619
their ministrations, in
dependent on
their subordinate toil, these gentle pioneers bringing a
Europeans resented in
their possessing,
European culture
could well look round them to see
whatever good Britain brought West Africa
in the nineteenth
century a plant which could never have taken root without their slighted labour.
620
———
GUIDE TO SOURCES ABBREVIATIONS
—Blue Book. —Commons Journals. c.M.s. — Church Missionary Society. Co. — Governor's Council. — Colonial Secretary's Letterbook. Ex.Co. —Executive Council. —Governor's Letterbook.
B.B. C.J.
c.s.L.B.
G.L.B.
J.
c—John Clarkson.
—Kenneth Macaulay. —Liberated African Department Letterbook. Leg. Co. —Legislative Council. —Lords Journals. M.A.E. —Ministere des Affaires Etrangeres. Marine des Colonies. M.M.c. —Ministere de
K.M.
L.A.D.L.B.
L.J.
la
et
M.M.s. Methodist Missionary Society.
—Parhamentary Debates. —^Parliamentary History. —^Parhamentary Papers. —Registrar-General's — Sierra Leone Archives.
p.D. p.H. p.p.
R.G., s.L.
Office, Sierra Leone.
S.L.A. S.L.s.
Sierra
Leone
s.L.T.
Sierra
Leone Times.
s.L.w.N. s.P.G.
Leone Weekly News.
— Society for the Propagation of the Gospel.
w.A.R. z.M.
Sierra
Studies.
West African Reporter.
—Zachary Macaulay.
PUBLIC RECORD OFFICE series CO. 267. Many are them here without their p.r.o. as Thompserial number, giving only Governor's name, year and despatch number son '08, I. If the despatch is unnumbered date follows Governor's name. Confidential despatches are shown with date, without 'Confidential'; only for 1898-9 when they proliferate is a number given, in brackets, when more than one was written on one day. Enclosures are shown by 'enc' after the despatch number, minutes by *min.* The CO. 267 series also includes letters to the Colonial Office relating to Sierra Leone from other government departments, public bodies, or individuals. They too as Adm. 1.1.08 (letter to Colonial Office from are shown without serial number Admiralty); c.M.s. 1.1.08 (to Colonial Office from Church Missionary Society); as Macaulay (indiv.) 1.1.08. letters from individuals bracket *(indiv.)'
Governors* despatches to the Secretary of State arc in the
duplicated in the Sierra Leone Archives.
I
refer to
—
—
—
621
The same procedure Coast
(c.o. 96)
is
used for Fernando Po (c.o.
and Lagos
82), the
Gambia
(c.o. 87),
Gold
(c.o. 147).
During the 1870s and 80s many Sierra Leone despatches were printed as Confidential and the originals destroyed. They are indicated by the serial c.o. 806. Secretary of State's despatches to Sierra Leone, series c.o. 268, are usually shown with sender's name and date without serial number. Minutes of Council, of Legislative Council, and of Executive Council, series c.o. 270, are shown without serial as 'Co.', 'Leg. Co.', 'Ex. Co.', followed by date. Government Gazettes, series c.o. 271 (incomplete) are shown without serial as 'Gazette', followed by date. Armual Blue Books of Statistics, series c.o. 272, are shown without serial as *b.b.*, followed by date. Prints
Documents
in the following series are also referred to. In general a date rather
than a page or folio number
only
—board
is
used.
Where
a series contains
minutes, letters from a department,
without further
etc.
—date
documents of one follows
serial
specification.
—Admiralty —Admiralty Board minutes. 51 — Captains' Logs. 53 — Ships' Logs, loi — Medical Journals. 106— Navy Board 109— Victualling Department 114—Victualling Department, miscellaneous. A.o. — Exchequer and Audit Office — accounts, various. 16—Exchequer and Audit Office— miscellaneous. 6—Board of Trade, miscellaneous. C.o. — Colonial, General. 217 — Nova to R. W. Hay). 323 — Colonies, General (contains 324 — Colonies, General (contains R. W. Hay's 325 — Colonies, General, miscellaneous. 447 — Order of St Michael and St George, correspondence. 448 — Honours, correspondence. 854 — Circular despatches. 27 — France. 47— 84 — Slave Trade. 97 — General Correspondence, Africa, 315 — Slave Trade: Sierra Lconc. — High Court of Admiralty— Examinations. H.C.A. 35 — High Court of Admiralty — Slave Trade Reports. 49—High Court of Admiralty— C:ourts of Vice-Admiralty Proceedings. Adm.
in-letters.
I
3
in-letters.
in-letters.
3
B.T.
I
Scotia.
letters
letters).
P.O.
Liberia.
13
622
class
number
—Convicts, miscellaneous. —Convict Transportation Registers. 35 —Home Office Correspondence — Colonial. 42 — Home Office Correspondence — Domestic. 48 — Home Office Correspondence—Law 30/6 — Carnarvon Papers. 30/8 — Chatham Papers. 30/11 — Clinton Papers. —Treasury Board Papers. 27—Treasury general. 28 —Treasury various. 29— Treasury, miscellaneous. 70—African Companies. w.o. —^War Office —^War Office (Commander-in-Chief). 4—^War Office (Secretary War). 12—Regimental Pay 32—Registered general. 43 —Very Old 44— Board of Ordnance 55 —Board of Ordnance, miscellaneous. 58 — Commissariat, 59— Corrmiissariat, minutes. 107 — Quarter-Master-General, papers.
H.o. 7 11
Officers.
p.R.o.
T. I
out-letters,
out-letters,
I
in-letters.
3
out-letters
out-letters
at
Lists.
Letters,
Series.
in-letters.
out-letters.
The
series F.o.
84 contains the reports from the Commissioners of the
Freetown. They are abbreviated to *Comm.' with
serial
number and
Mixed Court,
date. Prize Sale
accounts and other enclosures are specified by the report they are enclosed in and
The series T.
i
contains the minutes of the
*enc*.
Committee for the ReUef of the Black Poor.
SIERRA LEONE Sierra
Leone Archives (ref.
(there
is
*s.l.a.*)
a typescript catalogue
of the
Sierra
Leone Archives
in the Colonial Office
Library).
Sherbro Records preserved in the District Office, Bonthe.
Records in the Registrar-General's Office, Freetown
—
(ref. *R.G., s.L.').
Records of the Court of Recorder.
Grant Books. St George's Marriage and Burial Registers. Wesleyan Marriage Register 1843-9.
Chronological List of Events affecting the West Coast of Africa
MSS
in the University College Library
Instructions of the Sierra
Letter
from John Gray
Leone
— (ref
Company
's.l.a.').
Directors.
to Sir Joseph Banks, July 1794.
Journal of George Ross.
'Report of Traders' (typescript).
623
(MS)
:
:
Memorial
:
:
tablets in
Freetown Churches
St George's Cathedral.
Holy
Trinity.
Wesley.
Rawdon
Street.
Samaria,
and
in St Mark's,
Memorials Circular
Waterloo.
in
Road Cemetery, Freetown.
Kissy Cemetery. Claffin
Lane Cemetery, Bonthe.
Medina
Street
Cemetery, Bonthe.
OTHER MANUSCRIPTS Alderman Sir
Library, University of Virginia
George Bonner's papers
hands)
(ref.
'Bonner').
Museum
British
Cotton App.
MS
(in private
— Slavery-Abolition MSS.
xlvii.
14034-
Kings
MS
Add.
MSS
200.
12131 (Sierra Leone).
21256 (Abolition Committee). 33979 (Banks). 36494-5 (Cumberland). 40563
(Peel).
41085 (Melville). 41262-3 (Clarkson).
44393-8 (Gladstone). 461 19 (Boulden Thompson).
Church Missionary Society
(ref.
'c.m.s.*
given with
serial
with
number and
journal' or 'report'
serial
serial numbers CAi or G3); name, journals and reports without sender's name.
with archive
number and
letters are
sender's
John Clarkson:
Museum— Add. MSS
British
Diary
(ref.
'j.c.
41262-3 (Clarkson Papers).
—6.8.1791 —
Diary')
18. 3. 1792 in the
hbrary of
Howard
University,
Washington, D.C. in the author's possession, now —4.8.1792 in volume —26.1 1792 printed in S.L.S. (original not Colonial WiUiamsburg — British Headquarters Papers. lately
19.3. 5.8.
(o.s.) viii
1.
Easmon Family Papers
M. Home
Rev.
—
(in private hands).
letter
to Rev. T.
Haweis 11.1.1794
ref 'Fyfc').
Macaulay at the
sold.
traced).
Huntington Library, San Marino, California:
624
(in the
author's possession,
—
:
:
Zachary Macaulay—journals sent to Henry Thornton
—-journals sent to
Selina Mills
(ref.
(ref. 'z.m.
Journal').
*z.M. Journal (Selina)').
*z.M. to — 'z.M. notebook'). —Zachary Macaulay's notebooks 'k.m. Diary'). — Kenneth Macaulay's diary the author's possesto Thomas Clarkson 27.7.1 19 Governor MacCarthy — recipient'),
letters (ref.
in private hands
(ref.
(ref.
8
letter
(in
sion).
Methodist Missionary Society
— (ref
name and
usually sender's
'm.m.s.' follow^ed
A. E. Toboku-Metzger
Memoir of the
late
Rhodes House,
Oxford— MSS
Royal Geographical Society
by
description
of document
date). (in private hands).
Africa S.21 (Grant), s.22 (Watt).
—Photostats of Banks papers from the Sutro Collection.
Granville Sharp:
papers preserved at Hardwicke Court, Glos. (ref 'Hardvvricke').
(where
a letter
is
printed without too
much garbling in Hoare's Memoir the reference
to Hoare).
is
Smeathman
MSS
(in the author's possession).
Society for the Propagation of the Gospel
Thomas at
Perronet
—(ref
*s.p.g.'
with name and
date).
Thompson
Hull University Library
— and papers (ref —MS Memoir 'Thompson Memoir'). 'Hull').
letters
(ref.
Henry Thornton at
Wigan
Public Library—Journal and
Henry Trevan's Diary
few
references
(ref 'Wigan')
(in the author's possession).
Upsala University Library
A
Notebook
—MS 406 —MS D 26 (Smeathman).
—most
(Afzelius).
generously supplied
me by Mr John
Hargreaves
—are
given to documents in the French National Archives.
They de
are prefixed 'm.a.e.' (Ministere des Affaires Etrang^res) or 'm.m.c' (Ministere
Marine
la
et des Colonies).
PARLIAMENTARY PAPERS Parliamentary Papers are referred to script p.p.
1
page number in the British
865 V. shows the
p.p. 1 899. Ix,
II (vol
ii).
as 'p.p. 'with
Museum copy
number of each
volume number, and
question, not the page, with
the Chalmers Report, however,
Here the printed p^ge number
is
is
the
manu-
(not the printed page number).
Q preceeding.
referred to as c.R.
i
(vol
i)
and
c.R.
shown, followed by the paragraph number.
NEWSPAPERS For the Sierra Leone Press in the nineteenth century see
FREETOWN
LONDON African Times
Gazettes Sierra
Daily Chronicle
Leone Royal Gazette
Daily Graphic
African Herald
62$
s.l.s. (n.s.) viii,
226-36.
—
Royal Gazette
&
Sierra
Leone Advertizer
European Mail
Leone Royal Gazette
Sierra
General Advertiser
Newspapers
General Evening Post
African
Illustrated
African Interpreter
London News
Agency
John Bull London Chronicle
Artisan
Morning Post
Commonwealth
Morning Star
Day
Spring
Pall
Mall Gazette
Ethiopian
Public Advertiser
Free Press
Sierra
Freetown Express
Standard
Independent
Times
Leone Journal
Methodist Herald
Truth
Negro
West Africa
New Era Saturday
West African News
Ho !
Sawyer/s
.
.
.
Medium
Sierra
Leone Church Times
Sierra
Leone Farm
Sierra
Leone Observer
&
Trade Report
Sierra
Leone Times
Sierra
Leone Watchman
Sierra
Leone Weekly News
Sierra
Leone Weekly Times
Trader
Warder
Watchman West African Herald
West African Reporter
BONTHE Early
Dawn
LAGOS Lagos Record Lagos Standard
MAPS, PRINTS, DRAWINGS, PHOTOGRAPHS
Maps
Museum
in the British
are
shown with
their British
Museum
catalogue
reference.
Maps in the Pubhc Record by a specific reference. Prints
shown
as *c.o.
Maps', or
as m.p.d.,
followed
and Drawings referred to
'View of Sierra Leone Missionary Society. .
*
Office arc
Sierra Leone'
by
E.
.
.
March
Duncan,
16,
lygz'
after Lt. S.
by
J.
Beckett
— property
McArthur, London,
626
n.d.
of the Church
— Five lithographs of Freetown after sketches
by Mrs Terry, London,
n.d.
—
*View of Sierra Leone (from the River)' hthograph after (Mrs Waite), London, n.d. Five Hthographs of factories at Sulima and in the Sherbro after A. M. Dunlop
Museum, Greenwich. Albums of Sierra Leone in
National Maritime Five Photograph
the Colonial Office Library
(ref.
*c.o. Library, s.l. Photographs').
PRINTED BOOKS, PAMPHLETS, PERIODICALS The following of
are referred to in the text: they
do not
constitute a
bibHography
Sierra Leone.
—
H. C. Luke: A Bibliography of Sierra Leone, London, 1925. H. Hair ins.L.s. (n.s.) x, 62; xiii, 41 and the card catalogues at the libraries of the Royal Commonwealth Society, the Colonial Office, and Rhodes House, Oxford. For bibhographics see
P. E.
;
(British
&
Foreign) Aborigines Protection Society, Annual Reports.
Aborigines Friend,
A. H. Abel and
London.
A
Klingenberg,
F. J.
Sidelight on
Anglo-American Relations, i8jg-s8,
Lancaster, 1927.
Acts of the Privy Council of England, Colonial Series, Hereford, I908"-I2. J.
Q. Adams, Memoirs
C. B. Adderley, Letter
(ed.
Adams), Philadelphia, 1876. Rt. Hon. Benjamin Disraeli, M.P., on
to the
the present Relations
of England with the Colonies, London, 1861. Addresses, Petitions,
of Sierra
Leone
etc.
the Kings and Chiefs of Sudan (Africa) and the Inhabitants Majesty King William the Fourth, and His Excellency H. D.
from
to his late
Campbell, London, 1838. -4/^iVa
(journal of the International African Institute), London.
African Affairs (see also
Royal African Society Journal), London.
African Association (the Association for Promoting the Discovery of the Interior Parts
of Africa), Proceedings. African Institution, Annual Reports (including Special Report, 1815).
The African Repository, Washington. Prince, London, n.d.
The African J.
E. Alexander, Narrative of a Voyage of Observation
London, 1837. T.J. Alldridge (i) The Sherbro and
among
the Colonies of Western
Africa,
(2)
A
its
Hinterland,
London, 1901.
Transformed Colony, London, 19 10.
Life of William Allen with Selections from his Correspondence,
W.
F. Allen, Slave
Songs of the United
States,
New York,
London, 1846.
1867.
Alvares d'Almada, Tratado Breve (ed. Koepke), Porto, 1841.
American Church History (vol.
D. Berger, The United
xii,
York, 1894.
American Colonization
Society,
Annual Reports.
Annales Hydrographiques, Paris. Annales de
la
Propagation de
Anthropological
la Foi,
Lyons.
Institute, Journals.
Anthropological Society of London, Memoirs. Anti-Jacobin Review,
London.
627
Brethren in Christ),
New
Proceedings of the general Anti-Slavery Convention 1
London
.
.
.
held in
.
.
.
held in London.
.
.
.
1840,
London,
1843,
London,
841.
Proceedings of the general Anti-Slavery Convention n.d.
.
.
(1843).
Special Report of the Anti-Slavery Conference held in Paris
.
.
.
186 j^ London, 1869.
Anti-Slavery Reporter, London. (British
&
Foreign) Anti-Slavery Society, Annual Reports.
H. Aptheker, The Negro A. Arcin, J.
Histoire de
la
in the
New
American Revolution,
York, 1940.
Quince Francaise, Paris, 191 1.
Amould, Memoir of Thomas,
First
Lord Denman, London, 1873.
T. Astley, Collection of Voyages, London 1745. Atkins, A Voyage to Guinea, London, 1735. J. Atlas of Sierra Leone (compiled
by
the Survey and Lands Department, Siena Leone),
London, 1953.
W.
B. Baikie, Narrative of an Exploring Voyage, London, 1856.
E. Baillaud,
La
Politique Indigene de VAngleterre en Afrique Occidentale, Paris, 1912.
R. Bancroft, Dangerous Positions and Proceedings published and practised within Island of Britain,
N. Bangs, The
Life of the Rev. Freeborn Garretson,
G. A. L. Banbury, Sierra Leone,
A. H. Barrow,
J.
or
The White
New York,
Mans
1832.
Grave, London, 1888.
London, 1900. London. Beaver, African Memoranda, London, 1805.
Baptist
P.
this
London, 1593.
Annual
R. Best,
Fifty Years in Western Africa,
Register,
A History of the Sierra Leone Railway, Freetown, 1949. A Memoir of Simeon Wilhelm, London, 1839.
E. Bickersteth,
H. C. Billows and H. Beckwith, Palm Oil and Kernels, Liverpool, 1913. S. O. Biobaku, The Egba and their Neighbours, Oxford, 1957. The Letters of Frederic, Lord Blachford (ed. Marindin), London, 1896. E. W. Blyden (i) A Voice from bleeding Africa on behalf of her exiled Children,
Liberia,
1856. (2)
A
(3)
Hope for
Vindication of the
(4)
The People
(5)
Report on the Falaba Expedition, i8y2. Sierra Leone, 1872.
(6)
From West
Africa to Palestine, Freetown, 1873.
Negro Race, London, 1887.
(7) Christianity, Islam,
and
(8) Proceedings
Banquet
LL.D.,
at
the
the
in
Honour of Edward Wilmot Blyden^
London, 1907.
(9) African Life
P. Boasc,
Negro Race, Monrovia, 1857.
New York, 1861. of Africa, New York, 1871.
Africa,
and Customs, London, 1908.
Modern English Biography, Truro, 1892, 1908.
T. Boteler, The West Coast of Africa from the
Isles de
Los
to Sierra
Leone, London, n.d.
(1830). J.
Bouteiller,
De
St Louis d Sierra Leone, Paris, 1891.
Memorials ofJohn Bowen, ll.d., London, 1862. B. Bowen, The Sermon preached at St George's Cathedral, Freetown, Sierra Leone, on J.
May
the yth, i8gs,
Manchester, 1895.
628
T. J.
Bowen, Adventures and Missionary
J.
Boyle,
A
Labours,
New
York, 1857.
Account of the Western Coast of Africa, London,
Practical Medico-historical
1831.
G. Brandt, La Vie de Michel de Ruiter, Amsterdam, 1698. H. Bridge, Journal of an African Cruiser, New York, 1853. Britannus and Africus,
(H. Brunton)
London, 1797.
(i) Religious Instruction for the Soosoos,
(2)
A
Spelling
(British
E. Burke, Works,
L Burton, The R.
F.
Burton
Book for
the Soosoos,
Museum copy
catalogued under Kemp.)
London, 1826.
Life of Captain Sir Richard F. Burton,
(i)
Edinburgh, 1801.
Edinburgh, 1802.
Wanderings
in
London, 1893.
West Africa, London, 1863.
(2)
Aheokuta and the Cameroons Mountains, London, 1863.
(3)
(with V. L. Cameron) To the Gold Coast for Gold, London, 1883.
P. A. Buxton, The Natural History of Tsetse Flies, London, 1955.
T.
F.
Buxton, The African Slave Trade and its Remedy, London, 1840. (ed. Crone), Hakluyt Society, London, 1937.
The Voyages ofCadamosto
R. CailHe, Travels through Central Africa Calendar of State Papers, Colonial
O. Cambie^, D'Anvers
h
to
Timbuctoo, London, 1830.
Series.
Las Palmas, Mons, 1900.
T. Canot, Adventures of an African Slaver
Lord Carnarvon, The Defence of Empire
(ed.
Cowley), London, 1928. London, 1897.
(ed. Clarke),
A. C2inies, Journal of a Voyage from Boston to the West Coast of Africa, Boston, 1852. H. Caswall, The Martyr of the Pongas, London, 1857. E. Caulfeild, 100 Years of the 2nd Battalion, West India Regiment, London, 1899. J.
J.
Cave,
S.
A
Few Words
on the Encouragement given
to
Slavery and the Slave Trade by
Recent Measures, London, 1849.
R. Chalmers, (F.
M.
A History
of Currency
in the British Colonies,
London, 1893.
Chamier), The Life of a Sailor, by a Captain in the Navy, London, 1832. L. Charlesworth, Africans Mountain Valley, London, 1874.
'Mary Church', Sierra Leone, or the Liberated Africans, London, Church Missionary Society Annual Reports.
1835.
—
Church Missionary
Intelligencer.
Church Missionary Society Quarterly Papers.
Church Missionary Record. Register of Missionaries, n.d. (1895).
Church Missionary Society
Grammar
School, Freetown, Entrance Register, 1848-1935,
Freetown, n.d.
A. and J. R. Clarke
J.
Churcliill, Collection of Voyages, (i) Sierra
London, 1732.
Leone, London, n.d. (1843).
(2) Sketches of the Colony of Sierra Leone and its Inhabitants, London, 1863. Clarkson, The Substance of a Letter addressed to a Clergyman of the Established Church
on the Subject of War, York, 1827.
T. Clarkson
{i)
An
Essay on the Slavery and Commerce of the
Human
Species,
London,
1786. (2)
The History of
.
.
.
the Abolition
1808.
629
of the African Slave Trade, London,
on a Life of William Wilherforce, London, 1838. Not a Labourer wanted for Jamaica, London, 1842.
(s) Strictures (4)
A. and J. de Clercq, Recueil de
The
Political Writings
E.
M.
C.
F.
J.
Traitcs de la France, Paris,
1
864-1903.
of Richard Cobden, London, 1903.
C. (olbeck), Annie Walsh Memorial School, Freetown, i84g-ig4g, London, n.d.
Cole
(i) Education,
Freetown, 1880.
(2) Reflections
on the Zulu
War and
A. (Abayonii) Cole, The Revelation of the
the Future
of Africa, London, 1883.
Secret Orders of Western Africa,
Dayton,
1886.
The
Collection of Hymns sung in the Countess of Huntingdon s Chapels, Bath, n.d.
The Colonial Magazine and Commercial-Maritime Journal, London. Corry, Observations upon the Windward Coast of Africa, London, 1807. J. The Cotton Supply Reporter, Manchester. The Countess of Huntingdon s Connexion Circulars. The Countess of Huntingdon s New Magazine (continued as The Harbinger), London. J.J. Crooks (i) A Short History of Sierra Leone, Dublin, 1900. (2)
A History
of the Colony of Sierra Leone, Dublin, 1903.
{3) Historical Records
A. P. Crouch
of the Royal African Corps, Dublin, 1925.
(i)
On
(2)
Glimpses of Feverland, London, 1889.
a Surf-Bound Coast,
London, 1887.
S. A. Crowther, Vocabulary of the Yoruba Language, London, 1843. Memoir of Captain Paul Cujfee, Liverpool, 181 1. O. Cugoano, Thoughts and Sentiments on the Evils of Slavery, London, B. CuUen, Life of the Venerable Mother Javouhey, Dublin, 1912. J.
1787.
A. Currer-Jones, William Dawes, Torquay, 1930. D. Curtin, Two Jamaicas, Cambridge, 1955.
P.
R. C. Dallas, The History of the Maroons, London, 1803. O. Dapper, Umbstaendliche und Eigentliche Beschreibung von
Africa,
Amsterdam, 1670.
Extracts from the Journal of the Rev. William Davies, Llandidloes, n.d. (1835).
N. D. Davis
(i)
Palaver about West Africa, London, 1875.
and
(2) Chiefs
R. P.
M.
their
Wars
in
West
Africa, 1876.
Davis, History of the Sierra Leone Battalion of the Royal West African Frontier
Force,
Freetown, 1932.
Third and Final Report of the Royal Commissioners appointed
to inquire into the
Defence
of British Possessions and Commerce abroad, London, 1882. J.
Denman, The
J.
Denucc, VAfrique au
African Squadron and
Mr Hutt*s
i6e. Siecle et le
Committee, London, n.d.
Commerce
Ativersois,
Antwerp, 1937.
Speeches and Addresses of Edward Henry, ijth Earl of Derby, London, 1894.
A. V. Dicey, The
W.
Conflict of Laws,
K. O. Dike, Trade and E.
London, 1932.
Dickson, Letter on Slavery, London, 1789.
Donnan, Documents
Politics in the illustrative
Niger Delta, Oxford, 1956.
of the History of the Slave Trade
to
America, Wasliing-
ton, 1930-5. J.
Durand, A Voyage to Senegal, London, 1789. Easmon, Remarks on the Nature and Treatment of^Blachwater Fever', n.d. Easton, The De la Rue History of British and Foreign Postage Stamps, iS^j-igoi,
P. L.
J. F. J.
London, 1958.
630
B. Edwards, The History,
and commercial, of the
civil
British Colonies in the
West
Indies,
London, 1793-1801. Elder* s West African Review, Liverpool. B. Elliott, The Lady Huntingdon's Connexion in Sierra Leone, London, 1851. J. A. B. Ellis (i) West African Sketches, London, 1881. The Land of Fetish, London, 1883.
(2)
(3) The History of the 1st Battalion, West India Regiment, London, 1885. (4) West African Stories, London, 1890. P. H. Emden, Jeu^5 of Britain, London, 1944. Essays in British and Irish History in Honour off. E. Todd (ed. Crone, Moody, Quinn),
London, 1949. Ethnological Society of London, Transactions.
London. Le Senegal,
Evangelical Magazine, L. L. C. Faidherbe,
W.
B. Fagg, Afro-Portuguese
M.
London, 1959.
An
Account of the Slave Trade on the Coast of Africa, London, 1758. Falconbridge, Two Voyages to Sierra Leone during the Years lygi-z-j, London,
A. Falconbridge, A.
Paris, 1889.
Ivories,
1794. (References are to
this,
the
edition.)
first,
The Troublesome Voyage of Edward Fenton 1582-3
(ed. Taylor),
Hakluyt Soc. London,
1959.
W.
A Letter to
Fergusson,
Thomas Fowell Buxton,
V. Femandes, Description de
la
Cote d' Afrique (ed.
Esq.,
London, 1839.
Monod,
Teixeira da Mota, Mauny),
Bissao, 195 1. J.
Fernandez,
A
An
Few Words
Address
Colonies addressed J.
to
His Majesty's Ministers, London, 1827.
on the Promoting and Encouraging of Free Emigration to the
Rt.
Hon. Lord fohn
to the
West Indian
Russell, Liverpool, 1840.
C. de Figaniere e Morao, Descrip^ao de Serra Leon, Lisbon, 1822.
F. Fitzgerald,
The Course of Divine Love, London, 1868. (i) OffHand Sketches ofMen and Things in Western Africa, Dayton, 1857. (2) Ethiopia, Dayton, 1877.
D. K. Flickinger
R. E. Fhckinger, The Flickinger Family History, Des Moines, 1927. J.
Fonteneau
(J.
Alfonce),
A. H. Foote, Africa and F. E. Forbes, Six J.
Months
Foster, Men-at-the-Bar,
W.
Fox,
A Brief History
La Cosmographie
the
American Flag,
(ed. Musset), Paris, 1904.
New
York, 1854. London, 1849.
Service in the African Blockade,
London, 1885.
of the Wesley an Missions on the West Coast of Africa, London,
1851.
Free English Territory
in
Africa (London), n.d. (1790).
G. Freyrc, The Masters and the Slaves
(trans.,
Putnam),
New York,
1946.
J. L. Garvin, The Life offoseph Chamberlain, London, 1932. A. L. C. Gatclct, Histoire de la Conquete du Soudan Francais, Paris, 1901.
M.
Gaunt, Alone
in
West
Africa,
London,
n.d. (191
1).
C. George (Esu Biyi), The Rise of British West Africa, London, 1903. Gill, The Ten Hours Parson, London, 1959. J. C. S.
M. X.
Golbcrry, Fragmcns d'lm Voyage en Afrique, Paris, 1802.
A. Gouilly, L' Islam dans FAfrique Occidcntale G. Goyau, Merc favouhcy, Apotrc
Francaise, Paris, 1952.
dcs Noirs, Paris, 1929.
631
—
C. J.
S.
Grant, West African Hygiene, London, 1882.
Grant,
An
Account of some recent Transactions
in the
Colony of Sierra Leone, London,
1810. J.
C. Grant, The Ethiopian, Paris, 1900.
The
Register of Admissions to Grays Inn, iS2i-i88g, London, 1889. H. Greenberg, Studies in African Linguistic Classification, New Haven, 1955. Henry, 3rd Earl Grey, The Colonial Policy ofLord John Russell's Administration, London,
J.
1853.
O. S.
F.
von der Groeben, Orientalische Reisebeschreibung, Marienw^erder, of Mary Kingsley, London, 1932.
1694.
Gwynn, The Life
M. Hague,
R.
Life of Sir William Jeffcott (unpublished typescript-, property
of R. M.
Hague, Gilberton, South Austraha). Hakluyt's Collection of the Early Voyages, Travels, and Discoveries of the English Nation,
London, 18 10. H. U. Hall, The Sherbro of Sierra Leone, Philadelphia, 1938. The Harbinger (continuation of The Countess of Huntingdon s New Magazine). G. Hardy, La Mise en Valeur du Senegal de 1817 a 1834, Paris, 192 1. D. Hargreaves, A Life of Sir Samuel Lewis, London, 1958. J. J.
M.
Harris, Annexations
to
Sierra
Leone and
their influence
on British Trade with West
London, 1883.
Africa,
Hasting Descendants* Association (pamphlet in honour of the opening of the Centenary Hall, 1952), Freetown, n.d. J.
Hawkins,
A History
of a Voyage
to the
Coast of Africa, Troy, 1797.
Hecht, Continental and Colonial Servants
J. J.
in
Eighteenth Century England (Smith
College Studies), Northampton, 1954.
M.
Herskovits, Dahomey,
F. J.
N. Hewett, European
New
York, 1938.
Settlements on the
West Coast of Africa, London, 1862.
V. Flicks-Beach, Life of Sir Michael Hicks-Beach, London, 1932. Historical Manuscripts Commission
MSS, 13th Report, Appendix, MSS, London, 1923.
(30) Fortescue (76) Bathurst
P. Hoare,
Part
iii,
London,
1
892-1927.
Memoirs of Granville Sharp, London, 1820.
W.J. Hocking, Catalogue of the Coins .in the Museum of the Royal Mint, London, 1906. Holman, Travels in Madeira, Sierra Leone, Teneriffe, Stjago, Cape Coast, Fernando Po, J. .
.
London, 1 840. Hooke, Life-Story of a Negro Knight, Sir Samuel Lewis, Freetown, Hopkins, Works {cd. Park), Boston, 1852. Princes Island,
F. S.
W.
M. Home,
n.d. (191 5).
Letters on Missions addressed to the Protestant Ministers of the British Churches,
Bristol, 1794.
Horticultural Society of London, Transactions. J.
A. B. Horton
(2)
The Medical Topography of the West Coast ofAfrica, London, 1859. The Physical and Medical Climate and Meteorology of the West
(3)
The Guinea
(i)
Coast of Africa, Edinburgh,* 1867.
(4) (5)
Worm
or Dracunculus,
London, 1868.
West African Countries and Peoples, London, 1868. The Diseases of Tropical Climates and their Treatment, Lohdon 1874 (2nd
cd., 1879).
632
B. H. Hossack, Kirkwall
Hunt,
in the
Orkneys, Kirkwall, 190O.
London, 1863. London, 18 50. T.J. Hutchinson, Narrative of the Niger, Tshadda, and Benue Expedition, London, 1855. Industrial Exhibition at Sierra Leone, London, 1866. E. G. Ingham, Sierra Leone after a Hundred Years, London, 1894. Irish Encumbered Estate Court Records (British Museum, State Paper Room).
J.
Introductory Address on the Study of Anthropology,
H. Huntley, Seven Years
N.
Isaacs,
Travels and Adventures in East Africa,
Cape Town,
M.
Service on the Slave Coast of Western Africa,
A. Jamieson, Medals awarded
to
North American Indian Chiefs
P. dujarric, Histoire des Choses plus memorables,
A
ed.
Herrman,
.
.
.
and
to
loyal
London, 1936.
African and other Chiefs,
C. Johnson,
London, 1836 (and
1936).
Bordeaux, 1608-14.
General History of the Pyrates, London, 1726.
L. G. Johnson, General T. Perronet Thompson,
London, 1957.
S.Johnson, History of the Yorubas, Lagos, 1937. T. S.Johnson (i) The Story of a Mission, London, 1953. (2) The Fear-Fetish: Its Cause and Cure, Freetown, n.d.
A Memoir of the
Rev.
H. Johnston
London, 1906. The Gay-Dombeys, London, 19 16.
W. A. B.Johnson
(ed. Seeley),
London, 1852.
(i) Liberia, (2)
C.Jones, Pioneer Shipowners, Liverpool, 1935. Journal of Negro History, Lancaster, Pa.
H. Kilham(i) African School (2)
London, 1827. to the
Colony of Sierra Leone, London, 1828.
The Claims of West Africa to Christian Languages, London, 1830.
(3)
(4) Present State
(5)
Tracts,
Report on a recent Visit
Instruction through the
Native
of the Colony of Sierra Leone, Lindfield, 1832.
Memoir of the
Hannah Kilham
late
(ed. Biller),
London, 1837.
C. R. King, Life and Correspondence of Rufus King, New York, 1894. M. H. Kingsley (i) Travels in West Africa, London (ist ed.), 1897. (2) J.
West African
Studies,
London (2nd
ed.), 1901.
Kirsop, The Life of Thomas Truscott, London, n.d. (1890).
Knaplund, Jizmes Stephen and
P.
W.
Knight
(i)
The Missionary
the British Colonial System,
Secretariat of Henry Venn,
Madison, 1953.
London, 1880.
(2) Memoir of Henry Venn, London, 1882. Knutsford, Lfc and Letters of Zachary Macaulay, London, 1901. W. Koelle (i) Narrative of an Expedition into the Vy Country of West Africa, London,
M. S.
1849. (2) Outlines
of a
Grammar of the
(3) Polyglotta Africana,
Vei Language, London, 1849.
London, 1854.
R. R, Kuczynski, Demographic Survey of the British Colonial Empire, London, 1948. P. Labarthe (i) Voyage au Senegal, Paris, 1802. (2) J.
Voyage a
la
Cote de Guinee, Paris, 1803.
B. Labat, Voyage du Chevalier des Marchais en Guinee, Paris, 1730.
A. G. Laing, Travels
M.
in the
Timannee, Kooranko, and Soolima Countries, London, 1825.
Laird and R. A. Oldficld, Narrative of an Expedition into the Interior of Africa,
London, 1837. 821613
533
ss
J. J.
Lamprey, Outbreak of Yellow Fever 1884, London, 1885.
in
R. Lander, Records of Captain Clappertons
The Last Military Expedition
in Sierra
Freetown, Sierra Leone, West Coast of Africa,
last
Expedition
to Africa,
London, 1830.
Leone, Manchester, n.d. (1898).
P. Leonard, Records of a Voyage to the Western Coast of Africa in
H.M.S. Dryad, Edin-
burgh, 1833. Leopold Educational Celebrations,
Lewis
S.
The
(i)
Institute, Sierra
Leone, Proceedings connected with the 20th Anniversary
London, 1908. Agricultural Position of Sierra Leone, Liverpool, 1881.
A Few
Suggestions of the Wants of Sierra Leone, Freetown, 1885. Lex, The Cry of the People of Sierra Leone for the Restoration of the Privilege of Trial by fury in Civil Cases, Manchester, n.d. (2)
La
1' Auteur de Works of Abraham Lincoln (ed.
Vie de R. P. Libermann, par
The
Collected
The Records of the Honorable J.
Lind,
K. L.
An
Europeans
to
de St Leger,
New
Easier),
Society of Lincoln s Inn,
Essay on Diseases incidental
Little,
I'Histoire
Paris, 1855.
Brunswick, 1953.
London, 1896. Hot Climates, London, 1771.
in
The Mende of Sierra Leone, London, 1951.
Liverpool fournal of Commerce, Liverpool.
O. Lucas, Lecture on the History of St Paul's Church, Breadfruit, Lagos, Lagos, H. C. Luke, Cities and Men, London, 1953— Lychnos (Annual of the Swedish History of Science Society), Upsala.
J.
Report of Commander
J.
W.
F. Lynch, in relation to his Mission to the Coast ofAfrica, n.d.
(Washington, 1853). B. Macaulay, Memoirs of the Clan Aulay, Caermarthen, 1881.
K. Macaulay, The Colony of Sierra Leone vindicated from Macqueen of Glasgow, London, 1827. Z. Macaulay, J.
n.d.
the Misrepresentations
A Letter to His Royal Highness the Duke of Gloucester, London,
Machat, Documents
of Mr
1815.
sur les Etablissements francais de VAfrique Occidentale au i8e Siecle,
Paris, 1906. S.
T. MacCarthy, The MacCarthys of Munster, Dundalk, 1922.
J.
A. McCarthy, The Prospects of Christianity
A. N. C. MacLachlan, Napoleon
McLachlan, Travels
P.
into the
in
West
at Fontainebleau,
Africa,
London,
n.d. (1887).
London, 1869.
Baga and Soosoo Countries, Freetown, 1821.
A. Mackenzie-Grieve, The Great Accomplishment, London, 1953. D. Macpherson, Annals of Commerce, London, 1805. J.
J.
Macqueen (M'Queen), The Colonial Controversy, Glasgow, 1825. O. McWilliam, Medical History of the Expedition to the Niger, London,
The Maladministration f. R. Dailey,
Reports
to the
offustice in the
Colony of Sierra Leone
1843.
as illustrated in the
Case of
London, 1857.
Malaria Committee of the Royal Society, London, 1900, 1901.
The Manchester Chamber of Commerce Monthly Record, Manchester. A Narrative of the Lord's wonderful dealings with John Marrant, a Black, London, 1788. C. Markc, The Origin ofWcslcyan Methodism in Sierra Leone, London, 191 3. J.
T.
Marryat
W.
(i)
Thoughts on the Abolition of the Slave Trade, London, 1816.
(2) More Thoughts, London, 18 16. (3) More Thoughts Still, London, 1818. M. Marshall, Christian Missions, London, 1862.
634
A
G. Mathison,
Short Review of the Reports of the African Institution, London, 1816.
J.
London, 1848. London, 1788 (2nd R. Maxwell, The Negro Question, London, 1892.
J.
C. May,
H.J. Matson, Remarks on Matthews, A Voyage to J.
A Brief Sketch
the Slave Trade,
the River Sierra Leone,
of the Life of the Rev. Joseph
May
cd.,
1791).
(Freetown), n.d.
Report of the Medical Committee appointed by the General Committee of the Church Missionary Society, London, 1825.
Memorial of the Jubilee of Her Majesty's Reign and of the Centenary of Sierra Leone, 1887, London.
H. Merivale, Lectures on Colonization and Colonies, London, 1 841-2. A. B. C. Merriman-Labor (i) A Series of Lectures on the Negro Race, Manchester, n.d. (2) Handbook of Sierra Leone for 1901 and igo2, Manchester, 1902. (3)
Handbook of
Sierra
Leone for 1904 and
190^,
Man-
chester, 1905.
The Methodist Magazine, London.
The Methodist Monthly, London. Middle Temple Admission Register 1301-1944, London, 1949. F.
W.
H. Migeod
(i) (2) (3)
The Mende Language LonAon, 1908. The Languages of West Africa, London, 191 1. A View of Sierra Leone, London, 1926. ,
A. H. Milne, Sir Alfred Lewis Jones, Liverpool, 1914. Les Missions Catholiques, Lyons.
The Missionary Echo of the United Methodist Free Churches, London. The Missionary Magazine, Edinburgh.
The Missionary A.
F.
Society (London Missionary Society), Reports.
Mockler-Ferryman,
British
West
Africa,
London, 1900.
A. Moloney, Sketch of the Forestry of West Africa, London, 1887. A. Montagu, The Ordinances of Sierra Leone, London, 1857-81.
The Monthly Magazine, London. The Monthly Observer and New Church Record, London.
Moore, Reports of Cases heard before the Judicial Committee of the Privy Council, London, 1836-73. E. D. Morel (i) The Sierra Leone Hut Tax Disturbances, Liverpool, 1899. (2) Affairs of West Africa, London, 1902. S. F. Nadel, A Black Byzantium, Oxford, 1942. W. L. Neville, JoMrna/ of a Voyage from Plymouth to Sierra Leone, London, 1858. H. O. Newland, Sierra Leone, London, n.d. (1916). E. F.
J.
Newton
(i) (2)
An
Authentic Narrative,
(3) Letters to a
G. G. Nicol,
London, 1764.
Thoughts upon the African Slave Trade, London, 1788.
An
Wife,
London, 1793.
Essay on Sierra Leone, Freetown, 1881.
Notes from the Royal Botanic Gardens, Edinburgh, Glasgow, 1903-8,
G. R. Nylander
(i) (2)
(3)
Vocabulary of the Bulom Language, London, 1814. Book of the Bulom Language, London, 1814. Book Hoa Matthew: The Gospel according to St Matthew
Grammar and
A
Spelling
Bulom and English, London, 18 16.
635
in
J.
Ogilby, Africa, London, 1670.
Outrage by Missionaries, Liverpool, 1883.
N. Owen, Journal of a Slave-Dealer
W.
F.
W. Owen,
J.
to
London, 1930.
explore the Shores of Africa, Arabia, and
London, 1833.
Mad-Jgascar,
C. E. Parkes,
(ed. Martin),
Narrative of a Voyage
A Geography of the
Colony of Sierra Leone and
its
Hinterland, Freetown,
1894.
A. H. Parsons, The Colonial Coinages of British Page, Samuel Crowther, London, 1889. J.
Africa,
London, 1950.
M. Penson, The Colonial Agents of the British West Indies, London, 1924. D. P. Pereira, Esmeraldo de Situ Orbis (ed. Kimble), Hakluyt Soc. London, 1937. The Philanthropist, London. T. 'Phillips, Journal of a Voyage, London, 1732. L.
Report on the
1st
and 2nd Anniversary of the Pilgrim Church' Manchester, n.d. (1902). *
to the
Heathen
in
Freetown^
Sierra Leone,
The Proceedings of the Governor and Assembly ofJamaica, London, 1796. T. E. Poole, Life, Scenery, and Customs
Leone and
in Sierra
the
Maroon Negroes,
Gambia, London, 1850.
London.
Progress of the Pongas Mission in Western Africa, S.
in regard to the
Purchas, Hakluytus Posthumus, or Purchas his Pilgrimes, London, 1624.
New
J.
Purdy, Memoir
J.
Raban, The Eyo Vocabulary, London, 183 1-2.
.
.
.
to
accompany the
Chart of the Atlantic Ocean, London, 1825.
W.
Rainy, The Censor Censured, London, 1865.
(T.
W.
Ramsay), Costumes on
the Western Coast
of Africa, n.d.
(G. B. Ramusio), Primo Volume delle Navigationi
et
Viaggi, Venice, 1550.
H. Rankin, The White Mans Grave, London, 1836. W. Reade (i) Savage Africa, London, 1863. F.
(2)
The African Sketch-Book, London, 1873.
Reasons against giving a Territorial Grant cultivate the Peninsula
Museum copy
to a
Company of Merchants
to
colonize and
of Sierra Leone, on the Coast of Africa, London, 1791. (British
ascribes to
*Mr Campbel').
E. Reclus, Nouvelle Geographic Universelle, Paris, 1887.
Report of the Lords of the Committee of the Privy Council
of the Trade
A
and particularly
to Africa,
Residence at Sierra Leone,
by
.
.
.
concerning the present State
the Trade in Slaves,
London, 1789.
London, 1849. London, 1864.
a Lady,
H. Richard, Memoirs ofJoseph Sturge, J. Richardson, The Cruizers, London, 1849.
H.J. Ricketts, Narrative of the Ashantee War, London, 1831. J.
T. Roberts,
A Character-Sketch of the late Rev.
G. A. Robertson, Notes on
Claudius
H. Roe, West African Scenes, H. Rolin, Le Traitement des Indigenes dans C. G. Roscnbush, Sierra Leone,
its
Ics
Royal African Society, Journals. Institute,
1912.
Colonies anglaises, Brussels, 1903.
commercial Positiorr and Prospects,
R. Ross, Memoirs, London, 1923.
Royal Colonial
May, Liverpool,
London, 18 19. London, 1874.
Africa,
Proceedings.
Royal Geographical Society, Journals and Proceedings.
636
London, 1881.
Royal United Service E. G. Sandford,
T.
Memoirs of Archbishop Temple, London, 1906.
Savvyerr, The Sierra Leone Native Church, Freetown, n.d.
J.
C. Schefer, C.
London. London, 1782.
Institution Journal,
Letters of the late Ignatius Sancho,
1763 a 1870 aux Gouverneurs,
Instructions Generales donnies de
Schlenker
F.
(i)
A
(2)
An
Temne
Collection of
Traditions, Fables
Paris, 1921.
and Proverbs, London,
1861.
A
(chon), J. F. S. J.
Schon and
F.
English-Temne Dictionary, London, 1880.
Grammar of the Mende Language, London,
1882.
A. Crowthcr, Journals, London, 1842.
S.
Magazine, Edinburgh.
Scots
H. Seymour, Waste Lands of India, London, 1864. A. E. Shelford, The Life of Sir William Shelford, London, 1909. Mrs Sherwood, The Re-Captured Negro, WelHngton, 1821.
A
Short Sketch of Temporary Regulations,
W. W.
London, 1786.
Shreeve, Sierra Leone, London, n.d. (1847).
A. B. C. Sibthorpe
(i)
The History of Sierra Leone, London,
(2)
The Geography of Sierra Leone, London,
(3) Sibthorpe's
n.d. (1881). n.d. (1881).
Age, or His Celebrated Scholars of this Age (appended
to the 1905 edition of the Geography).
The
Sierra
Leone Almanac for 1822, Freetown.
The
Sierra
Leone Bulletin of Religion, Oxford.
Sierra
The
Leone Company Reports.
Sierra
Sierra
Leone Messenger, London.
Leone Studies
—old
series,
new
W.
Simpson,
(W.
Freetown, 1918-39.
series,
Hertford, 1953.
A Private Journal kept during the Niger Expedition,
Singleton), Report of the Committee managing a
Fund
London, 1843.
raised by
some Friends for the
purpose of Promoting African Instruction, with an Account of a Visit
to the
Gambia
and Sierra Leone, London, 1822.
H. Smeathman
(i)
Some Account of the
(2)
Plan of a Settlement
Termites, to be
London, 1781.
made near
Sierra
Leone on
the
Grain Coast
of Africa, London, 1786.
G. Smith, The Case of our West African
Cruisers,
Goldwin Smith, The Empire, Oxford, 1863. P. Smith, Memoir and Correspondence of the late
W. W.
London, 1848.
Sir James
Edward Smith, London, 1832.
A New Voyage to Guinea, London, 1744. Snelgrave, A New Account of some parts of Guinea and the Slave Smith,
Trade,
London, 1734-
Society for the Propagation of the Gospel, Proceedings.
Some
remarkable Particulars concerning the rapid civilization of the Negroes
of Sierra Leone, Retford, 1821. F. B. Spilsbury, Account of a Voyage
G. Stephen, Anti-Slavery J.
R.
Stephen, Essays Streit
in Ecclesiastical
(i) (2)
^ A
Colony
Western Coast of Africa, London, 1807.
London, 1854. Biography, London, 1849.
Recollections,
and J. Dindingcr,
A. T. Sumner
to the
in the
Bibliothcca Missionum, Freiburg,
1916-
Handbook of the Sherbro Language, London, 1921. Handbook of the Temne Language, Freetown, 1922.
637
R. L. Tafel, Documents concerning
.
.
.
Emmanuel Swedenborg, London, 1877.
L. Tappan, History of the American Missionary Association,
New
York, 1855.
H. Taylor, Autobiography, London, 1885. Teilhard de Chardin, La Guinee Superieure et ses Missions, Tours, 1889. J, A. Teixeira da Mota: TSponimos de Origem Portuguesa na Costa Occidental
de Africa,
Bissao, 1950.
C.
W.
Thomas, Adventures and
Observations on the West Coast of Africa,
New
York,
i860.
G.
Thompson
(i)
Thompson
in Africa,
New
York, 1852.
The Palm Land, Cincinatti, 1859. Letter to William Wilberforce, London, 1815.
(2)
R. Thorpe
(i) (2)
A A Letter to
William Wilberforce
.
.
.
the
Third Edition, London, 1815.
(3) Preface to the Fourth Edition of a Letter to Wilberforce, (4) A
Reply 'Point by Point'
African Institution, (5) Postscript to the
A A (7) (6)
London, 181 5.
Report of the Directors of the
London, 1815.
Reply, London, 1815.
View of the present Commentary on
A. E. Toboku-Metzger,
to the Special
Increase of the Slave Trade,
the Treaties,
London, 181 8.
London, 1819.
Historical Sketch of the Sierra
Leone Grammar School,
1
843-
1935, Freetown, n.d. Transactions of the Horticultural Society of London,
London.
London, 183 1. B. Tregaskis, An Address delivered in Buxton Chapel, London, 1872. G. O. Trevelyan, Life and Letters ofLordMacaulay, London, 1908. Translations of the Oxford Prize Poems,
London, 1844. Trimingham, Islam in West Africa, Oxford, 1959. K. Trotter, The Niger Sources, London, 1898. J. W. Tuhh, Journal, Oxford, 183 1. United Methodist Free Churches Home and Foreign Missionary Society, Annual Trial of Pedro de Zulueta, Jun., on a Charge of Slave Dealing,
J. S.
Reports. United Methodist Free Churches Magazine, London.
A. H. Unwin, West African Forests and Forestry, London, 1920. G. Vassa, The interesting Narrative of the Life of Olaudah Equiano, the African,
or
Gustavus Vassa,
London, 1789.
Villault, Relation des Costes d'Afrique, Paris, 1669.
W.
Vivian, Mendiland Memories, London, n.d. (1926).
C. B.
Wadstrom
(i)
Plan for a Free Community at Sierra Leona, London, 1792.
(2)
An
Essay on Colonization, London, 1794.
E. Walford,
The County Families of Great Britain, London. C. B. Wallis, The Advance of Our West African Empire, London, 1903. R. F. Walker, The Holy Ghost Fathers in Africa, Dublin, 1933. A. Walker, The Church of England Mission in Sierra Leone, London, 1847. The Diary of Enoch Richmond Ware (unpublished typescript, the property of Ware, Los Angeles).
S.
J.
Wesley,
Letters (ed. Telford),
London, 193 1.
Wesleyan Methodist Magazine, London. Wesley an Missionary Notices, London.
638
E. R.
Wesleyan Missionary Society Reports. D. Westermann and M. A. Bryan., The Languages of West M. Whitlow,/. Taylor Smith, London, 1938. J.
Whitford, Trading Life
in
Africa,
London, 1952.
Western and Central Africa, Liverpool, 1877.
C. Wieder, Monumenta Cartographica, The Hague, 1925. R. and S. Wilberforce, The Life of William Wilberforce, London, 1838. F.
Chapel Hill, 1944. The Maroons Boston, WilUams, Jamaica, 1938. of J.J. British Squadron on the Coast of Africa, London, 1851. Wilson, The L. J. T. Wilson, An Essay towards an Instruction for the Indians, London, 1740. T. Winterbottom, An Account of the Native Africans in the Neighbourhood of Leone, London, 1803. Lord Wolseley, The Story of a Soldier's Life, London, 1903. A. S. Wood, Thomas Haweis, London, 1957. Woodforde Papers and Diaries (ed. Woodforde), London, 1932. E. E. Williams, Capitalism and Slauery,
Work and Workers H. Yule, The
in the
Sierra
London. London, 1850.
Foreign Mission Field,
African Squadron Vindicated,
Zeitschrift fur Missionswissenschaft, Miinster.
A. Zimmerman, Geschichte J.
Zweifel and
M.
der deutschen Kolonialpolitik, Berlin, 1914.
Moustier, Expedition C. A. Verminck, Voyage aux Sources du Niger,
Marseilles. 1880.
639
5
REFERENCES Page numbers are printed in bold 1
figures.
16 Fernandes, 77-91 18 Pereira, 96-97 18 S.L.S. (o.s.), X, 9 ig CO. 806/279, pp. 7-8 22 Greenberg, 7 22 Westermann Bryan, 18, 37 23 S.L.S. (n.s.), ix, 27 2j but see Bulletin de I'l.F.A.N., 1961, 20-23, 51 23 Fernandes 75, 79, 81 ji Teixeira da Mota, 205-7
&
20,36 Alvares, 73, 77 J7 Denuce, 37 38 Pereira, 96 59 Blake, 28 2
Fagg
9 Purchas,
I, iii, 189 11-12 Hakluyt, IV, 264, 278; 20 Jarric, III, 420 14-22 Alvares, 82-92 23-23 Dapper, 418-21
598
III,
from the researches of Monsieur Yves Person that I have conflated two
It is
clear
separate invasions
— the
first
about 1560, the second, under Flansire (as described by Dapper) in the early in
17th century.
28 Hakluyt, 2g Purchas,
I,
33 Jarric, 34 S.L.S.
III,
38 Purchas, 3
8
9 13
16 17 18 18
ii,
40 T.70/1465, 22.3.29
3 Dapper, 396-7 5 Matthews, 53-56 3
Winterbottom,
I,
50-52
22 S.L.S. (o.s.) xix, 158 24 T. 70/75, fol. 82 2g T.70/77, 12.7.77, 16.10.77
30 30 34 34 34 37 39
I, iii,
29.e.i7 T.70/11, Piatt 17.3.88 MS. 14034 fol. 102 Churchill, V, 428 T.70/52, 31.3. 13 T.70/1446, I. II. 19 W. Smith, 60
T.70/3, Smith 29. 1. 1
7 T.70/587, 27.3.81 Smith 29. 1. 1
174
89;
B.M. maps,
6 T.70/360, 24.4.79; 30.12.80 6 T.70/649, fol. 3
42 389-91, 407-8
10 T.70/3,
189
11 T.70/360, 10. 1. 79
13 14 14 13
379-458 Purchas, I, iv, 414 Dapper, 375-82 Jarric, III, 396-8 Villault, 62-71 B.M. maps, 64990(6) Dapper, 381 h. M. Falconbridge, 73 J.C. Diary 6.4.92
3 Jarric,
4-8
I,
38 T.70/590, 6.12.99
3 T.70/363, 12.2.24
xlvii fol.
(n.s.), xi,
26 Sumner (i), vii 24-35 Dapper, 384, 421; 406-18 38 Jarric, III, 445
1
593-619 iv, 414
III,
30 Cotton App.
19 T. 70/590, 22.10.99 20 Schlenker (i), 3
13 Dapper, 385 13-18 H.C.A.13/61, 28.6.48, 1.7.48 20 C.O.1/19, fol. 7 21 Wieder, V, plate 102 22 Brandt, 234-5
Fonteneau, 332 5 Fernandes, 97, 105
23
italics.
9 Essays, 86-104 10 ActsofP.C. 1613-14, 633 11 H.C.A.13/48, 14.7.29 12 C.S.P. {Colonial), 1669-74,412
1
5
Line numbers are in
III,
Zeitschrift, 1930, Streit, xvi,
297-300
235
Atkins, 54 T.70/654, fol. 86
1^ Donnan, III, 61 16 Report, Privy Council,
(Penny) 18 T.70/648,
640
fol.
21
Snclgrave, 246
22
W.
51-61
Smith, 41-43
I
5
8
23 C.Johnson, I, 251-326 26 T.70/60, 25.7.22, 7-7-24,
2
3-8
II. 8.26
50 Astley, II, 312 31-35 T.70/1445
13
CO. 806/129, Rowe
'79,
169
'
enc
CO. 806/279, pp. 8, 21-23 16 Laing, 401-16 20 S.L.S. (o.s.), X, 27-97 21 S.L.S. (n.s.), ix, 28 12
24 CO. 806/279, p. 38 26 Matthews, 75 28 Labat, 66
9
28 Trimingham, 14 2g S. L. Bulletin of Religion,
11(2),
36-37 30 Winterbottom, I, 6-7 33 Upsala MS. 406, journal 17.4.95
34 35 33 jp 5p
Macaulay
414-1 Bulletin d'l.F.A.N., 1961, 1-46 Koelle (2), iii-iv Royal African Soc. Journal, x, ;
(2),
459 40 S.L.S.
(o.s.),
10 11,
CO.
maps,
10
MS. D26, Smeathman
20 Machat, 124 21 P.P. 1789 Ixxxiii, 258-61 22 Z.M. journal 6.6.98 (2),
I,
410
T.70/1538, Roberts: Plan
38-1 Report, Privy Council, I, 4-5; I (Matthews) 4 Laing, 401-10 7 Z.M. journal 3.12.96 3-9 Matthews, 123, 153 3-9 Winterbottom, I, 127, 235 11 Fenton, 108 11 Upsala MS. 406, Afzelius
I
13. 11.78
3 T.70/1442-5 6 T.70/1465, 8.2.29 6 T.70/77, 18.12.77 6 T.70/10, Piatt 3.3.81 7 T.70/52, 1 1. 1 1. 14 9 Jeremie '41, 2 enc 10 S.L.S. (o.s.), XV, 59; xxii, 107 12 T.70/1442, 22.7.90 13 Lawson Papers 14.2.79
5.5.73
24 W.0. 1/352, pp. 221-4 23-27 Labarthe (i), 151, 239; 2g B.M. maps, 146. d. 34
31
(2),
t
Forts
Drury
(2),
Newton
40 Report Privy Council, IV, 25
16 Golberry, II, 285 16 Kings MS. 200, fol. 7, 52 J 7 T.70/1532, An Account oj the
to
Smith, 104
Atkins, 152 T. Clarkson
36 N. Owen, 45 37 T.70/360, 20.6.78, 38 T.70/655, fol. 25
S.L., la
14 T.70/1516, Grant 16.1.61; Norie 15. 11. 50
18 Upsala
Matthews, 81-82
W.
I (Matthews) 22-23 Villault, 71-72 28 J.C Diary, 13.4.92 33 Report, Privy Council, (Matthews, Eldrid)
xix, 131; xxii, 104
2 Dapper, 386 7 23 Geo. II cap. 31 7 25 Geo. II cap. 40
f
18-23 26-28 30 33 34 36
12-4.6.95 13 Z.M. journal 18. 11. 93 1 6 Report, Privy Council, I (Newton); IV, i 19 Z.M. journal 7.8.93 21 Report, Privy Council, IV, 4;
(indiv) 1.8.08
Thompson (i), 289
N. Owen, 69
13 Co. 26.4.96 14 Z.M. journal 30.7.93 16-23 Winterbottom, I, 214; 127-8
4 Gouilly, 67-69 4 S.L.S. (o.s.), xix. 50-52
d
Newton
10 Philhps, 191
4 Arcin, 85-95
S
N. Owen, 72-78
W.
Smith, 54 (i), 74-88 10 Matthews, 142-3 3
34
(S.L.A.)
(Thompson)
13
32 W. Smith, 64 29-34 Matthews, 2-6 34 Golberry, II, 249-50, 270-1 37 H.O.7/1, 2.5.85 39 P.H. XXV, 431 40 H.O.35/1, Report 18.8.86
N. Owen, 76
16 Newton (3), 229 17-20 T.70/51, 22.2.00, 3.10.99, 3.12.00 T.70/90, 20.12.20 22 HaU, 2 24 T.70/362, 16.6.22 21
641
26 Co. 30.9.99 27 Report, Privy Council, 27 George, 65 31 S.L.T. 23.11.95 31
Z.M. journal,
I,
25 T.i/634, 2012 29 T. 1/630, 1000
5
33-35 Smeathman to Lee 12.5.72 (Fyfe)
36 Upsala MS. D. 26, Smeathman to Lee 9.4.73 37 Winterbottom, I, 68
12.2.98
32 S.L. Co. Report, 1794, 72 32 Winterbottom, I, 137 34 CO. 267/9, Adams 29.11.90 enc 39 N. Owen, 47 39 Matthews, 74-78 40 J.C. Diary 4.10.92
38 Smeathman
to Tunstall 24.8.75 (Fyfe)
40 Add. 15
2
MS. 36494
Wadstrom
fol.
para.
(i),
3 Add. MS. 36495 11
2 Matthews, 146 3
6
621-48 64-78
5 T.1/631, 1304 8 H.O.7/1, 2.5.85
Wadstrom (2), para. 637 N. Owen, 30-49
8 Report, Privy Council,
fol.
254-96
8-12 Smeathman
I
(2),
6-9
15 T.1/631, 1304, 1333 17 T. 2911-7, 27.5.86 20 T.i/632, 1513
(Newton) 9 Laing, 92
10 Africa, 1959, 158 10 Winterbottom, I, 139
26 26 28 28-34 33
Matthews, 70-73 11 McLachlan, 31 14-20 Report, Privy Council, 11
I, 4-5; (Penny) 22 A. M. Falconbridge, 69-70 24 Matthews, 171 27-29 N. Owen, 71 30 T. Clarkson (i), 85, 161 33 T. Wilson, 39-40 35 P.P. 1 790 Ixxx, 140 37 Knutsford, 127-8
T.i/634, 2012
Wadstrom
(2),
para. 643
T.1/631, 1304 T.i/633, 1673, 1707 T.i/632, 1513
I
38 Newton
16
6 T.i/633, 1673 19 Add. MS. 41262A, Sharp 24.7.92 14-22 Short Sketch, i-io 23-27 T.i/632, 1513 31 T.i/636, 2430
90
(i),
40 Report, Privy Council, IV, 14
12
4 Matthews, 145 5 Report, Privy Council, IV, 5 Macpherson, IV, 68-198
33 Adm.106/2347, 4.12.86 i
40 T.27/38, 21.10.86
17 Chapter I 13
25 Gents. Mag., 67, 356
14
Hardwicke,
n.d.
Vassa, subscribers hst
Cugoano, 132-5 Vassa,
II,
250
Report, Privy Council,
3 Public Advertiser 6. 12.B6, 18.12.86
6 Hoare, 315 7 Cugoano, 139-41 7-10 T. 1/63 8, 2744, 2864 10 T. 1/64 1, 140 14 A. M. Falconbridge, 57-58 17 Kuczynski, I, 42 26 T.i/643, 487 27 General Advertiser 2$. II. S6
8 Hecht, 34-37 13 State Trials, xxx 23 Vassa, II, 217-18
26 27 29-33 29-33 33-40
36-2 T.i/633, 1815 36-2 T/1.634, 1903 4 Hoare, 260 3 T.i/634, 2012
I,
29 26 Geo. II cap. 33 29 Dicey, 54-55, 740-2 31 T.i/638, 2864 36-40 Short Sketch, 13-123
14
6 Hecht, 34-45 4-10 Morning Post 10. 1.86, 21. 1.86 11 T.1/631, 1284 13 Hoarc, 260
18
21 Public Advertiser 1S.4.S6
22 General livening Post 28.1.86
I T.i/643, 487 2 T.i/638, 2864
5 Hoare, 264, 435 8 Short Sketch, 40
24 Morning Post 15.3.86
642
6
7
21
12 T.iglzi. 17.8.86 13 T.i/645, 968
(Hardwicke)
13 T.29/60, 29.7.89 15 Campbell '36, 123 enc
6 P.P. 1790 Ixxxviii, 173 10 Short Sketch, 32-53
Sharp to Jemima Sharp 27.2.1 1 (Hardwicke)
1
17 P.P.1789 Ixxxiii, 271 7-34 Hoare, 317-35; 3i5, 324, 384
17 Adm.106/2347, 4.12.86 20 Add. MS. 461 19, Instructions 20.1.87 22 T.27/38, 26.1.87
23-26
4 Hoare, 316, 325 Sharp to J. Sharp 31.10.87
5
22
33-4
ib.
Appendix
xi; 318, 324,
337 6 Wadstrom (2), para. 687 8 Sharp to Pitt 26.4.90
Adm. 1/2594, Thompson 1.3.87
28 T. 1/644, 777 30 Adm.106/2623, 23.3.87 30-34 Public Advertiser 4.4.87,
g-13 14-22 23-28 34 37
2.7.87
57 Adm. 1/2594, Thompson 21.3.87
37 Adm.106/2347, 24.3.87
(Hardwicke) Hoare, 317-33 P.P. 1789 Ixxxiii, 271-81 Hoare, 335-6 Montagu, II, 265 Sharp to Treasury 18.5.89 (Hardwicke)
38 T.29/60, 29.7.89 19
2 Hoare, 316 3 T.29/38, 6.7.87 4-8 T.i/643, 487 p Morning Chronicle i(7 Hoare, 3i;6
j^ 21
Adm. 5 1/627 Add. MS. 461 19,
23
13. 1.87
(Hardwicke) 9 T. 1/643, 487 14 Hoare, 321-3
Instructions
20.1.87
16 P.P.1789 Ixxxiii, 274 Thompson '09, 6 enc 1 19 T.i/632, 1513 22 T.i/643, 487 23 A. M. Falconbridge, 27-32 26-34 Hoare, 332-45 36 C.O.270/8, Bright 17.10.02 40 P.R.O.30/8/363, Bowie 22.12.89
23 Adm.3/102, 21.2.87
23-27 Wadstrom 28 28 28 28
(2), para. 680;
Z.M. journal
30.7.93
Golberry,
266
II,
map
Matthews, 76
S.L.S. (o.s.), xxii, 115 29 Add. MS. 12131, Gray's journal 1 1.2.95 30 Macdonald '46, 71 enc 33 Adm.5 1/627, 25-6.5.87
24
39 J.C. Diary 26.3.92
20
1
T.l/645, 968
4
Thompson
'09,
6 enc
9 Matthews (2nd ed.), plate 12 T.i/643, 487
14 Hoare, 317-22, 335 1(5 Adm. 51/627, 14.5.87 21 T. 1/647, 1572 22 Z.M. journal, 29.8.93 23 Wadstrom (2), para. 684
26
3 Hoare, 339-50 5 B.M. maps, 146. d. 34 8-10 Montagu, II, 265 12-19 P.P.1789 Ixxiii, 274 20 Sharp to Pitt, 26.4.90 (Hardwicke) 24 S.L. Co. Report, 1791, 6 23-31 Adm. 1/2488, Savage 27.5.90 25-31 P.R.O.30/8/363, Bowie 22.12.89 31 S.L. Co. Report, 1794, 102
Adm. 1/2594, Thompson
25
32-3 Adm.51/703, 21-8. II. 89
Z.M. journal 30.7.93 9 P.R.O.30/8/363, Bowie
23.7.87 27 P.P. 1790 Ixxxviii, 173 28 S.P.G., Fraser 15.9.87 35 Adm. 51/627, 16.9.87 37 P.P. 1790 Ixxxviii, 167
40
Thompson '09, 6 enc 6 J.C. Diary 27.3.92 7 Co. 20.7.97 8 Sharp to J. Sharp 23.9.91
5
5
22.12.89 9 Adm.51/703, 3.12.89 12 S.L. Co. Report, 1791, 6-7
Adm. 1/2594, Thompson
16-26 T. Clarkson (2), 237; II, 13-16
21. 1. 87
643
I,
256-8,
;
28 E. E.Williams, 154-68
II,
M.
14 A.
29 P.R.0. 30/8/3 10, Cutlers 24.4.89 J2 T. Clarkson (2), I, 470-1
Falconbridge,
i
14 Mackenzie-Grieve, 255 30 P. R.0. 30/8/3 10, Ramsay 22.3.91 23-36 A. M. Falconbridge, 10-16
504
31-37 P.R.O.30/8/310, 26
i-j
Wadstrom
Falconbridge 18,4.91
para, 690
(2),
Sharp to Pitt 26.4.90 (Hardwicke) 4-23 Hoare, 347-^3 28 P.R.0. 30/8/363, St George's y-i
1
Bay Co., 2g
ib.
30
33-1 A.
10-14 A.
M.
Falconbridge, 60-62,
Co. 30.4.92 17 Labarthe (i), 155, 241 17-22 A. M. Falconbridge, 32, 119,
African Cttee., 28.4.90
13
3j Reasons 55 T. 70/1 563, Heads for Opposing 35 Hoare, 356 36 C.J. xlvi, 245
53-54 24 Hoare, 367
26 Add,
306
I,
Falconbridge 25-56
82-85
n.d.
40 Wilberforce,
M.
9 S.L. Co. Report, 1791, 8
MS. 41262A,
Hardcastlc
9.11.91
27
2 4
3-8
29-33 S.L. Co. Report, 1791, 44;
Add. MS. 21256, 20.7.90 Wadstrom (2), 341-53 C.J. xlvi, 405, 414, 442,
1794, 7'
34 Add.
454
37-40 Wadstrom
14 P.H. xxix, 431, 652 16 D.N.B., Hippisley
i^ 31 Geo. Ill cap. 55 20 copy in T.70/1563
31
23 C.J. xlvi, 356, 455 31 H.O.48/1, Macdonald 30.8.91
1
14-19 S.L. Co. Report, 1791, 51 24 Aptheker, 16-20 23 P.R.O.30/11/2, Clarke 10.7.80 23 P.R.O.30/11/5, Phillips 3.4.81 23 P.R.0. 30/1 1/6, Instructions
14. 1.92
30.9.81
17 J. Stephen, 525 17 Thornton journal 4.2.95,
29 Sharp to
21-28 Hoare, 355-8 23-29 A. M. Falconbridge, 12, 59 36 Scots Mag., 1791, 579 40 Hoare, 357 2
32
22.12.89
Sharp to J. Sharp 23.9.91 (Hardwicke)
4
Z.M. journal
4 S.L.S. (o.s.),
6
Wadstrom
(2),
13
12 Colonial WiUiamsburg,
46 I,
HQ
10427, p. 90
para. 691
8-11 T. Clarkson (2), 8-11 A. Falconbridge
38-4 Marrant 7 Bangs, 152, 161 8 Harbinger, 1851, 275 10 Baptist Ann. Reg., I, 482 10 J.C. Diary 13. 12. 91
12.9.93
ii,
1.8.86
38 S.P.G. Proceedings, 1784-5, 40
P.R.0. 30/8/363, Bowie
4
Moore
(Hardwicke) 31 C. 0.217/56, Sydney 5.10.84 36 C.O.217/63, Dundas 6.8.91 enc
18.4.95 (Wigan) 23 Public Advertiser 18.12.90
29
3 S.L. Co. Report, 1791, 46-53 3 Rliodes House, MS. Africa.
13 Directors' Instructions, para. 2, 10, 86 (S.L.A.)
30.5.91 J. Sharp (Hardwicke)
para. 696
S.21
P.R.0. 30/8/3 10, Sharp
3 Sharp to
(2),
3-9 C.M.S., watercolour by J. Beckett
3g Hoare, 361-4 40 Sharp to Beaufoy, 23.3.91 (Hardwicke) 28
MS. 41262A, Thornton
30.12.91
10 Penson, 209-10
14 C.O.217/63, Birch Town List 12-16 Baptist Ann. Reg., I, 473-81
348, 387
20 Wadstrom (2), para. 701 20 J.C. Diary 29.10.91
Add. MS. 41262A, Thornton 31.12.92
644
22 Add.
MS. 41262B
fol.
8-9
36
Beaufoy 24.3.91 (Hardwicke)
4 Directors' Instructions, para.
2 J Sharp to
75 (S.L,A,)
HQ
Gray
25 Colonial Williamsburg, 10427, p. 131 26-27 2 17/63, Bulkeley 19.3.92
11
CO.
enc;
Dundas
28 S.L.S. (n.s.), 54 Hoare, 375
i,
23 C,M,S,, watercolour by J. Beckett 25 A, M. Falconbridge, 125-31 26-30 J,C, Diary 19,3.92, 9,3,92
30-32 33 33 34
25.10.91 14 H.O.42/19, Wilberforce 6.8.91
fol.
37 9
482 41263 fol. 236 I,
33 Add. MS. 36 J.C. Diary 19. 10.91 40 Co. 17.11.01 34
0,0,217/63, Birch Town Colonial WiUiamsburg,
List
HQ
3 EUiott, 15 3 J,C. Diary 1 1.3.92 8 Add, MS, 41263 fol, 178 8 Collection of Hymns, 238
Chapter II
38
1-3 J.C. Diary 26.10.91 5 Philanthropist, iv, 105, 262
6
231
40 African 1,4,58
19. 10.91;
MS. 41262B
fol,
EUiott, 15
10427, p. 94
26-29.10.91
28 Add.
Add, MS. 41262A
37 J,C, Diary 11.12,91, 9,12,91
15 J.C. Diary 1. 12.91 17 S.P.G., Howseal 21. 11. 91
31 Baptist Ann. Reg.,
15,2.93
Falconbridge, 129
14,3.92 21 Co, 21,2,92
7
37-3 C.0.2i']l6z, Dundas 6.8.91 7 Wadstrom (2), para, 1019-20 7-13 J.C. Diary 6.8.91, 7.10.91,
18-26 J.C. Diary
M,
A.
12-18 J,C. Diary 5,5,92; 21.3.92;
6.8.91 enc
j5 Stuart, n.d. (Hardwicke) ^6 S.L. Co. Report, 1794, 4-5 33
by Add MS, 41263,
7 at least
Add MS. 41262A, Thornton 30.12.91
6-12 J.C. Diary 6.8,91, 18.11,91 14 Baptist Ann. Reg., I, 482 14-18 J.C,- Diary 29.11.91, 9,12,91 20 ib, 14,12.91, 2,1,92 23 C.0,217/63, Bulkeley
10 Add. MS. 41264 p. 39 10-13 J.C, Diary 11,4.92, 7.3,92 14 Gents. Mag., Ixiii, 478 17 J.C, Diary 18,3,92 22 Baptist Ann. Reg., I, 483 24 Add. MS. 41262A, Thornton
25
30.12.91 to Haweis 24.1,94
Home
(Fyfe)
28 J.C, Diary 24.3.92 29 A. M, Falconbridge, 134 31 Add, MS, 41262A, J, Clarkson
3.-6,2,92
24-2g J,C, Diary 10.11,91, 17,11,91 30-40 ib, 10,1,92, 13,1.92, 4,1,92,
18.4,92
32-40
J,
C. Diary 26-7.3.92, 13.4-92
14,12,91
39 35
2
Add, MS. 41262A
fol,
231
2-5 J,C, Diary 10,1,92
21
P,R.0, 30/8/220, Dalrymple 13 Add, MS. 41262A, Thornton see
Wadstrom
10.3.92, 20,3.92
22 Add,
30.12.91
which
Co,
MS. 41262A, T. Clarkson 17.7.92 23-27 J.C. Diary 24.3,92 30 Add. MS. 41262A, Thornton
11
13 for
1-18 ib. 14.3,92, 21.3.92 ti-i8 A. M. Falconbridge, 132
(2);
Beaver
30.12,91
17-19 Directors' Instructions, para. 17-24 (S.L, A.) 20-30 Add. MS. 41262A, Thornton
33
CO. 217/63,
Birch
Town
List
31-37 J.C Diary 15-6.4.92; 21.3,92 40
30.12.91
32 S.L. Co. Report, 1794, 7 35 A. M. Falconbridge, 120 38 Add. MS, 41262A, Wilberforce 28,12.91 40 ib. T. Clarkson 17.7.92
3 T. Clarkson (2), 469-71 4 J.C. Diary 22.3.92, 4.4.92 4-10 Add. MS. 41262A, J, Clarkson 18.4.92
10-17 J-O. Diary 23.5.92, 25.5.92, 20,6,92, 28,7,92
645
i8-24
31 A. M. Falconbridge, 177 32 Winterbottom, I, 175
2-3.4.92, 20.3.92,
ib. 28.3.92,
15.5-92
26 A. M. Falconbridge, 140 2S-35 J.C. Diary 9.5-92, 15.5.92,
44
3.7-92
38 Lind, 56, 74 40 S.L. Co. Report, 1794, 36-38
35-1 Co. 30.4.92, 17.2.92 1-5 J.C. Diary 30.3.92 6-g Z.M. journal 19.6.93, 30.7.93, 4.7.93
10 Schlenker
41
5 J.C. Diary 1.4.92 6 Clarkson Letterbook 31.7.92
14
CO. 267/9, MS.
J.
Clarkson
17 J.C. Diary 22.6.92 18-21 Add, MS. 41262A, Thornton
(S.L.A.)
16 Add.
393
18.4.92
6-10 J.C. Diary 2.7.92, 19.5.92 15
(2),
Add. MS. 41262A,
Peters, n.d.
22.5.92, 6.7.92 24 J.C. Diary 28.7.92
12131, Strand
27 Colonial Williamsburg, 10427, p. 80 27 J.C. Diary 21.5.92 28 Z.M. journal 17.9.93 33 Montagu, IV, plan of
3-5.92
17-25 J-C. Diary 8.4.92, 26.4.92, 1.5.92
26 Add. MS. 12131, Strand 1.5.92
26-2g J.C. Diary 7.6.92, 15.6.92 29-32 Add. MS. 41263, J. Clarkson
HQ
allotments
34-40 J.C. Diary 2-4.8.92
4-8.93
34 Add.
MS.
12131, Strand
45
1-10
ib.
30.5.92
36 J.C. Diary 26.6.92 42
j-10
New Jerusalem
11-16 ib. 30.8.92; 4.8.92 18 Wadstrom (2), para. 778 ig S.L. Co. Report, 1794, 8 20-24 J.C. Diary 17.7.92, 5.10.92 27 S.L. Co. Report, 1794, 51 28 Add. MS. 41263, J. Clarkson
Mag., 1790,
181; 1821, 331
12
7-9.8.92, 18-19.8.92, 11.9.92
Wadstrom
(2),
para. 1023;
600-16 16 Tafel, II, 810 17 P.P. 1790 Ixxxviii, 18
31-5-25
2g Clarkson Letterbook 31.7.92
B.M. maps, 65700 (i) Dickson 24 Monthly Mag., viii, 862-9 27 J.C. Diary 21.6.92 30 Wadstrom (2), para. 721 32 Lychnos, 1943, 229 33 Tafel, I, 639
(S.L.A.)
21
21
33 33 33-36 37-39
46
2
954-5 A.O.13/118, DuBois C.J. Ixii, 277,
Wadstrom
(2),
para. 778
J-C. Diary 27.4.92, 18.6.92
Add. MS. 41263,
J.
Clarkson
4-8.93
43
35-2 J.C. Diary 21.5.92, 19.9.92, 1
5.
Wadstrom
2-12 J.C. Diary
3-9-92,
11.92
(2),
717-18
para.
14
4-8.93
Add. MS. 12131, Afzelius
14-16 Add. MS. 41262A, Thornton
29.12.92
8 P. Smith, 10 Add.
I,
MS.
22 A.
270
33979, Afzelius
Add. MS. 12131, Afzelius
New
Church Record, 419
MS. 4 1 262 A, T. Clarkson
3-5-92
23-2g Add. MS. 41263,
27.11.94
13-19
23.11.92 M. Falconbridge, 143, 174, 178
27 Add.
2.7.92
12
11.92;
Add. MS. 41263, J. Clarkson
5 R.G.S., Banks, 180-3 7
6. 11. 92, 19.
30.7.92
I,
J.
Clarkson
9.93 32 S.L. Co. Report, 1794, 47 32 Macdonald '46, 71 enc
313,
24 Directors* Instructions, para.
37 Add. MS. 12131 fol. 12-15 39-40 Add. MS. 41262A, Thornton
54 (S.L.A.)
26 Hocking, 297 28 S.L.S. (n.s.), iii, 137-42
14.9.92, 12.7.92
646
40 Thornton journal 7-19.2.95
40 Add.
(Wigan) 47
I
S.L.
50
Co. Report, 1794, lo
M. Falconb ridge, 160, 272 Add. MS. 41262A, T.
1-12 Add.
J A. 5
M.
p A.
14-17 22-23 18-25 26
fol.
J.
2g
4.8.93
Wadstrom
(2),
para, 707, 778,
Add. MS. 12131, Afzelius 27.11.94
HQ
10427, p. 41 8-14 Add. MS. 41263, Thornton 16.9.93; Anderson 30.10.93 16 S.L. Co. Report, 1794, 33-34
18 1-22 28 23-30
14.9.92
Co. 21.8.93 A. M. Falconbridge, 247-63 S.L. Co. Report, 1794, 22
Z.M. journal
17.9.93, 30.11.93 19.10.96 40 A. M. Falconbridge, 191
Christs Hospital
MS.
Falconbridge, 238-79,
6 Co. 13.5.94 7 Colonial Williamsburg,
3
36 H.O.42/9, Watson 2.1 1.86 37 communicated by the Clerk of 40 Add.
236-8
4 J.C. Diary, 31.7.92
5
26.12.92; fol. 218-19
Thornton
fol.
B.M.
30.10.93 enc
17 Baptist Ann. Reg., II, 215 20 Co. 1.4.93 22 J.C. Diary 26.11.92 23 Ingham, 164-5 2g Add. MS. 41262A, J. Clarkson ib.
Clarkson
34-37 A. M. Falconbridge, 203-7 38 Z.M. journal 25.6.93 38-40 Add. MS. 41263, Anderson
51
28.6.94
55
J.
27.7.93
782
35-6 J.C. Diary 13-26. 11.92 7 Add. MS. 41262A fol. 187, 230 p Add. MS. 41263, Jordan p J.C. Diary 19. 11.92 14 Co. 12.12.92 16 S.L. Co. Report, 1801,
;
Appendix
Clarkson
31 S.L. Co. Report, 1794, 5 34 A. M. Falconbridge, 206-7
48
M.
23-28 A.
(S.L.A.)
41263,
9-93
21 ib. J. Clarkson 1.7.93; Thornton 16.9.93 25 S.L. Co. Report, 1794, 18
Clarkson Letterbook 28.11.93
MS.
41263,
copy 17 Add. MS. 41263
224
J.C. Diary 9.8.92, 25.9.92 S.L. Co. Report, 1794, map J.C. Diary 27-8.9.92
27 Add.
;
14 Wilberforce, II, 39 14 T. Clarkson (3), 74 i5 J. Clarkson, note in
Falconbridge, 161-2
Add. MS. 41262A
MS.
30.7.93
Clarkson 17.7.92 g
MS. 41262A, Thornton
14.9.92
5P
4 1 262 A, Wilber-
ib.
force 12.7.92
52
49
A.
15.2.93;
2 Baptist Ann. Reg.,
6 8
M.
Falconbridge, 170-1 3 J.C. Diary 16. 11.92 7 Z.M. journal (Selina) 30.1.97 12 Add. MS. 41262A, Thornton 20.11.92 16-20 Add. MS. 41263, Gray 1
Home,
Home
II,
249
iv
to
Haweis 24.1.94
(Fyfe)
14 Co. 10.7.95, 1. 10.96 15 Trevelyan, 18 ig J.C. Diary 5.7.92 22 e.g. Co. 30.3.95
Anderson 30.10.93
23-27 Winterbottom, I, 276-8 30 Wadstrom (2), plan 32 Add. MS. 12131, Afzelius
24 A. M. Falconbridge, 197-8 24 Add. MS. 1 21 3 1, Afzehus 27.11.94 26 Add. MS. 41262A fol. 231 27 Add. MS. 41263, Jordan
27.11.94
36 Co.
24.5.93, 22.3.94
28.6.94
32 ib. DuBois 7.2.93 34 Add. MS. 41262A, Thornton
53
23.11.92
37 Add. MS. 41263,
J.
Clarkson
1 Z.M. journal 27.6.96 1-3 ib. 8.3.98, 5.7.96, 9.8.96 6 Colonial WiUiamsburg,
10427, p. 41 p Z.M. journal 25.2.99
1.7.93
647
HQ
12-1 6 Add.
MS. 41262A, J. Clarkson
57
18.4.92
18 J.C. Diary 20.7.92 20 Add. MS. 41262A, Thornton, 23.11.92 21-28 A. M. Falconbridge, 214-15 50 (S.L.A.)
32-3 Z.M. journal
3.8.93,
26.8.93,
14-15. 11.93 5
Corry, 109
6 Co. 8
ib. 25.6.94, 28.9.94. 7-3-95 8 S.L. Co. Report, 1794, 58-63 14 Z.M. journal 3.12.93 13 P.P.1801-2 ii, 346
16-18 Co. 29.10.93, 23.5.93 21 S.L. Co. Report, 1794, 43-48 22 Co. 17.10.93 24 Sharp to Thornton 28.11.94 (Hardwicke) 26-31 Co. II. 11.93, 3-6.94, 7.3-95 37 African Association, Proceedings 1790 39 Rhodes House, MS. Africa
J2 Directors' Instructions, para.
54
37-3
17.10.93
Add. MS. 41262A, Wilber-
S.22 40 Co. 5.5.94
force 7.7.92
Co. Report, 1794, 150 Add. MS. 41262A, Thornton
9 S.L. 11
58
3 Add. 5
23.7.92
12 Winterbottom,
I,
Gray
MS. to
12131 fol. 42-156 Banks 7.94 (S.L.A.)
3 C.O.268/5, 3.6.95
20
13
Add. MS. 41263, DuBois
16 18
Wadstrom (2), para. 351 West to Wolff 15.4.97
ig
Add. MS. 41263, Gray
Chapter III
24.1.93
59
(Hardwicke)
10 Co. 7-1-93 12 Z.M. journal 3.7.93 13 Add. MS. 41262A, J.
Clarkson 2.7.92
15-2.93
17 20
20 Co. 2,1.94 22 Wadstrom (2), para. 782 25-jo Z.M. journal 18.7.93 35 R.G.S., Banks, 262-6
Wadstrom
(2),
Z.M. journal 21-34 Z.M. journal
para. 837
18-20.8.93 28.9.94
21-34 Wadstrom (2), para. 806 34-37 Add. MS. 33979, Afzelius
35 C.O.806/279, p. 37
13. 11.94
37 Add. MS. 41262A, J. Clarkson 60
18.4.92
39 Co. 17.3-94 40 Sumner,
55
(i),
14; (2), 125
1-4 Co. 19-3-93, 3-8.93 8 Z.M. journal 4.9.94 10 Co. 2.1.94 12 Home to Haweis 27.1.94
37-9 Wadstrom (2), para. 804-17 10-13 Z.M. journal 28-9,9.94 13-19 Wadstrom (2), para, 817-20 20-22 Z.M. journal 6.10.94, 2.10.94 23-24 Court of Recorder 30.10.37 (R.G.,S.L.)
24-32 Z.M. journal 30.9.94, 8.10.94, 2.-6. 10.94
33 S.L. Co. Report, 1795, 12 36 Baptist Ann. Reg., II, 216
(Fyfe)
16 Z.M. journal 9.8.93 16-20 Co. 1.3.93, 3-8.93 21 Z.M. journal 20.8.94 24 W. 0.1/352, Macaulay 13.7.07 30 A. M. Falconbridge, 193 33 Evangelical Mag., iv, 419 34 in Add. MS. 41263
61
4 Co. 31.12.94 36-9 Z.M. journal 10-13. 10. 94,
28.10.94 13 C.O.268/5, 23.12.94 14 Wadstrom (2), para. 842 13 Hoare, 372
56
3g-i Baptist Ann. Rcq.,
II,
17 Durand, 85 21 S.L. Co. Report, 1795, 18-19 23 Co. 27.8.94
256
3 Z.M. notebook 27.3.96 3-8 Baptist Ann Reg., II, 95 g-12 S.L. Co. Report, 1794, 59 g-12 Z.M. journal 3.10.93 ;/ Add. MS. 41263, Jordan
24-28 C.O.268/5, 7.10.96, 9.2.98 29 Z.M. journal 8.6.98 29 Co. 22.10.98 31 S.L. Co. Report, 1801, 29-31 36 Z.M. journal 22.10.94
28.6.94
18-36 Co. 16-24.6.94, 30.6.94,
38 Winterbottom,
1.8.94
648
I,
276-7
62
1-4 Wadstrom (2), map; para. 821 6-11 Co. 19.11.94, 29.10.93, 5.5.95,
3 S.L.S. (o.s.), xiii, 23 4-8 Z.M. journal 23.4.98; 9-10 CO. 806/279, p- 32 9-10 S.L.S. (n.s.), i, 19
23.12.96
jj J
ib.
5-II-95
J Upsala
MS.
406, Afzelius
11
20 Z.M. notebook 16.5.96 22 African Institution Report, 1812, 20, 145 23 C.O.268/5, 19.6.97
II. 5.94
26 P.P.1801-2 ii, 366 31 R.U.S., Banks, 195-8
28-30 Co. 27.3.95, 25.9.95, 22.3.96 52 Colonial Williamsburg, 10427, p. 66 34-39 Upsala MS. 406, Afzelius
HQ
31
1.2.96
1
W.0. 1/352,
p.
162
37 CO.268/5, 8.4.95 38 Hawkins, 180 40 S.L. Co. Report, 1794, 99-100 40 Upsala MS. 406, Afzelius
40 Z.M. notebook 3.8.96 2
100
'92,
17 CO. 270/8, Bright 6.10.02 18-22 Winterbottom, I, 206-7, 230-5 23 Add. MS. 33979, Afzelius
13 Z.M. notebook 3.4.96 ig Baptist Ann. Reg., II, 255
63
11.97
14 Matthews, 69-70
16.1.96
6.2.96,
Jones
1.
Montagu, IV, plan of
26.2.96
allotments 2 Hay *90, 226 enc 3 Campbell '36, 136 enc 4 Z.M. notebook 5.12.96 6 Colonial Williamsburg, 10427, p. 90
67
1
Corry, 92
1
MacCarthy
'20,
251
2 Spilsbury, 25 4 Add. MS. 12131, Afzelius
HQ
16.5.98
14 Z.M. journal 13-14. 10.94 17 Co. 20.10.94, 3-4-95 19-23 Add. MS. 41263, petition
6 Upsala
MS.
406, AfzeHus
21. 1.96
7 Co. 1.9.95 9 C.O.268/5, 22.1.98
19.11.94
Co. 8.7.96 13 S.L. Co. Report, 1801, 29 11
64
23-2 Co. 7.3.95; 21-8.4.95 4-17 Co. 12.5.95, 9-6.95, 12.10.95,
16 W.O.i/352, p. 130 20 Add. MS. 41262A,
8.7.96
Z.M. journal
19 20 note in
19. 11.96
Wilberforce 28.12.91
CO. 269/1
22 Rhodes House,
24 Co. 12.10.95 26-30 Add. MS. 41263, Liaster 31 C.O.268/5, 13.7.95
65
I,
1-2
6 African 19.8.59 Add. MS. 12131, Afzelius 27.11.94
68
34-2 Z.M. notebook 19-3 1.3.96 3-17 Co. 1796-8; 30.6.96 22 S.L.S. (n.s.), V, 20-35 23 Wadstrom (2), para. 696 33 C.O.268/5, 7.10.96 33 Z.M. notebook 21.9.96 34 CO. 267/92 App.B.2 37 Co. 8.7.96
69
5^-j Z.M. journal 12.7.96,
9
7-16 27 30 33 34 33 37
S.L.S.
(n.s.), iv,
202-7
CO. 270/8, Bright 17-24.10.02 S.L.S.
(n.s.),
i,
14-19
Matthews, 69
N. Owen,
95 361 12131, Gray 15.2.95
P.P.J 801-2
57, ii,
Add. MS. 38 Jeremie '41, 2 enc 40 S.L.S.
(n.s.), ix,
20-2.7.96 8 Evangelical Mag.,
38
9 Hopkins,
66
1
P.P. 1 789 Ixxxiii, 277
2
Z.M. journal
821613
Africa
23 Z.M. notebook 21-3.3.96 23 P.P.1801-2 ii, 360 26-28 Knutsford, 116-122 33 Add. MS. 41263 fol. 116
30.3.96
33 Winterbottom, 37 Co. 18.4.96
MS.
S.22, 28.4.94
I,
iv,
163
151
12 Knutsford, 119, 135 14-17 Co. 28.3.96, 29.4.97
3.6.97
649
Tt
17-22 CO. 268/5, 4-4-96; 30.7.96 23 Missionary Mag., ii, 424 2j Z.M. notebook 27.8.98 2^-2
P.H. xxxii, 922 16 C.0.2 1 7/68, Wentworth
.14
21.4.97 17 C.O.217/72, King, 3.98 ig C.O.217/67, Wentworth
85 34-12 C.O.270/5, pp. 103-4 14 S.L. Co. Report, 1801, 16 15-40 CO.270/5, pp. 105-10
29.8.98
ig-26 C.0.2 17/70, Wentworth 13.4.99; King 22.2.99 enc 27 CO. 217/74, Thornton 12.2.00
86
3 S.L. Co. Report, 1801, 17 6 Add. MS. 41263, DuBois 22.1.93
29 Thornton to H. More, n.d., p. 202 (Wigan) 30 P.P. 1 806 xii, 513
34
1-3 ib. 25.1.00, 4-3-00 4-11 S.L. Co. Report, 1801, lo-ii
12-17 Co. 4.3.00 19 C.O.270/5, p. 103 ip-27 Co. 16.4.00, 20.5.00 19-27 C.O.270/5, pp. 91-97 32 S.L. Co. Report, 1801, 11-12 33 Co. 17.11.01
.Jamaica,
Ixxvi, xlix
23-39 Dallas,
HQ
18.2.99, 4-6.99
24 Co. 14.12.97 5i African Institution Report,
79
Colonial WiUiamsburg,
10427, p. 84 2-13 Co. 29.12.98, 30.12.99;
23.2.25
52'
Town List
40 C.O.270/5, p. 91 40 Z.M. journal 28.4.97
5
6
1-7
CO. 217/73, Wentworth
11
Z.M. journal
CO. Co.
9.8.93
270/5, p.
6.1
1.
no
00
16 S.L. Co. Report, 1801, 25 Co. 31.1.01 11-31 Montagu, III, 147-56 32 Co. 8. 11.00
21.12.99
36 Ross's Diary (S.L.A.) 38 Fitzjames '59, 126 enc 38 Dallas, I, 181
3
34 P.R.O. 30/8/183, Thornc 81
M.
1
A.
3
e.g.
7.5.00
Falconbridge, 137
35-37 Co. 1-8.5.00; 29.9.01
Co. 30.9.99
651
—
59 W.O.i/35i» Dundas 15.11.00
38 P.P.1803-4 V, 139-42 39 W.O.i/352, p. 142
40 W.O.4/180, 28.8.00
87
Co. Report, 1801, 1-17 Add. MS. 41085,
4 S.L.
6
91
Wilberforce 1.8.00 8 Add.
MS.
1 Co. II. 2.03 3 P.P.1803-4 V, 184, 172
9 Philanthropist, v, plan 10-14 Co. 19.2.03; 11.2.02 17 W.O.4/192, 10.12.03
41263, Cooper
14. 1. 96
21
Chapter
88
12 CO. 270/5, p. 106 17 Dallas, II, 222-51 ig Proceedings .Jamaica, xl 20 C.O.217/74, Wentworth .
1
Parish Register
12.2.03 enc 59 P.P.1803-4 V, 195-6
12.5.05
27 Dallas, II, 227 28 W.0. 1/352, pp. 49-51 29 CO. 217/70, Thornton 1 1. 3. 99 enc 30 Sharp: To the Maroons (Hardwicke)
92
2
CO. 270/8,
.
Africa
40
S.22, 28.4.94
W.O.i/352, p. 64 g-17 Co. 4.1.01, 15. 5.01,
(indiv) 1.8.08
shown
the author
by
8 Co. 2.03 g-16 W.O.i/352, Macaulay 5.9.03 enc 17 P.P.1803-4 V, 197 21 P.P.1801-2 ii, 347 26 Co. 8.5.01, 14.3.01 34 W.O.i/352, Thornton 12.2.03 36 P.P.1803-4 V, 204 37 Co. 25.4.01
Bright 17-
MS.
Macaulay
Mr W. Gwynne
.
23.10.02
3 Rhodes House,
2
4 kindly
5j Co. 14.1.01 36 Edwards, I, 553 38 P.P. 1 806-7 ii, 67 40 P.P. 1 803-4 V, 206-7 89
1.7.03
33 P.R.O.30/8/128, Day 6.7.91 35 CAI/E1/115, Renner 3.05 36 W.O.i/352, Thornton
22 Co. 19. 1. 03
Clapham
21. 11.02
.
8.8.00
23
Co.
/5-22 W.0. 1/352, pp. 177; 159-60 26 Co. 8.12.02 27 P.P.1803-4 V, 185-6, 141-78 31 Adm.51/1513, 28.12.02
IV
Z.M.
to
Thornton
19.3.96
4
4.3.00;
93
4
25 P.P.1801-2 ii, 352 26-33 Co. 14.3.03, 18.11.01
15.4-03
20 C.J. Hx, 41 4-23 P.P.1803-4 V, 84-207
35-2 W.O.i/352, Thornton
24 P.D. ii, 965-8 25 P.P. 1 806 xii, 511 27 W.O.i/352, Teignmouth
13.2.02 enc
Co. 20.11.01 6 Adm.i/1526, Bullen
4
6
CO. 270/8,
6.2.01.
Smith 15.12.02 Co. 29.7.02 13 Report to Proprietors 26.3.07 (HuU) 15 W.O.i/352, Thornton
17 Ross's Diary 30.1. 01 (S.L.A.) 18-22 Co. 28.2.01; 27.12.00 23 e.g. Z.M. journal 8.8.98
90
5 Co.
4 C.O.270/8,
17.6.01
13. 12.01
12.8.06
Bright 30.9.02
8 Adm.51/1421,
2.
31 P.P.1803-4 V. 187-98 32 CAI/Ei/Renner 18.10.05
12.01
10 Co. 14.3.03
11-14 W.0. 1/352, pp. 174-5 iS-20 Adm.i/1526, Bullen 17. 12.01,
40
W. 0.1/352,
Thornton
17.10.04, 6.12.05 enc
'40 CAI/E1/115,
12.6.02
21-25 Co. II. 4. -20. 5. 02 30 CO. 270/8 Bright's and
94
Smith's journals
2
6
32 w. 0.1/352, pp. 173-5 33-35 Co. 20.7.97, 6.1.02
Renner
1
1.4.05
Campbell '26, 9 W.O.I/352, Thornton 6.12.05 enc
7 T.70/1465, 31.5.28, 16.9.28
652
7 B.M. maps, 146.(1.34 10-12 CAI/E1/115, Renner
97
6 J.C. Diary 20.3.92 14 47 Geo. Ill 17 Hist. MSS.
25.10.05, 4. 11.05 13 Upsala MS, 406, Afzelius journal 6.2.96
265 17 P.P. 1 806
23 C.M.S. Report, 1801, 8-21 28 Missionary Society Report,
I,
cap. 36
Comm.
(30), viii,
511-13
xii,
21
W.0. 1/352,
j2 C.M.S. Report, 1803, 221;
21
S.L.S.
1805, 433 J4 ib. 1804, 317
24 Thompson 4.2.10 enc 26 C.J. Ixii, 71, 96, 351 28 P.D. ix, 1001-5
33-38 CAI/Ei, Macaulay 10.6.03;
Ludlam 38-40
ib.
22.4.08
98
Hartwig 17.2.06 13-19 W.O.i/352, Thornton 12
ib.
13.6.06
2 C.O.268/6, Castlereagh
Ludlam
26.2.07
(Hull) 3 S.L.
8
Co. Report, 1808, 7
CO. 267/29
fol.
194
Co. 25.4.01 11 Adm.i/1927, Hallowell, Remarks 12 communicated by Miss Ruth 11
23 Co. 18.4.03 23 P.P. 1 806 xii, 513
Ludlam
cap. 44
Ill sess. II,
24.10.07 3 Macaulay to
13-19 B.T.6/70, Thornton 13.5.06 13-19 Odium to Thompson 13.6.10 (HuU) 22 W.O.i/352, p. 134
26-30 CAI/Ei, Hartwig
247
36 Adm. 51/4435, 1. 1.08 36 Gazette 1.08 39 W.O.i/352, Thornton 3.4.07 40 Montagu, III, 162
minutes 29.6.07 CAI/E1/115, Prasse 16. 1.07 3-8 CAI/Ei, Pratt 27.8.08, Prasse 3
pp. 165-9
(n.s.), xii,
32 47 Geo.
20.3.06
Nylander 29.4.07, 10.7.07
ib.
4
14. 1.06;
Young
20.3.06
17 W.0. 1/352, pp. 57-(>y 383, 396, 444, 478, 613-14; L.A., 191, 203-4, 231, 266, 280, 306; Creole, 266, 280, 306, 383, 396, 421, 45i, 454, 463, 467, 478, 495, 515, 613-14trade. Colony, with interior, S.L. Co., 57, 66-67, 93; traders
up country,
revived, 345, 409, 417-18, 428-32, 449, 461, 476, 491, 515; retrocession, 364; printed, 280, 479.
Europe and America), AngloFrench, 91, 427, 432, 486, 500, 524; slave trade suppression, 137, 196-7, 228-9, 230, 331. Tregaskis, Rev. Benjamin, 328, 350-1, 353, 374-5, 386, 388-9, 392-3, 398, 420, 463; and Lewis, 351, 389, 408, 527; and Pastorate Grant, 353, 374-5, 386, 388-9. Trelawney Town, Jamaica, 79, 99. Treaties (in
62,
142-3, 152-3, 175-6, 185-6, 193, 204, 205-8, 218, 226, 23940, 246, 249, 253-4, 258, 260, 273, 276, 284, 285, 297-8, 308, 311, 312, 323-4. 338. 345, 346, 363, 365. 370-2. 379, 384, 397, 399, 400-1, 403, 410-12, 415, 417, 418-20, 433, 441, 444, 448, 449, 461-2, 100-2,
125-6,
'tribe', 542.
West Indies, 211, 212, 219, 224, 255, 283, 449. Troops, Officer Commanding, and Colony Trinidad,
488, 515, 517, 525, 527-8, 535; political implications of, 193, 207-8, 226, 249,
government, 95, 108, in, 140, 177-8,
284, 297-9, 338, 345, 363, 365, 370-2, 384, 399, 400-1, 411-12, 417, 433, 448, 449-50, 451-3, 461-2, 476, 488, 490-2, 515, 525; in Protectorate, 543, 549, 551, 552, 556-7, 560-1, 566, 569-75, 578-80, 585, 592-3, 598, 612-14. 255,
Trade Unions, 443-4;
sec
313, 319, 358, 387, 394, 476, 518-9, 563. Tropical Medicine, Schools of, 603, 610. Trotter, Colonel James Keith, 540-1. Trotter, Rev. John, 290, 469.
Companies;
trustees,
Truth, 567.
Professional Associations.
trypanosomiasis, 67, 294, 603-4. tsetse fly, 294, 603. Tucker, family, 10, 157-8, 162, 273, 313, 322, 338, 430, 490, 554. Tucker, Charles, 322.
Trader, 496. Traveller, brig, 112.
Travelling Commissioners, 454, 480, 486-7. Treasury, London, and G.S. Settlers, 1519, 21, 22, 26; and S.L. Co., 34, 97; and
Colony, 105, no, 128, 134, 142, 155,
Tucker, Tucker, Tucker, Tucker, Tucker,
164, 166, 198, 200, 210, 226, 230, 256,
266, 301-2, 313, 357, 358, 383, 404, 410, 415, 417, 426, 439, 452, 454, 475. 478. 527, 593, 603; and L.A.s, 115, 123, 136, 155, 166, 229-30, 377, 499; audit, 164, 368-9, 514; pensions, 195, 216, 263, 3012, 357, 369; and Colonial Office, 200,
336,
339,
346,
368,
543;
and
569, 573, 582, 604.
S.L.
179. Treaties (in Africa), cession, 19-20, 22-23, 74,
96,
132,
136,
152,
157,
nor,
154-61, 165, 172, 174, 185, 195, 218, 452; treaties, 157, 162, 417, 428-32, 449, 461, 476, 491, 515, 556.
159,
162-3, 243, 309-10, 312, 314, 371, 403, 40SK10, 415, 430-2, 515, 541, 559; peace, 96, 249-50, 255, 312, 403, 450, 453, 476, 485; Caulker, 133, 249-50, 373, 430, 548; private, 133, 475, 494, 503; friendship, 185-6, 193, 206-7, 218, 227, 239, 243, 249-50, 255, 274, 286, 287, 297, 368, 390, 392, 401, 427-8, 475. 485, 486, 501, 541, 553; anti-slave trade, 217, 218, 248, 249-50, 274; Liberian, 245, 250, 307-8, 320-1, 431,
David, 313. Harry, 158, 162, 223, 249, 273-4. Henry, 10. James, 157-8, 162. Nancy, of Sembehun, 553, 558,
Tucker, WiUiam E., 273-4, 312-13, 322, 338,418, 430. Tungea, 520-1. Tura, Bai, 3. Turay (Toure) family, 283, 340. Turf Club, Sierra Leone, 145, 190. Turner, Aberdeen, 199. Turner, Major-General Charles, Gover-
bankruptcy, 256, 404, 410, 415, 417, 426,452-4, 495, 514. Treasury Agent (or 'King's Agent'), 141,
38,
Thomas, 419. church, 139, 20€>-i.
Truscott, Rev.
Turner, Bishop Henry, A.M.E. Church, 532.
Turner's Peninsula, 158, 417-18, 449, 544, 573.
Turtle Islands, 309.
U
488-9, 490,
undertakers, 379.
457, 524; French, 274, 285-6, 341, 345, 409, 416, 418, 474-5, 488-9. 519, 524;
769
United Brethren in Christ Established in America, at Shenge, 284-5, 373, 419-21, 429, 470, 473, 555; at Rotifunk, 420,
W
United Brethren in Christ (cont.) 532, 555; amalgamated, 420, 528; in 1898, 572-5, 582, 586, 589, 593; 603,
Waddy, Sampel Danks,
351.
Wadstrom, Carl Bemhard,
42, 50, 54, 62.
616-17. United Brethren Society, 291. United Methodist Free Churches, in Freetown, 328-9, 363, 366, 466, 527; missions, 418-19, 532, 555, 584, 586, 593.
Waima,
United
Walker, Alexander, 269, 319, 331. Walker, Betsy, 114. Walker, Samuel A., 265. Wall, Thomas Alfred, Commandant,
States
of America, and slave
Waite, Mrs. John, 362. Wakefield, Gibbon, 335-6. Walcott, Wilham Chase, 330, 331, 344, 356, 374.
trade,
24, 71, 78, 105-6, 114, 137, 222-3, 331; trade, iii, 131-2, 226, 258-9,
produce
354, 445, 478, 528; emigration from, 112-13, 132-3, 146, 195, 199, 223, 250, 279; missions, 222-3, 228, 245-6, 273,
284-5, 369, 372-3, 419-21, 429, 470, 473, 528, 532, 555, 572-5, 582, 586, 589, 593, 603, 616-17; Civil War, 310, 321, 331, 334, 346, 354, 363; Creoles in, 420-1, 460, 468, 470; 211, 262, 369, 378,
417, 604. University,
West
African, proposed, 389,
392-3, 405.
519-22.
Sherbro, 386, 428-9, 438, 446.
WaUis, Captain C. Braithwaite, 569-71, 600, 608.
Walpole, Hon. George, 79-80, 99, 176. Walsh, Rev. James, 327. Walshe, Hoi well Hely Hutchinson, 322, 369-71, 442.
Wanje, river, 451. Wansey, Nathaniel,
63, 81-85, 89-90.
Wansey
;
Hill, 63, 93
see
Tower
Hill.
'war boys', 403. 'war fences', 313, 411-12, 432.
War
Office, London, 313, 439; and Creole doctors, 294-5, 347; and military expeditions, 316, 476-7, 485, 503, 518-19, 565; Intelhgence Division, 474, 486,
Vai (people), 6-7, 65, 119, 542, 572; script, 251.
Valantin, Adolphe, 339-40, 377. FeHpe Miguel, 466. Vana, 403-4.
Valcarcel,
Vandi of Tihun, 573, Vanneck, Sergeant Abraham, 92. Vassa, Gustavus (Olaudah Equiano),
489, 518, 540.
Warburg's Tincture, 446. Ward, Rev. A. A., 572. Warder, 353.
13,
Warren, Rev. George, 113, 127. Warren, Captain Harold Galway,
15, 18-19, 25, 26.
Venn, Rev, Henry, C.M.S. Secretary, 251-2, 288, 300-1, 365, 385, 407. Verminck, Charles Auguste, 397, 400-1, 411, 415, 421, 443-4;
^^